]> pere.pagekite.me Git - text-free-culture-lessig.git/blob - freeculture.xml
Translate another.
[text-free-culture-lessig.git] / freeculture.xml
1 <?xml version='1.0' encoding='UTF-8' ?>
2 <?xml-stylesheet href="docbook-css-0.4/driver.css" type="text/css"?>
3 <!-- Converted to DocBook by Hans Schou 2004-03-29. Updated and improved
4 by Petter Reinholdtsen 2012 with input from Martin Borg. -->
5 <!--
6 TODO
7 * indexterm primary
8 -->
9 <!DOCTYPE book PUBLIC "-//OASIS//DTD DocBook XML V4.5//EN"
10 "http://www.oasis-open.org/docbook/xml/4.5/docbookx.dtd"
11 [
12 <!ENTITY copy "©">
13 <!ENTITY translationblock "">
14 ]>
15 <book id="index" lang="en">
16 <bookinfo>
17 <title>Free Culture</title>
18
19 <abbrev>"freeculture"</abbrev>
20
21 <subtitle>HOW BIG MEDIA USES TECHNOLOGY AND THE LAW TO LOCK DOWN
22 CULTURE AND CONTROL CREATIVITY</subtitle>
23
24 <pubdate>2004-03-25</pubdate>
25
26 <releaseinfo>Version 2004-02-10</releaseinfo>
27
28 <authorgroup>
29 <author>
30 <firstname>Lawrence</firstname>
31 <surname>Lessig</surname>
32 </author>
33 </authorgroup>
34
35 <!-- <subjectset> and cover <mediaobject> Based on example from
36 http://jfearn.fedorapeople.org/en-US/Publican/2.7/html/Users_Guide/chap-Users_Guide-Creating_a_document.html
37 -->
38 <subjectset scheme="libraryofcongress">
39 <subject>
40 <subjectterm>Intellectual property&mdash;United States.</subjectterm>
41 </subject>
42 <subject>
43 <subjectterm>Mass media&mdash;United States.</subjectterm>
44 </subject>
45 <subject>
46 <subjectterm>Technological innovations&mdash;United States.</subjectterm>
47 </subject>
48 <subject>
49 <subjectterm>Art&mdash;United States.</subjectterm>
50 </subject>
51 </subjectset>
52
53
54 <publisher>
55 <publishername>The Penguin Press</publishername>
56 <address><city>New York</city></address>
57 </publisher>
58
59 <copyright>
60 <year>2004</year>
61 <holder>Lawrence Lessig</holder>
62 </copyright>
63 <legalnotice>
64 <para>
65 <inlinemediaobject>
66 <imageobject>
67 <imagedata fileref="images/cc.png" contentdepth="3em" width="100%" align="center"/>
68 </imageobject>
69 <imageobject>
70 <imagedata fileref="images/cc.svg" contentdepth="3em" width="100%" align="center"/>
71 </imageobject>
72 <textobject>
73 <phrase>Creative Commons, Some rights reserved</phrase>
74 </textobject>
75 </inlinemediaobject>
76 </para>
77
78 <para>
79 This version of <citetitle>Free Culture</citetitle> is licensed under
80 a Creative Commons license. This license permits non-commercial use of
81 this work, so long as attribution is given. For more information
82 about the license, click the icon above, or visit
83 <ulink url="http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/">http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/</ulink>
84 </para>
85 </legalnotice>
86
87 <abstract>
88 <title>ABOUT THE AUTHOR</title>
89 <para>
90 LAWRENCE LESSIG
91 (<ulink url="http://www.lessig.org">http://www.lessig.org</ulink>),
92 professor of law and a John A. Wilson Distinguished Faculty Scholar
93 at Stanford Law School, is founder of the Stanford Center for Internet
94 and Society and is chairman of the Creative Commons
95 (<ulink url="http://creativecommons.org">http://creativecommons.org</ulink>).
96 The author of The Future of Ideas (Random House, 2001) and Code: And
97 Other Laws of Cyberspace (Basic Books, 1999), Lessig is a member of
98 the boards of the Public Library of Science, the Electronic Frontier
99 Foundation, and Public Knowledge. He was the winner of the Free
100 Software Foundation's Award for the Advancement of Free Software,
101 twice listed in BusinessWeek's <quote>e.biz 25,</quote> and named one of Scientific
102 American's <quote>50 visionaries.</quote> A graduate of the University of
103 Pennsylvania, Cambridge University, and Yale Law School, Lessig
104 clerked for Judge Richard Posner of the U.S. Seventh Circuit Court of
105 Appeals.
106 </para>
107 </abstract>
108
109 <!-- testing different ways to tag the cover page -->
110 <mediaobject role="cover">
111 <imageobject remap="lrg" role="front-large">
112 <imagedata fileref="images/cover.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
113 </imageobject>
114 <!--
115 <imageobject remap="s" role="front">
116 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
117 </imageobject>
118 <imageobject remap="xs" role="front-small">
119 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
120 </imageobject>
121 <imageobject remap="cs" role="thumbnail">
122 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
123 </imageobject>
124 -->
125 </mediaobject>
126
127 <biblioid class="isbn">1-59420-006-8</biblioid>
128
129 <!-- LCCN from
130 http://catalog.loc.gov/cgi-bin/Pwebrecon.cgi?v3=1&DB=local&CMD=010a+2003063276&CNT=10+records+per+page
131 -->
132 <biblioid class="libraryofcongress">2003063276</biblioid>
133
134 </bookinfo>
135 <!--PAGE BREAK 1-->
136 <dedication id="salespoints">
137 <title></title>
138 <para>
139 You can buy a copy of this book by clicking on one of the links below:
140 </para>
141 <itemizedlist mark="number" spacing="compact">
142 <listitem><para><ulink url="http://www.amazon.com/">Amazon</ulink></para></listitem>
143 <listitem><para><ulink url="http://www.barnesandnoble.com/">B&amp;N</ulink></para></listitem>
144 <listitem><para><ulink url="http://www.penguin.com/">Penguin</ulink></para></listitem>
145 <!-- <ulink url="">Local Bookstore</ulink> -->
146 </itemizedlist>
147 </dedication>
148 <!-- PAGE BREAK 2 -->
149 <!-- PAGE BREAK 3 -->
150 <dedication id="alsobylessig">
151 <title></title>
152 <para>
153 ALSO BY LAWRENCE LESSIG
154 </para>
155 <para>
156 The Future of Ideas: The Fate of the Commons in a Connected World
157 </para>
158 <para>
159 Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace
160 </para>
161 </dedication>
162 <!-- PAGE BREAK 4 -->
163 <!-- PAGE BREAK 5 -->
164 <!-- PAGE BREAK 6 -->
165 <colophon>
166 <para>
167 THE PENGUIN PRESS, a member of Penguin Group (USA) Inc. 375 Hudson Street New
168 York, New York
169 </para>
170 <para>
171 Copyright &copy; Lawrence Lessig. All rights reserved.
172 </para>
173 <para>
174 Excerpt from an editorial titled <quote>The Coming of Copyright Perpetuity,</quote>
175 <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle>, January 16, 2003. Copyright
176 &copy; 2003 by The New York Times Co. Reprinted with permission.
177 </para>
178 <para>
179 Cartoon in <xref linkend="fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig"/> by Paul Conrad, copyright Tribune
180 Media Services, Inc. All rights reserved. Reprinted with permission.
181 </para>
182 <para>
183 Diagram in <xref linkend="fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership"/> courtesy of the office of FCC
184 Commissioner, Michael J. Copps.
185 </para>
186 <para>
187 Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
188 </para>
189 <para>
190 Lessig, Lawrence.
191 Free culture : how big media uses technology and the law to lock down
192 culture and control creativity / Lawrence Lessig.
193 </para>
194 <para>
195 p. cm.
196 </para>
197 <para>
198 Includes index.
199 </para>
200 <para>
201 ISBN 1-59420-006-8 (hardcover)
202 </para>
203
204 <para>
205 1. Intellectual property&mdash;United States. 2. Mass media&mdash;United States.
206 </para>
207 <para>
208 3. Technological innovations&mdash;United States. 4. Art&mdash;United States. I. Title.
209 </para>
210 <para>
211 KF2979.L47
212 </para>
213 <para>
214 343.7309'9&mdash;dc22
215 </para>
216 <para>
217 This book is printed on acid-free paper.
218 </para>
219 <para>
220 Printed in the United States of America
221 </para>
222 <para>
223 1 3 5 7 9 10 8 6 4
224 </para>
225 <para>
226 Designed by Marysarah Quinn
227 </para>
228
229 <para>
230 &translationblock;
231 </para>
232
233 <para>
234 Without limiting the rights under copyright reserved above, no part of
235 this publication may be reproduced, stored in or introduced into a
236 retrieval system, or transmitted, in any form or by any means
237 (electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording or otherwise),
238 without the prior written permission of both the copyright owner and
239 the above publisher of this book.
240 </para>
241 <para>
242 The scanning, uploading, and distribution of this book via the
243 Internet or via any other means without the permission of the
244 publisher is illegal and punishable by law. Please purchase only
245 authorized electronic editions and do not participate in or encourage
246 electronic piracy of copyrighted materials. Your support of the
247 author's rights is appreciated.
248 </para>
249 </colophon>
250
251 <!-- PAGE BREAK 7 -->
252 <dedication><title></title>
253 <para>
254 To Eric Eldred&mdash;whose work first drew me to this cause, and for whom
255 it continues still.
256 </para>
257 </dedication>
258
259 <toc id="toc"></toc>
260
261 <lot>
262 <title>List of figures</title>
263 </lot>
264
265 <!--
266 c PREFACE xiii
267 c INTRODUCTION
268 c "PIRACY"
269 1 CHAPTER ONE: Creators
270 1 CHAPTER TWO: "Mere Copyists"
271 1 CHAPTER THREE: Catalogs
272 1 CHAPTER FOUR: "Pirates"
273 2 Film
274 2 Recorded Music
275 2 Radio
276 2 Cable TV
277 1 CHAPTER FIVE: "Piracy"
278 2 Piracy I
279 2 Piracy II
280 c "PROPERTY"
281 1 CHAPTER SIX: Founders
282 1 CHAPTER SEVEN: Recorders
283 1 CHAPTER EIGHT: Transformers
284 1 CHAPTER NINE: Collectors
285 1 CHAPTER TEN: "Property"
286 2 Why Hollywood Is Right
287 2 Beginnings
288 2 Law: Duration
289 2 Law: Scope
290 2 Law and Architecture: Reach
291 2 Architecture and Law: Force
292 2 Market: Concentration
293 2 Together
294 c PUZZLES
295 1 CHAPTER ELEVEN: Chimera
296 1 CHAPTER TWELVE: Harms
297 2 Constraining Creators
298 2 Constraining Innovators
299 2 Corrupting Citizens
300 c BALANCES
301 1 CHAPTER THIRTEEN: Eldred
302 1 CHAPTER FOURTEEN: Eldred II
303 c CONCLUSION
304 c AFTERWORD
305 1 Us, Now
306 2 Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples
307 2 Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea
308 1 Them, Soon
309 2 1. More Formalities
310 3 Registration and Renewal
311 3 Marking
312 2 2. Shorter Terms
313 2 3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use
314 2 4. Liberate the Music- -Again
315 2 5. Fire Lots of Lawyers 304
316 c NOTES
317 c ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
318 c INDEX
319 -->
320
321 <!-- PAGE BREAK 11 -->
322
323 <preface id="preface">
324 <title>PREFACE</title>
325 <indexterm id='idxpoguedavid' class='startofrange'><primary>Pogue, David</primary></indexterm>
326 <para>
327 <emphasis role="bold">At the end</emphasis> of his review of my first
328 book, <citetitle>Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace</citetitle>, David
329 Pogue, a brilliant writer and author of countless technical and
330 computer-related texts, wrote this:
331 </para>
332 <blockquote>
333 <para>
334 Unlike actual law, Internet software has no capacity to punish. It
335 doesn't affect people who aren't online (and only a tiny minority
336 of the world population is). And if you don't like the Internet's
337 system, you can always flip off the modem.<footnote id="preface01"><para>
338 David Pogue, <quote>Don't Just Chat, Do Something,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 30 January 2000.
339 </para></footnote>
340 </para>
341 </blockquote>
342 <para>
343 Pogue was skeptical of the core argument of the book&mdash;that
344 software, or <quote>code,</quote> functioned as a kind of law&mdash;and his review
345 suggested the happy thought that if life in cyberspace got bad, we
346 could always <quote>drizzle, drazzle, druzzle, drome</quote>-like simply flip a
347 switch and be back home. Turn off the modem, unplug the computer, and
348 any troubles that exist in <emphasis>that</emphasis> space wouldn't
349 <quote>affect</quote> us anymore.
350 </para>
351 <para>
352 Pogue might have been right in 1999&mdash;I'm skeptical, but maybe.
353 But even if he was right then, the point is not right now:
354 <citetitle>Free Culture</citetitle> is about the troubles the Internet
355 causes even after the modem is turned
356 <!--PAGE BREAK 12-->
357 off. It is an argument about how the battles that now rage regarding life
358 on-line have fundamentally affected <quote>people who aren't online.</quote> There
359 is no switch that will insulate us from the Internet's effect.
360 </para>
361 <indexterm startref='idxpoguedavid' class='endofrange'/>
362 <para>
363 But unlike <citetitle>Code</citetitle>, the argument here is not much
364 about the Internet itself. It is instead about the consequence of the
365 Internet to a part of our tradition that is much more fundamental,
366 and, as hard as this is for a geek-wanna-be to admit, much more
367 important.
368 </para>
369 <para>
370 That tradition is the way our culture gets made. As I explain in the
371 pages that follow, we come from a tradition of <quote>free culture</quote>&mdash;not
372 <quote>free</quote> as in <quote>free beer</quote> (to borrow a phrase from the founder of the
373 free software movement<footnote>
374 <para>
375 Richard M. Stallman, <citetitle>Free Software, Free Societies</citetitle> 57 (Joshua Gay, ed. 2002).
376 </para></footnote>), but <quote>free</quote> as in <quote>free speech,</quote> <quote>free markets,</quote>
377 <quote>free trade,</quote> <quote>free enterprise,</quote> <quote>free will,</quote> and <quote>free elections.</quote> A
378 free culture supports and protects creators and innovators. It does
379 this directly by granting intellectual property rights. But it does so
380 indirectly by limiting the reach of those rights, to guarantee that
381 follow-on creators and innovators remain <emphasis>as free as
382 possible</emphasis> from the control of the past. A free culture is
383 not a culture without property, just as a free market is not a market
384 in which everything is free. The opposite of a free culture is a
385 <quote>permission culture</quote>&mdash;a culture in which creators get to create
386 only with the permission of the powerful, or of creators from the
387 past.
388 </para>
389 <para>
390 If we understood this change, I believe we would resist it. Not <quote>we</quote>
391 on the Left or <quote>you</quote> on the Right, but we who have no stake in the
392 particular industries of culture that defined the twentieth century.
393 Whether you are on the Left or the Right, if you are in this sense
394 disinterested, then the story I tell here will trouble you. For the
395 changes I describe affect values that both sides of our political
396 culture deem fundamental.
397 </para>
398 <indexterm id='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='startofrange'><primary>power, concentration of</primary></indexterm>
399 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace</primary></indexterm>
400 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William</primary></indexterm>
401 <indexterm><primary>Stevens, Ted</primary></indexterm>
402 <para>
403 We saw a glimpse of this bipartisan outrage in the early summer of
404 2003. As the FCC considered changes in media ownership rules that
405 would relax limits on media concentration, an extraordinary coalition
406 generated more than 700,000 letters to the FCC opposing the change.
407 As William Safire described marching <quote>uncomfortably alongside CodePink
408 Women for Peace and the National Rifle Association, between liberal
409 Olympia Snowe and conservative Ted Stevens,</quote> he formulated perhaps
410 most simply just what was at stake: the concentration of power. And as
411 he asked,
412 </para>
413 <blockquote>
414 <para>
415 Does that sound unconservative? Not to me. The concentration of
416 power&mdash;political, corporate, media, cultural&mdash;should be anathema to
417 conservatives. The diffusion of power through local control, thereby
418 encouraging individual participation, is the essence of federalism and
419 the greatest expression of democracy.<footnote><para> William Safire,
420 <quote>The Great Media Gulp,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 22 May 2003.
421 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William</primary></indexterm>
422 </para></footnote>
423 </para>
424 </blockquote>
425 <para>
426 This idea is an element of the argument of <citetitle>Free Culture</citetitle>, though my
427 focus is not just on the concentration of power produced by
428 concentrations in ownership, but more importantly, if because less
429 visibly, on the concentration of power produced by a radical change in
430 the effective scope of the law. The law is changing; that change is
431 altering the way our culture gets made; that change should worry
432 you&mdash;whether or not you care about the Internet, and whether you're on
433 Safire's left or on his right.
434 </para>
435 <indexterm startref='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='endofrange'/>
436 <para>
437 <emphasis role="strong">The inspiration</emphasis> for the title and for
438 much of the argument of this book comes from the work of Richard
439 Stallman and the Free Software Foundation. Indeed, as I reread
440 Stallman's own work, especially the essays in <citetitle>Free Software, Free
441 Society</citetitle>, I realize that all of the theoretical insights I develop here
442 are insights Stallman described decades ago. One could thus well argue
443 that this work is <quote>merely</quote> derivative.
444 </para>
445 <para>
446 I accept that criticism, if indeed it is a criticism. The work of a
447 lawyer is always derivative, and I mean to do nothing more in this
448 book than to remind a culture about a tradition that has always been
449 its own. Like Stallman, I defend that tradition on the basis of
450 values. Like Stallman, I believe those are the values of freedom. And
451 like Stallman, I believe those are values of our past that will need
452 to be defended in our future. A free culture has been our past, but it
453 will only be our future if we change the path we are on right now.
454
455 <!--PAGE BREAK 14-->
456 Like Stallman's arguments for free software, an argument for free
457 culture stumbles on a confusion that is hard to avoid, and even harder
458 to understand. A free culture is not a culture without property; it is not
459 a culture in which artists don't get paid. A culture without property, or
460 in which creators can't get paid, is anarchy, not freedom. Anarchy is not
461 what I advance here.
462 </para>
463 <para>
464 Instead, the free culture that I defend in this book is a balance
465 between anarchy and control. A free culture, like a free market, is
466 filled with property. It is filled with rules of property and contract
467 that get enforced by the state. But just as a free market is perverted
468 if its property becomes feudal, so too can a free culture be queered
469 by extremism in the property rights that define it. That is what I
470 fear about our culture today. It is against that extremism that this
471 book is written.
472 </para>
473
474 </preface>
475 <!-- PAGE BREAK 15 -->
476
477 <!-- PAGE BREAK 16 -->
478 <chapter label="0" id="c-introduction">
479 <title>INTRODUCTION</title>
480 <indexterm id='idxwrightbrothers' class='startofrange'><primary>Wright brothers</primary></indexterm>
481 <para>
482 <emphasis role="strong">On December 17</emphasis>, 1903, on a windy North Carolina beach for just
483 shy of one hundred seconds, the Wright brothers demonstrated that a
484 heavier-than-air, self-propelled vehicle could fly. The moment was electric
485 and its importance widely understood. Almost immediately, there
486 was an explosion of interest in this newfound technology of manned
487 flight, and a gaggle of innovators began to build upon it.
488 </para>
489 <indexterm id='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='startofrange'><primary>air traffic, land ownership vs.</primary></indexterm>
490 <indexterm id='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='startofrange'><primary>land ownership, air traffic and</primary></indexterm>
491 <indexterm id='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='startofrange'><primary>property rights</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.</secondary></indexterm>
492 <para>
493 At the time the Wright brothers invented the airplane, American
494 law held that a property owner presumptively owned not just the surface
495 of his land, but all the land below, down to the center of the earth,
496 and all the space above, to <quote>an indefinite extent, upwards.</quote><footnote><para>
497 St. George Tucker, <citetitle>Blackstone's Commentaries</citetitle> 3 (South Hackensack, N.J.:
498 Rothman Reprints, 1969), 18.
499 </para></footnote>
500 For many
501 years, scholars had puzzled about how best to interpret the idea that
502 rights in land ran to the heavens. Did that mean that you owned the
503 stars? Could you prosecute geese for their willful and regular trespass?
504 </para>
505 <indexterm startref='idxwrightbrothers' class='endofrange'/>
506 <para>
507 Then came airplanes, and for the first time, this principle of American
508 law&mdash;deep within the foundations of our tradition, and acknowledged
509 by the most important legal thinkers of our past&mdash;mattered. If
510 my land reaches to the heavens, what happens when United flies over
511 my field? Do I have the right to banish it from my property? Am I allowed
512 to enter into an exclusive license with Delta Airlines? Could we
513 set up an auction to decide how much these rights are worth?
514 </para>
515 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
516 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
517 <para>
518 In 1945, these questions became a federal case. When North Carolina
519 farmers Thomas Lee and Tinie Causby started losing chickens
520 because of low-flying military aircraft (the terrified chickens apparently
521 flew into the barn walls and died), the Causbys filed a lawsuit saying
522 that the government was trespassing on their land. The airplanes,
523 of course, never touched the surface of the Causbys' land. But if, as
524 Blackstone, Kent, and Coke had said, their land reached to <quote>an indefinite
525 extent, upwards,</quote> then the government was trespassing on their
526 property, and the Causbys wanted it to stop.
527 </para>
528 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
529 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
530 <indexterm id='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='startofrange'><primary>Douglas, William O.</primary></indexterm>
531 <indexterm id='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='startofrange'><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.</primary><secondary>on airspace vs. land rights</secondary></indexterm>
532 <para>
533 The Supreme Court agreed to hear the Causbys' case. Congress had
534 declared the airways public, but if one's property really extended to the
535 heavens, then Congress's declaration could well have been an unconstitutional
536 <quote>taking</quote> of property without compensation. The Court acknowledged
537 that <quote>it is ancient doctrine that common law ownership of
538 the land extended to the periphery of the universe.</quote> But Justice Douglas
539 had no patience for ancient doctrine. In a single paragraph, hundreds of
540 years of property law were erased. As he wrote for the Court,
541 </para>
542 <blockquote>
543 <para>
544 [The] doctrine has no place in the modern world. The air is a
545 public highway, as Congress has declared. Were that not true,
546 every transcontinental flight would subject the operator to countless
547 trespass suits. Common sense revolts at the idea. To recognize
548 such private claims to the airspace would clog these highways,
549 seriously interfere with their control and development in the public
550 interest, and transfer into private ownership that to which only
551 the public has a just claim.<footnote>
552 <para>
553 United States v. Causby, U.S. 328 (1946): 256, 261. The Court did find
554 that there could be a <quote>taking</quote> if the government's use of its land
555 effectively destroyed the value of the Causbys' land. This example was
556 suggested to me by Keith Aoki's wonderful piece, <quote>(Intellectual)
557 Property and Sovereignty: Notes Toward a Cultural Geography of
558 Authorship,</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Law Review</citetitle> 48 (1996): 1293, 1333. See also Paul
559 Goldstein, <citetitle>Real Property</citetitle> (Mineola, N.Y.: Foundation Press, 1984),
560 1112&ndash;13.
561 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
562 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
563 </para></footnote>
564 </para>
565 </blockquote>
566 <para>
567 <quote>Common sense revolts at the idea.</quote>
568 </para>
569 <indexterm startref='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='endofrange'/>
570 <para>
571 This is how the law usually works. Not often this abruptly or
572 impatiently, but eventually, this is how it works. It was Douglas's style not to
573 dither. Other justices would have blathered on for pages to reach the
574 <!--PAGE BREAK 18-->
575 conclusion that Douglas holds in a single line: <quote>Common sense revolts
576 at the idea.</quote> But whether it takes pages or a few words, it is the special
577 genius of a common law system, as ours is, that the law adjusts to the
578 technologies of the time. And as it adjusts, it changes. Ideas that were
579 as solid as rock in one age crumble in another.
580 </para>
581 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
582 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
583 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers</primary></indexterm>
584 <para>
585 Or at least, this is how things happen when there's no one powerful
586 on the other side of the change. The Causbys were just farmers. And
587 though there were no doubt many like them who were upset by the
588 growing traffic in the air (though one hopes not many chickens flew
589 themselves into walls), the Causbys of the world would find it very
590 hard to unite and stop the idea, and the technology, that the Wright
591 brothers had birthed. The Wright brothers spat airplanes into the
592 technological meme pool; the idea then spread like a virus in a chicken
593 coop; farmers like the Causbys found themselves surrounded by <quote>what
594 seemed reasonable</quote> given the technology that the Wrights had produced.
595 They could stand on their farms, dead chickens in hand, and
596 shake their fists at these newfangled technologies all they wanted.
597 They could call their representatives or even file a lawsuit. But in the
598 end, the force of what seems <quote>obvious</quote> to everyone else&mdash;the power of
599 <quote>common sense</quote>&mdash;would prevail. Their <quote>private interest</quote> would not be
600 allowed to defeat an obvious public gain.
601 </para>
602 <indexterm startref='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='endofrange'/>
603 <indexterm startref='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='endofrange'/>
604 <indexterm startref='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='endofrange'/>
605 <indexterm startref='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='endofrange'/>
606 <indexterm id='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='startofrange'><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard</primary></indexterm>
607 <indexterm><primary>Bell, Alexander Graham</primary></indexterm>
608 <indexterm><primary>Edison, Thomas</primary></indexterm>
609 <indexterm><primary>Faraday, Michael</primary></indexterm>
610 <indexterm id='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='startofrange'><primary>radio</primary><secondary>FM spectrum of</secondary></indexterm>
611 <para>
612 <emphasis role='strong'>Edwin Howard Armstrong</emphasis> is one of
613 America's forgotten inventor geniuses. He came to the great American
614 inventor scene just after the titans Thomas Edison and Alexander
615 Graham Bell. But his work in the area of radio technology was perhaps
616 the most important of any single inventor in the first fifty years of
617 radio. He was better educated than Michael Faraday, who as a
618 bookbinder's apprentice had discovered electric induction in 1831. But
619 he had the same intuition about how the world of radio worked, and on
620 at least three occasions, Armstrong invented profoundly important
621 technologies that advanced our understanding of radio.
622 <!-- PAGE BREAK 19 -->
623 </para>
624 <para>
625 On the day after Christmas, 1933, four patents were issued to Armstrong
626 for his most significant invention&mdash;FM radio. Until then, consumer radio
627 had been amplitude-modulated (AM) radio. The theorists
628 of the day had said that frequency-modulated (FM) radio could never
629 work. They were right about FM radio in a narrow band of spectrum.
630 But Armstrong discovered that frequency-modulated radio in a wide
631 band of spectrum would deliver an astonishing fidelity of sound, with
632 much less transmitter power and static.
633 </para>
634 <para>
635 On November 5, 1935, he demonstrated the technology at a meeting of
636 the Institute of Radio Engineers at the Empire State Building in New
637 York City. He tuned his radio dial across a range of AM stations,
638 until the radio locked on a broadcast that he had arranged from
639 seventeen miles away. The radio fell totally silent, as if dead, and
640 then with a clarity no one else in that room had ever heard from an
641 electrical device, it produced the sound of an announcer's voice:
642 <quote>This is amateur station W2AG at Yonkers, New York, operating on
643 frequency modulation at two and a half meters.</quote>
644 </para>
645 <para>
646 The audience was hearing something no one had thought possible:
647 </para>
648 <blockquote>
649 <para>
650 A glass of water was poured before the microphone in Yonkers; it
651 sounded like a glass of water being poured. &hellip; A paper was crumpled
652 and torn; it sounded like paper and not like a crackling forest
653 fire. &hellip; Sousa marches were played from records and a piano solo
654 and guitar number were performed. &hellip; The music was projected with a
655 live-ness rarely if ever heard before from a radio <quote>music
656 box.</quote><footnote><para>
657 Lawrence Lessing, <citetitle>Man of High Fidelity: Edwin Howard Armstrong</citetitle>
658 (Philadelphia: J. B. Lipincott Company, 1956), 209.
659 </para></footnote>
660 </para>
661 </blockquote>
662 <indexterm id='idxrca' class='startofrange'><primary>RCA</primary></indexterm>
663 <indexterm id='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='startofrange'><primary>media</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in</secondary></indexterm>
664 <para>
665 As our own common sense tells us, Armstrong had discovered a vastly
666 superior radio technology. But at the time of his invention, Armstrong
667 was working for RCA. RCA was the dominant player in the then dominant
668 AM radio market. By 1935, there were a thousand radio stations across
669 the United States, but the stations in large cities were all owned by
670 a handful of networks.
671 <!--PAGE BREAK 20-->
672 </para>
673 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David</primary></indexterm>
674 <para>
675 RCA's president, David Sarnoff, a friend of Armstrong's, was eager
676 that Armstrong discover a way to remove static from AM radio. So
677 Sarnoff was quite excited when Armstrong told him he had a device
678 that removed static from <quote>radio.</quote> But when Armstrong demonstrated
679 his invention, Sarnoff was not pleased.
680 </para>
681 <blockquote>
682 <para>
683 I thought Armstrong would invent some kind of a filter to remove
684 static from our AM radio. I didn't think he'd start a
685 revolution&mdash; start up a whole damn new industry to compete with
686 RCA.<footnote><para> See <quote>Saints: The Heroes and Geniuses of the
687 Electronic Era,</quote> First Electronic Church of America, at
688 www.webstationone.com/fecha, available at
689
690 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #1</ulink>.
691 </para></footnote>
692 </para>
693 </blockquote>
694 <indexterm id='idxfmradio' class='startofrange'><primary>FM radio</primary></indexterm>
695 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David</primary></indexterm>
696 <para>
697 Armstrong's invention threatened RCA's AM empire, so the company
698 launched a campaign to smother FM radio. While FM may have been a
699 superior technology, Sarnoff was a superior tactician. As one author
700 described,
701 </para>
702 <indexterm id='idxlessinglawrence' class='startofrange'><primary>Lessing, Lawrence</primary></indexterm>
703 <blockquote>
704 <para>
705 The forces for FM, largely engineering, could not overcome the weight
706 of strategy devised by the sales, patent, and legal offices to subdue
707 this threat to corporate position. For FM, if allowed to develop
708 unrestrained, posed &hellip; a complete reordering of radio power
709 &hellip; and the eventual overthrow of the carefully restricted AM system
710 on which RCA had grown to power.<footnote><para>Lessing, 226.
711 </para></footnote>
712 </para>
713 </blockquote>
714 <indexterm id='idxfcconfmradio' class='startofrange'><primary>FCC</primary><secondary>on FM radio</secondary></indexterm>
715 <para>
716 RCA at first kept the technology in house, insisting that further
717 tests were needed. When, after two years of testing, Armstrong grew
718 impatient, RCA began to use its power with the government to stall
719 FM radio's deployment generally. In 1936, RCA hired the former head
720 of the FCC and assigned him the task of assuring that the FCC assign
721 spectrum in a way that would castrate FM&mdash;principally by moving FM
722 radio to a different band of spectrum. At first, these efforts failed. But
723 when Armstrong and the nation were distracted by World War II,
724 RCA's work began to be more successful. Soon after the war ended, the
725 FCC announced a set of policies that would have one clear effect: FM
726 radio would be crippled. As Lawrence Lessing described it,
727 </para>
728 <!-- PAGE BREAK 21 -->
729 <blockquote>
730 <para>
731 The series of body blows that FM radio received right after the
732 war, in a series of rulings manipulated through the FCC by the
733 big radio interests, were almost incredible in their force and
734 deviousness.<footnote><para>
735 Lessing, 256.
736 </para></footnote>
737 </para>
738 </blockquote>
739 <indexterm startref='idxlessinglawrence' class='endofrange'/>
740 <indexterm><primary>AT&amp;T</primary></indexterm>
741 <para>
742 To make room in the spectrum for RCA's latest gamble, television,
743 FM radio users were to be moved to a totally new spectrum band. The
744 power of FM radio stations was also cut, meaning FM could no longer
745 be used to beam programs from one part of the country to another.
746 (This change was strongly supported by AT&amp;T, because the loss of
747 FM relaying stations would mean radio stations would have to buy
748 wired links from AT&amp;T.) The spread of FM radio was thus choked, at
749 least temporarily.
750 </para>
751 <indexterm startref='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='endofrange'/>
752 <indexterm startref='idxfcconfmradio' class='endofrange'/>
753 <para>
754 Armstrong resisted RCA's efforts. In response, RCA resisted
755 Armstrong's patents. After incorporating FM technology into the
756 emerging standard for television, RCA declared the patents
757 invalid&mdash;baselessly, and almost fifteen years after they were
758 issued. It thus refused to pay him royalties. For six years, Armstrong
759 fought an expensive war of litigation to defend the patents. Finally,
760 just as the patents expired, RCA offered a settlement so low that it
761 would not even cover Armstrong's lawyers' fees. Defeated, broken, and
762 now broke, in 1954 Armstrong wrote a short note to his wife and then
763 stepped out of a thirteenth-story window to his death.
764 </para>
765 <indexterm startref='idxfmradio' class='endofrange'/>
766 <indexterm startref='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='endofrange'/>
767 <para>
768 This is how the law sometimes works. Not often this tragically, and
769 rarely with heroic drama, but sometimes, this is how it works. From
770 the beginning, government and government agencies have been subject to
771 capture. They are more likely captured when a powerful interest is
772 threatened by either a legal or technical change. That powerful
773 interest too often exerts its influence within the government to get
774 the government to protect it. The rhetoric of this protection is of
775 course always public spirited; the reality is something
776 different. Ideas that were as solid as rock in one age, but that, left
777 to themselves, would crumble in
778 <!--PAGE BREAK 22-->
779 another, are sustained through this subtle corruption of our political
780 process. RCA had what the Causbys did not: the power to stifle the
781 effect of technological change.
782 </para>
783 <indexterm startref='idxrca' class='endofrange'/>
784 <indexterm startref='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='endofrange'/>
785 <indexterm id='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>development of</secondary></indexterm>
786 <para>
787 <emphasis role="strong">There's no</emphasis> single inventor of the Internet. Nor is there any good date
788 upon which to mark its birth. Yet in a very short time, the Internet
789 has become part of ordinary American life. According to the Pew
790 Internet and American Life Project, 58 percent of Americans had access
791 to the Internet in 2002, up from 49 percent two years
792 before.<footnote><para>
793 Amanda Lenhart, <quote>The Ever-Shifting Internet Population: A New Look at
794 Internet Access and the Digital Divide,</quote> Pew Internet and American
795 Life Project, 15 April 2003: 6, available at
796 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #2</ulink>.
797 </para></footnote>
798 That number could well exceed two thirds of the nation by the end
799 of 2004.
800 </para>
801 <para>
802 As the Internet has been integrated into ordinary life, it has
803 changed things. Some of these changes are technical&mdash;the Internet has
804 made communication faster, it has lowered the cost of gathering data,
805 and so on. These technical changes are not the focus of this book. They
806 are important. They are not well understood. But they are the sort of
807 thing that would simply go away if we all just switched the Internet off.
808 They don't affect people who don't use the Internet, or at least they
809 don't affect them directly. They are the proper subject of a book about
810 the Internet. But this is not a book about the Internet.
811 </para>
812 <para>
813 Instead, this book is about an effect of the Internet beyond the
814 Internet itself: an effect upon how culture is made. My claim is that
815 the Internet has induced an important and unrecognized change in that
816 process. That change will radically transform a tradition that is as
817 old as the Republic itself. Most, if they recognized this change,
818 would reject it. Yet most don't even see the change that the Internet
819 has introduced.
820 </para>
821 <indexterm startref='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='endofrange'/>
822 <indexterm><primary>Barlow, Joel</primary></indexterm>
823 <indexterm id='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='startofrange'><primary>culture</primary><secondary>commercial vs. noncommercial</secondary></indexterm>
824 <indexterm><primary>Webster, Noah</primary></indexterm>
825 <para>
826 We can glimpse a sense of this change by distinguishing between
827 commercial and noncommercial culture, and by mapping the law's
828 regulation of each. By <quote>commercial culture</quote> I mean that part of our
829 culture that is produced and sold or produced to be sold. By
830 <quote>noncommercial culture</quote> I mean all the rest. When old men sat around
831 parks or on
832 <!-- PAGE BREAK 23 -->
833 street corners telling stories that kids and others consumed, that was
834 noncommercial culture. When Noah Webster published his <quote>Reader,</quote> or
835 Joel Barlow his poetry, that was commercial culture.
836 </para>
837 <para>
838 At the beginning of our history, and for just about the whole of our
839 tradition, noncommercial culture was essentially unregulated. Of
840 course, if your stories were lewd, or if your song disturbed the
841 peace, then the law might intervene. But the law was never directly
842 concerned with the creation or spread of this form of culture, and it
843 left this culture <quote>free.</quote> The ordinary ways in which ordinary
844 individuals shared and transformed their culture&mdash;telling
845 stories, reenacting scenes from plays or TV, participating in fan
846 clubs, sharing music, making tapes&mdash;were left alone by the law.
847 </para>
848 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>commercial creativity as primary purpose of</secondary></indexterm>
849 <para>
850 The focus of the law was on commercial creativity. At first slightly,
851 then quite extensively, the law protected the incentives of creators by
852 granting them exclusive rights to their creative work, so that they could
853 sell those exclusive rights in a commercial
854 marketplace.<footnote>
855 <para>
856 This is not the only purpose of copyright, though it is the overwhelmingly
857 primary purpose of the copyright established in the federal constitution.
858 State copyright law historically protected not just the commercial interest in
859 publication, but also a privacy interest. By granting authors the exclusive
860 right to first publication, state copyright law gave authors the power to
861 control the spread of facts about them. See Samuel D. Warren and Louis
862 D. Brandeis, <quote>The Right to Privacy,</quote> Harvard Law Review 4 (1890): 193,
863 198&ndash;200.
864 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.</primary></indexterm>
865 </para></footnote>
866 This is also, of course, an important part of creativity and culture,
867 and it has become an increasingly important part in America. But in no
868 sense was it dominant within our tradition. It was instead just one
869 part, a controlled part, balanced with the free.
870 </para>
871 <indexterm><primary>free culture</primary><secondary> permission culture vs.</secondary></indexterm>
872 <indexterm><primary>permission culture</primary><secondary> free culture vs.</secondary></indexterm>
873 <para>
874 This rough divide between the free and the controlled has now
875 been erased.<footnote><para>
876 See Jessica Litman, <citetitle>Digital Copyright</citetitle> (New York: Prometheus Books,
877 2001), ch. 13.
878 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica</primary></indexterm>
879 </para></footnote>
880 The Internet has set the stage for this erasure and, pushed by big
881 media, the law has now affected it. For the first time in our
882 tradition, the ordinary ways in which individuals create and share
883 culture fall within the reach of the regulation of the law, which has
884 expanded to draw within its control a vast amount of culture and
885 creativity that it never reached before. The technology that preserved
886 the balance of our history&mdash;between uses of our culture that were
887 free and uses of our culture that were only upon permission&mdash;has
888 been undone. The consequence is that we are less and less a free
889 culture, more and more a permission culture.
890 </para>
891 <!-- PAGE BREAK 24 -->
892 <indexterm><primary>protection of artists vs. business interests</primary></indexterm>
893 <para>
894 This change gets justified as necessary to protect commercial
895 creativity. And indeed, protectionism is precisely its
896 motivation. But the protectionism that justifies the changes that I
897 will describe below is not the limited and balanced sort that has
898 defined the law in the past. This is not a protectionism to protect
899 artists. It is instead a protectionism to protect certain forms of
900 business. Corporations threatened by the potential of the Internet to
901 change the way both commercial and noncommercial culture are made and
902 shared have united to induce lawmakers to use the law to protect
903 them. It is the story of RCA and Armstrong; it is the dream of the
904 Causbys.
905 </para>
906 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='endofrange'/>
907 <para>
908 For the Internet has unleashed an extraordinary possibility for many
909 to participate in the process of building and cultivating a culture
910 that reaches far beyond local boundaries. That power has changed the
911 marketplace for making and cultivating culture generally, and that
912 change in turn threatens established content industries. The Internet
913 is thus to the industries that built and distributed content in the
914 twentieth century what FM radio was to AM radio, or what the truck was
915 to the railroad industry of the nineteenth century: the beginning of
916 the end, or at least a substantial transformation. Digital
917 technologies, tied to the Internet, could produce a vastly more
918 competitive and vibrant market for building and cultivating culture;
919 that market could include a much wider and more diverse range of
920 creators; those creators could produce and distribute a much more
921 vibrant range of creativity; and depending upon a few important
922 factors, those creators could earn more on average from this system
923 than creators do today&mdash;all so long as the RCAs of our day don't
924 use the law to protect themselves against this competition.
925 </para>
926 <para>
927 Yet, as I argue in the pages that follow, that is precisely what is
928 happening in our culture today. These modern-day equivalents of the
929 early twentieth-century radio or nineteenth-century railroads are
930 using their power to get the law to protect them against this new,
931 more efficient, more vibrant technology for building culture. They are
932 succeeding in their plan to remake the Internet before the Internet
933 remakes them.
934 </para>
935 <indexterm startref='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='endofrange'/>
936 <indexterm><primary>Valenti, Jack</primary><secondary> on creative property rights</secondary></indexterm>
937 <para>
938 It doesn't seem this way to many. The battles over copyright and the
939 <!-- PAGE BREAK 25 -->
940 Internet seem remote to most. To the few who follow them, they seem
941 mainly about a much simpler brace of questions&mdash;whether <quote>piracy</quote> will
942 be permitted, and whether <quote>property</quote> will be protected. The <quote>war</quote> that
943 has been waged against the technologies of the Internet&mdash;what
944 Motion Picture Association of America (MPAA) president Jack Valenti
945 calls his <quote>own terrorist war</quote><footnote><para>
946 Amy Harmon, <quote>Black Hawk Download: Moving Beyond Music, Pirates
947 Use New Tools to Turn the Net into an Illicit Video Club,</quote> <citetitle>New York
948 Times</citetitle>, 17 January 2002.
949 </para></footnote>&mdash;has been framed as a battle about the
950 rule of law and respect for property. To know which side to take in this
951 war, most think that we need only decide whether we're for property or
952 against it.
953 </para>
954 <para>
955 If those really were the choices, then I would be with Jack Valenti
956 and the content industry. I, too, am a believer in property, and
957 especially in the importance of what Mr. Valenti nicely calls
958 <quote>creative property.</quote> I believe that <quote>piracy</quote> is wrong, and that the
959 law, properly tuned, should punish <quote>piracy,</quote> whether on or off the
960 Internet.
961 </para>
962 <para>
963 But those simple beliefs mask a much more fundamental question
964 and a much more dramatic change. My fear is that unless we come to see
965 this change, the war to rid the world of Internet <quote>pirates</quote> will also rid our
966 culture of values that have been integral to our tradition from the start.
967 </para>
968 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.</primary><secondary>First Amendment to</secondary></indexterm>
969 <indexterm><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>as protection of creators</secondary></indexterm>
970 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment</primary></indexterm>
971 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock</primary></indexterm>
972 <para>
973 These values built a tradition that, for at least the first 180 years of
974 our Republic, guaranteed creators the right to build freely upon their
975 past, and protected creators and innovators from either state or private
976 control. The First Amendment protected creators against state control.
977 And as Professor Neil Netanel powerfully argues,<footnote>
978 <para>
979 Neil W. Netanel, <quote>Copyright and a Democratic Civil Society,</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
980 Journal</citetitle> 106 (1996): 283.
981 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock</primary></indexterm>
982 </para></footnote>
983 copyright law, properly balanced, protected creators against private
984 control. Our tradition was thus neither Soviet nor the tradition of
985 patrons. It instead carved out a wide berth within which creators
986 could cultivate and extend our culture.
987 </para>
988 <para>
989 Yet the law's response to the Internet, when tied to changes in the
990 technology of the Internet itself, has massively increased the
991 effective regulation of creativity in America. To build upon or
992 critique the culture around us one must ask, Oliver Twist&ndash;like,
993 for permission first. Permission is, of course, often
994 granted&mdash;but it is not often granted to the critical or the
995 independent. We have built a kind of cultural nobility; those within
996 the noble class live easily; those outside it don't. But it is
997 nobility of any form that is alien to our tradition.
998 </para>
999 <!-- PAGE BREAK 26. FIXME: Should "Is it" be "It is" ? -->
1000 <para>
1001 The story that follows is about this war. Is it not about the
1002 <quote>centrality of technology</quote> to ordinary life. I don't believe in gods,
1003 digital or otherwise. Nor is it an effort to demonize any individual
1004 or group, for neither do I believe in a devil, corporate or
1005 otherwise. It is not a morality tale. Nor is it a call to jihad
1006 against an industry.
1007 </para>
1008 <para>
1009 It is instead an effort to understand a hopelessly destructive war
1010 inspired by the technologies of the Internet but reaching far beyond
1011 its code. And by understanding this battle, it is an effort to map
1012 peace. There is no good reason for the current struggle around
1013 Internet technologies to continue. There will be great harm to our
1014 tradition and culture if it is allowed to continue unchecked. We must
1015 come to understand the source of this war. We must resolve it soon.
1016 </para>
1017 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
1018 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
1019 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='startofrange'><primary>intellectual property rights</primary></indexterm>
1020 <para>
1021 <emphasis role="strong">Like the Causbys'</emphasis> battle, this war is, in part, about <quote>property.</quote> The
1022 property of this war is not as tangible as the Causbys', and no
1023 innocent chicken has yet to lose its life. Yet the ideas surrounding
1024 this <quote>property</quote> are as obvious to most as the Causbys' claim about the
1025 sacredness of their farm was to them. We are the Causbys. Most of us
1026 take for granted the extraordinarily powerful claims that the owners
1027 of <quote>intellectual property</quote> now assert. Most of us, like the Causbys,
1028 treat these claims as obvious. And hence we, like the Causbys, object
1029 when a new technology interferes with this property. It is as plain to
1030 us as it was to them that the new technologies of the Internet are
1031 <quote>trespassing</quote> upon legitimate claims of <quote>property.</quote> It is as plain to
1032 us as it was to them that the law should intervene to stop this
1033 trespass.
1034 </para>
1035 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
1036 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
1037 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers</primary></indexterm>
1038 <para>
1039 And thus, when geeks and technologists defend their Armstrong or
1040 Wright brothers technology, most of us are simply unsympathetic.
1041 Common sense does not revolt. Unlike in the case of the unlucky
1042 Causbys, common sense is on the side of the property owners in this
1043 war. Unlike
1044 <!--PAGE BREAK 27-->
1045 the lucky Wright brothers, the Internet has not inspired a revolution
1046 on its side.
1047 </para>
1048 <indexterm><primary>power, concentration of</primary></indexterm>
1049 <para>
1050 My hope is to push this common sense along. I have become increasingly
1051 amazed by the power of this idea of intellectual property and, more
1052 importantly, its power to disable critical thought by policy makers
1053 and citizens. There has never been a time in our history when more of
1054 our <quote>culture</quote> was as <quote>owned</quote> as it is now. And yet there has never
1055 been a time when the concentration of power to control the
1056 <emphasis>uses</emphasis> of culture has been as unquestioningly
1057 accepted as it is now.
1058 </para>
1059 <para>
1060 The puzzle is, Why? Is it because we have come to understand a truth
1061 about the value and importance of absolute property over ideas and
1062 culture? Is it because we have discovered that our tradition of
1063 rejecting such an absolute claim was wrong?
1064 </para>
1065 <para>
1066 Or is it because the idea of absolute property over ideas and culture
1067 benefits the RCAs of our time and fits our own unreflective intuitions?
1068 </para>
1069 <para>
1070 Is the radical shift away from our tradition of free culture an instance
1071 of America correcting a mistake from its past, as we did after a bloody
1072 war with slavery, and as we are slowly doing with inequality? Or is the
1073 radical shift away from our tradition of free culture yet another example
1074 of a political system captured by a few powerful special interests?
1075 </para>
1076 <para>
1077 Does common sense lead to the extremes on this question because common
1078 sense actually believes in these extremes? Or does common sense stand
1079 silent in the face of these extremes because, as with Armstrong versus
1080 RCA, the more powerful side has ensured that it has the more powerful
1081 view?
1082 </para>
1083 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
1084 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
1085 <para>
1086 I don't mean to be mysterious. My own views are resolved. I believe it
1087 was right for common sense to revolt against the extremism of the
1088 Causbys. I believe it would be right for common sense to revolt
1089 against the extreme claims made today on behalf of <quote>intellectual
1090 property.</quote> What the law demands today is increasingly as silly as a
1091 sheriff arresting an airplane for trespass. But the consequences of
1092 this silliness will be much more profound.
1093 <!-- PAGE BREAK 28 -->
1094 </para>
1095 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='endofrange'/>
1096 <para>
1097 <emphasis role="strong">The struggle</emphasis> that rages just now centers on two ideas: <quote>piracy</quote> and
1098 <quote>property.</quote> My aim in this book's next two parts is to explore these two
1099 ideas.
1100 </para>
1101 <para>
1102 My method is not the usual method of an academic. I don't want to
1103 plunge you into a complex argument, buttressed with references to
1104 obscure French theorists&mdash;however natural that is for the weird
1105 sort we academics have become. Instead I begin in each part with a
1106 collection of stories that set a context within which these apparently
1107 simple ideas can be more fully understood.
1108 </para>
1109 <para>
1110 The two sections set up the core claim of this book: that while the
1111 Internet has indeed produced something fantastic and new, our
1112 government, pushed by big media to respond to this <quote>something new,</quote> is
1113 destroying something very old. Rather than understanding the changes
1114 the Internet might permit, and rather than taking time to let <quote>common
1115 sense</quote> resolve how best to respond, we are allowing those most
1116 threatened by the changes to use their power to change the
1117 law&mdash;and more importantly, to use their power to change something
1118 fundamental about who we have always been.
1119 </para>
1120 <para>
1121 We allow this, I believe, not because it is right, and not because
1122 most of us really believe in these changes. We allow it because the
1123 interests most threatened are among the most powerful players in our
1124 depressingly compromised process of making law. This book is the story
1125 of one more consequence of this form of corruption&mdash;a consequence
1126 to which most of us remain oblivious.
1127 </para>
1128 </chapter>
1129 <!-- PAGE BREAK 29 -->
1130 <part id="c-piracy">
1131 <title><quote>PIRACY</quote></title>
1132 <partintro>
1133 <!-- PAGE BREAK 30 -->
1134 <indexterm><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>English</secondary></indexterm>
1135 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='startofrange'><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord</primary></indexterm>
1136 <indexterm><primary>music publishing</primary></indexterm>
1137 <indexterm><primary>sheet music</primary></indexterm>
1138 <para>
1139 <emphasis role="strong">Since the inception</emphasis> of the law regulating creative property, there has
1140 been a war against <quote>piracy.</quote> The precise contours of this concept,
1141 <quote>piracy,</quote> are hard to sketch, but the animating injustice is easy to
1142 capture. As Lord Mansfield wrote in a case that extended the reach of
1143 English copyright law to include sheet music,
1144 </para>
1145 <blockquote>
1146 <para>
1147 A person may use the copy by playing it, but he has no right to
1148 rob the author of the profit, by multiplying copies and disposing
1149 of them for his own use.<footnote><para>
1150 <!-- f1 -->
1151 <citetitle>Bach</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Longman</citetitle>, 98 Eng. Rep. 1274 (1777) (Mansfield).
1152 </para></footnote>
1153 </para>
1154 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='endofrange'/>
1155 </blockquote>
1156 <indexterm><primary>Internet</primary><secondary> efficient content distribution on</secondary></indexterm>
1157 <indexterm id='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='startofrange'><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing</primary><secondary>efficiency of</secondary></indexterm>
1158 <para>
1159 Today we are in the middle of another <quote>war</quote> against <quote>piracy.</quote> The
1160 Internet has provoked this war. The Internet makes possible the
1161 efficient spread of content. Peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing is among
1162 the most efficient of the efficient technologies the Internet
1163 enables. Using distributed intelligence, p2p systems facilitate the
1164 easy spread of content in a way unimagined a generation ago.
1165 <!-- PAGE BREAK 31 -->
1166 </para>
1167 <para>
1168 This efficiency does not respect the traditional lines of copyright.
1169 The network doesn't discriminate between the sharing of copyrighted
1170 and uncopyrighted content. Thus has there been a vast amount of
1171 sharing of copyrighted content. That sharing in turn has excited the
1172 war, as copyright owners fear the sharing will <quote>rob the author of the
1173 profit.</quote>
1174 </para>
1175 <indexterm startref='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='endofrange'/>
1176 <para>
1177 The warriors have turned to the courts, to the legislatures, and
1178 increasingly to technology to defend their <quote>property</quote> against this
1179 <quote>piracy.</quote> A generation of Americans, the warriors warn, is being
1180 raised to believe that <quote>property</quote> should be <quote>free.</quote> Forget tattoos,
1181 never mind body piercing&mdash;our kids are becoming
1182 <emphasis>thieves</emphasis>!
1183 </para>
1184 <para>
1185 There's no doubt that <quote>piracy</quote> is wrong, and that pirates should be
1186 punished. But before we summon the executioners, we should put this
1187 notion of <quote>piracy</quote> in some context. For as the concept is increasingly
1188 used, at its core is an extraordinary idea that is almost certainly wrong.
1189 </para>
1190 <para>
1191 The idea goes something like this:
1192 </para>
1193 <blockquote>
1194 <para>
1195 Creative work has value; whenever I use, or take, or build upon
1196 the creative work of others, I am taking from them something of
1197 value. Whenever I take something of value from someone else, I
1198 should have their permission. The taking of something of value
1199 from someone else without permission is wrong. It is a form of
1200 piracy.
1201 </para>
1202 </blockquote>
1203 <indexterm><primary>ASCAP</primary></indexterm>
1204 <indexterm><primary>Dreyfuss, Rochelle</primary></indexterm>
1205 <indexterm><primary>Girl Scouts</primary></indexterm>
1206 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='startofrange'><primary>creative property</primary><secondary><quote>if value, then right</quote> theory of</secondary></indexterm>
1207 <indexterm id='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='startofrange'><primary><quote>if value, then right</quote> theory</primary></indexterm>
1208 <para>
1209 This view runs deep within the current debates. It is what NYU law
1210 professor Rochelle Dreyfuss criticizes as the <quote>if value, then right</quote>
1211 theory of creative property<footnote><para>
1212 <!-- f2 -->
1213 See Rochelle Dreyfuss, <quote>Expressive Genericity: Trademarks as Language
1214 in the Pepsi Generation,</quote> <citetitle>Notre Dame Law Review</citetitle> 65 (1990): 397.
1215 </para></footnote>
1216 &mdash;if there is value, then someone must have a
1217 right to that value. It is the perspective that led a composers' rights
1218 organization, ASCAP, to sue the Girl Scouts for failing to pay for the
1219 songs that girls sang around Girl Scout campfires.<footnote><para>
1220 <!-- f3 -->
1221 Lisa Bannon, <quote>The Birds May Sing, but Campers Can't Unless They Pay
1222 Up,</quote> <citetitle>Wall Street Journal</citetitle>, 21 August 1996, available at
1223 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #3</ulink>; Jonathan
1224 Zittrain, <quote>Calling Off the Copyright War: In Battle of Property vs. Free
1225 Speech, No One Wins,</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe</citetitle>, 24 November 2002.
1226 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan</primary></indexterm>
1227 </para></footnote>
1228 There was <quote>value</quote> (the songs) so there must have been a
1229 <quote>right</quote>&mdash;even against the Girl Scouts.
1230 </para>
1231 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='endofrange'/>
1232 <para>
1233 This idea is certainly a possible understanding of how creative
1234 property should work. It might well be a possible design for a system
1235 <!-- PAGE BREAK 32 -->
1236 of law protecting creative property. But the <quote>if value, then right</quote>
1237 theory of creative property has never been America's theory of
1238 creative property. It has never taken hold within our law.
1239 </para>
1240 <indexterm startref='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='endofrange'/>
1241 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work</secondary></indexterm>
1242 <indexterm id='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='startofrange'><primary>creativity</primary><secondary>legal restrictions on</secondary></indexterm>
1243 <para>
1244 Instead, in our tradition, intellectual property is an instrument. It
1245 sets the groundwork for a richly creative society but remains
1246 subservient to the value of creativity. The current debate has this
1247 turned around. We have become so concerned with protecting the
1248 instrument that we are losing sight of the value.
1249 </para>
1250 <para>
1251 The source of this confusion is a distinction that the law no longer
1252 takes care to draw&mdash;the distinction between republishing someone's
1253 work on the one hand and building upon or transforming that work on
1254 the other. Copyright law at its birth had only publishing as its concern;
1255 copyright law today regulates both.
1256 </para>
1257 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='endofrange'/>
1258 <para>
1259 Before the technologies of the Internet, this conflation didn't matter
1260 all that much. The technologies of publishing were expensive; that
1261 meant the vast majority of publishing was commercial. Commercial
1262 entities could bear the burden of the law&mdash;even the burden of the
1263 Byzantine complexity that copyright law has become. It was just one
1264 more expense of doing business.
1265 </para>
1266 <indexterm><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>creativity impeded by</secondary></indexterm>
1267 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard</primary></indexterm>
1268 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)</primary></indexterm>
1269 <para>
1270 But with the birth of the Internet, this natural limit to the reach of
1271 the law has disappeared. The law controls not just the creativity of
1272 commercial creators but effectively that of anyone. Although that
1273 expansion would not matter much if copyright law regulated only
1274 <quote>copying,</quote> when the law regulates as broadly and obscurely as it does,
1275 the extension matters a lot. The burden of this law now vastly
1276 outweighs any original benefit&mdash;certainly as it affects
1277 noncommercial creativity, and increasingly as it affects commercial
1278 creativity as well. Thus, as we'll see more clearly in the chapters
1279 below, the law's role is less and less to support creativity, and more
1280 and more to protect certain industries against competition. Just at
1281 the time digital technology could unleash an extraordinary range of
1282 commercial and noncommercial creativity, the law burdens this
1283 creativity with insanely complex and vague rules and with the threat
1284 of obscenely severe penalties. We may
1285 <!-- PAGE BREAK 33 -->
1286 be seeing, as Richard Florida writes, the <quote>Rise of the Creative
1287 Class.</quote><footnote>
1288 <para>
1289 <!-- f4 -->
1290 In <citetitle>The Rise of the Creative Class</citetitle> (New York:
1291 Basic Books, 2002), Richard Florida documents a shift in the nature of
1292 labor toward a labor of creativity. His work, however, doesn't
1293 directly address the legal conditions under which that creativity is
1294 enabled or stifled. I certainly agree with him about the importance
1295 and significance of this change, but I also believe the conditions
1296 under which it will be enabled are much more tenuous.
1297
1298 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard</primary></indexterm>
1299 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)</primary></indexterm>
1300 </para></footnote>
1301 Unfortunately, we are also seeing an extraordinary rise of regulation of
1302 this creative class.
1303 </para>
1304 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='endofrange'/>
1305 <para>
1306 These burdens make no sense in our tradition. We should begin by
1307 understanding that tradition a bit more and by placing in their proper
1308 context the current battles about behavior labeled <quote>piracy.</quote>
1309 </para>
1310 </partintro>
1311
1312 <!-- PAGE BREAK 34 -->
1313 <chapter label="1" id="creators">
1314 <title>CHAPTER ONE: Creators</title>
1315 <indexterm id='idxanimatedcartoons' class='startofrange'><primary>animated cartoons</primary></indexterm>
1316 <indexterm id='idxcartoonfilms' class='startofrange'><primary>cartoon films</primary></indexterm>
1317 <indexterm id='idxfilmsanimated' class='startofrange'><primary>films</primary><secondary>animated</secondary></indexterm>
1318 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatwillie' class='startofrange'><primary>Steamboat Willie</primary></indexterm>
1319 <indexterm id='idxmickeymouse' class='startofrange'><primary>Mickey Mouse</primary></indexterm>
1320 <para>
1321 <emphasis role="strong">In 1928</emphasis>, a cartoon character was born. An early Mickey Mouse
1322 made his debut in May of that year, in a silent flop called <citetitle>Plane Crazy</citetitle>.
1323 In November, in New York City's Colony Theater, in the first widely
1324 distributed cartoon synchronized with sound, <citetitle>Steamboat Willie</citetitle> brought
1325 to life the character that would become Mickey Mouse.
1326 </para>
1327 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
1328 <para>
1329 Synchronized sound had been introduced to film a year earlier in the
1330 movie <citetitle>The Jazz Singer</citetitle>. That success led Walt Disney to copy the
1331 technique and mix sound with cartoons. No one knew whether it would
1332 work or, if it did work, whether it would win an audience. But when
1333 Disney ran a test in the summer of 1928, the results were unambiguous.
1334 As Disney describes that first experiment,
1335 </para>
1336 <blockquote>
1337 <para>
1338 A couple of my boys could read music, and one of them could play
1339 a mouth organ. We put them in a room where they could not see
1340 the screen and arranged to pipe their sound into the room where
1341 our wives and friends were going to see the picture.
1342 <!-- PAGE BREAK 35 -->
1343 </para>
1344 <para>
1345 The boys worked from a music and sound-effects score. After several
1346 false starts, sound and action got off with the gun. The mouth
1347 organist played the tune, the rest of us in the sound department
1348 bammed tin pans and blew slide whistles on the beat. The
1349 synchronization was pretty close.
1350 </para>
1351 <para>
1352 The effect on our little audience was nothing less than electric.
1353 They responded almost instinctively to this union of sound and
1354 motion. I thought they were kidding me. So they put me in the audience
1355 and ran the action again. It was terrible, but it was wonderful! And
1356 it was something new!<footnote><para>
1357 <!-- f1 -->
1358 Leonard Maltin, <citetitle>Of Mice and Magic: A History of American Animated
1359 Cartoons</citetitle> (New York: Penguin Books, 1987), 34&ndash;35.
1360 </para></footnote>
1361 </para>
1362 </blockquote>
1363 <indexterm><primary>Iwerks, Ub</primary></indexterm>
1364 <para>
1365 Disney's then partner, and one of animation's most extraordinary
1366 talents, Ub Iwerks, put it more strongly: <quote>I have never been so thrilled
1367 in my life. Nothing since has ever equaled it.</quote>
1368 </para>
1369 <para>
1370 Disney had created something very new, based upon something relatively
1371 new. Synchronized sound brought life to a form of creativity that had
1372 rarely&mdash;except in Disney's hands&mdash;been anything more than
1373 filler for other films. Throughout animation's early history, it was
1374 Disney's invention that set the standard that others struggled to
1375 match. And quite often, Disney's great genius, his spark of
1376 creativity, was built upon the work of others.
1377 </para>
1378 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt' class='endofrange'/>
1379 <indexterm id='idxkeatonbuster' class='startofrange'><primary>Keaton, Buster</primary></indexterm>
1380 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='startofrange'><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.</primary></indexterm>
1381 <para>
1382 This much is familiar. What you might not know is that 1928 also marks
1383 another important transition. In that year, a comic (as opposed to
1384 cartoon) genius created his last independently produced silent film.
1385 That genius was Buster Keaton. The film was <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr</citetitle>.
1386 </para>
1387 <para>
1388 Keaton was born into a vaudeville family in 1895. In the era of silent
1389 film, he had mastered using broad physical comedy as a way to spark
1390 uncontrollable laughter from his audience. <citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1391 Jr</citetitle>. was a classic of this form, famous among film buffs for its
1392 incredible stunts. The film was classic Keaton&mdash;wildly popular
1393 and among the best of its genre.
1394 </para>
1395 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='startofrange'><primary>derivative works</primary><secondary>piracy vs.</secondary></indexterm>
1396 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='startofrange'><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.</secondary></indexterm>
1397 <para>
1398 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr</citetitle>. appeared before Disney's cartoon Steamboat
1399 Willie.
1400 <!-- PAGE BREAK 36 -->
1401 The coincidence of titles is not coincidental. Steamboat Willie is a
1402 direct cartoon parody of Steamboat Bill,<footnote><para>
1403 <!-- f2 -->
1404 I am grateful to David Gerstein and his careful history, described at
1405 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #4</ulink>.
1406 According to Dave Smith of the Disney Archives, Disney paid royalties to
1407 use the music for five songs in <citetitle>Steamboat Willie</citetitle>: <quote>Steamboat Bill,</quote> <quote>The
1408 Simpleton</quote> (Delille), <quote>Mischief Makers</quote> (Carbonara), <quote>Joyful Hurry No. 1</quote>
1409 (Baron), and <quote>Gawky Rube</quote> (Lakay). A sixth song, <quote>The Turkey in the
1410 Straw,</quote> was already in the public domain. Letter from David Smith to
1411 Harry Surden, 10 July 2003, on file with author.
1412 </para></footnote>
1413 and both are built upon a common song as a source. It is not just from
1414 the invention of synchronized sound in <citetitle>The Jazz Singer</citetitle> that we
1415 get <citetitle>Steamboat Willie</citetitle>. It is also from Buster Keaton's invention of
1416 Steamboat Bill, Jr., itself inspired by the song <quote>Steamboat Bill,</quote>
1417 that we get Steamboat Willie, and then from Steamboat Willie, Mickey
1418 Mouse.
1419 </para>
1420 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatwillie' class='endofrange'/>
1421 <indexterm startref='idxmickeymouse' class='endofrange'/>
1422 <indexterm startref='idxkeatonbuster' class='endofrange'/>
1423 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='endofrange'/>
1424 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='startofrange'><primary>creativity</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works</secondary></indexterm>
1425 <indexterm id='idxdisneyinc' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Inc.</primary></indexterm>
1426 <para>
1427 This <quote>borrowing</quote> was nothing unique, either for Disney or for the
1428 industry. Disney was always parroting the feature-length mainstream
1429 films of his day.<footnote><para>
1430 <!-- f3 -->
1431 He was also a fan of the public domain. See Chris Sprigman, <quote>The Mouse
1432 that Ate the Public Domain,</quote> Findlaw, 5 March 2002, at
1433 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #5</ulink>.
1434 </para></footnote>
1435 So did many others. Early cartoons are filled with
1436 knockoffs&mdash;slight variations on winning themes; retellings of
1437 ancient stories. The key to success was the brilliance of the
1438 differences. With Disney, it was sound that gave his animation its
1439 spark. Later, it was the quality of his work relative to the
1440 production-line cartoons with which he competed. Yet these additions
1441 were built upon a base that was borrowed. Disney added to the work of
1442 others before him, creating something new out of something just barely
1443 old.
1444 </para>
1445 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales' class='startofrange'><primary>Grimm fairy tales</primary></indexterm>
1446 <para>
1447 Sometimes this borrowing was slight. Sometimes it was significant.
1448 Think about the fairy tales of the Brothers Grimm. If you're as
1449 oblivious as I was, you're likely to think that these tales are happy,
1450 sweet stories, appropriate for any child at bedtime. In fact, the
1451 Grimm fairy tales are, well, for us, grim. It is a rare and perhaps
1452 overly ambitious parent who would dare to read these bloody,
1453 moralistic stories to his or her child, at bedtime or anytime.
1454 </para>
1455 <para>
1456 Disney took these stories and retold them in a way that carried them
1457 into a new age. He animated the stories, with both characters and
1458 light. Without removing the elements of fear and danger altogether, he
1459 made funny what was dark and injected a genuine emotion of compassion
1460 where before there was fear. And not just with the work of the
1461 Brothers Grimm. Indeed, the catalog of Disney work drawing upon the
1462 work of others is astonishing when set together: <citetitle>Snow White</citetitle>
1463 (1937), <citetitle>Fantasia</citetitle> (1940), <citetitle>Pinocchio</citetitle> (1940), <citetitle>Dumbo</citetitle>
1464 (1941), <citetitle>Bambi</citetitle> (1942), <citetitle>Song of the South</citetitle> (1946),
1465 <citetitle>Cinderella</citetitle> (1950), <citetitle>Alice in Wonderland</citetitle> (1951), <citetitle>Robin
1466 Hood</citetitle> (1952), <citetitle>Peter Pan</citetitle> (1953), <citetitle>Lady and the Tramp</citetitle>
1467 <!-- PAGE BREAK 37 -->
1468 (1955), <citetitle>Mulan</citetitle> (1998), <citetitle>Sleeping Beauty</citetitle> (1959), <citetitle>101
1469 Dalmatians</citetitle> (1961), <citetitle>The Sword in the Stone</citetitle> (1963), and
1470 <citetitle>The Jungle Book</citetitle> (1967)&mdash;not to mention a recent example
1471 that we should perhaps quickly forget, <citetitle>Treasure Planet</citetitle>
1472 (2003). In all of these cases, Disney (or Disney, Inc.) ripped
1473 creativity from the culture around him, mixed that creativity with his
1474 own extraordinary talent, and then burned that mix into the soul of
1475 his culture. Rip, mix, and burn.
1476 </para>
1477 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales' class='endofrange'/>
1478 <para>
1479 This is a kind of creativity. It is a creativity that we should
1480 remember and celebrate. There are some who would say that there is no
1481 creativity except this kind. We don't need to go that far to recognize
1482 its importance. We could call this <quote>Disney creativity,</quote> though that
1483 would be a bit misleading. It is, more precisely, <quote>Walt Disney
1484 creativity</quote>&mdash;a form of expression and genius that builds upon the
1485 culture around us and makes it something different.
1486 </para>
1487 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='endofrange'/>
1488 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='endofrange'/>
1489 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='endofrange'/>
1490 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright</primary><secondary>duration of</secondary></indexterm>
1491 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='startofrange'><primary>public domain</primary><secondary>defined</secondary></indexterm>
1492 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='startofrange'><primary>public domain</primary><secondary>traditional term for conversion to</secondary></indexterm>
1493 <para> In 1928, the culture that Disney was free to draw upon was
1494 relatively fresh. The public domain in 1928 was not very old and was
1495 therefore quite vibrant. The average term of copyright was just around
1496 thirty years&mdash;for that minority of creative work that was in fact
1497 copyrighted.<footnote><para>
1498 <!-- f4 -->
1499 Until 1976, copyright law granted an author the possibility of two terms: an
1500 initial term and a renewal term. I have calculated the <quote>average</quote> term by
1501 determining
1502 the weighted average of total registrations for any particular year,
1503 and the proportion renewing. Thus, if 100 copyrights are registered in year
1504 1, and only 15 are renewed, and the renewal term is 28 years, then the
1505 average
1506 term is 32.2 years. For the renewal data and other relevant data, see the
1507 Web site associated with this book, available at
1508 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #6</ulink>.
1509 </para></footnote>
1510 That means that for thirty years, on average, the authors or
1511 copyright holders of a creative work had an <quote>exclusive right</quote> to control
1512 certain uses of the work. To use this copyrighted work in limited ways
1513 required the permission of the copyright owner.
1514 </para>
1515 <para>
1516 At the end of a copyright term, a work passes into the public domain.
1517 No permission is then needed to draw upon or use that work. No
1518 permission and, hence, no lawyers. The public domain is a <quote>lawyer-free
1519 zone.</quote> Thus, most of the content from the nineteenth century was free
1520 for Disney to use and build upon in 1928. It was free for
1521 anyone&mdash; whether connected or not, whether rich or not, whether
1522 approved or not&mdash;to use and build upon.
1523 </para>
1524 <indexterm startref='idxanimatedcartoons' class='endofrange'/>
1525 <indexterm startref='idxfilmsanimated' class='endofrange'/>
1526 <para>
1527 This is the ways things always were&mdash;until quite recently. For most
1528 of our history, the public domain was just over the horizon. From
1529 until 1978, the average copyright term was never more than thirty-two
1530 years, meaning that most culture just a generation and a half old was
1531
1532 <!-- PAGE BREAK 38 -->
1533 free for anyone to build upon without the permission of anyone else.
1534 Today's equivalent would be for creative work from the 1960s and 1970s
1535 to now be free for the next Walt Disney to build upon without
1536 permission. Yet today, the public domain is presumptive only for
1537 content from before the Great Depression.
1538 </para>
1539 <indexterm startref='idxcartoonfilms' class='endofrange'/>
1540 <indexterm startref='idxdisneyinc' class='endofrange'/>
1541 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='endofrange'/>
1542 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='endofrange'/>
1543 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='endofrange'/>
1544 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
1545 <para>
1546 <emphasis role="strong">Of course</emphasis>, Walt Disney had no monopoly on <quote>Walt Disney creativity.</quote>
1547 Nor does America. The norm of free culture has, until recently, and
1548 except within totalitarian nations, been broadly exploited and quite
1549 universal.
1550 </para>
1551 <indexterm id='idxcomicsjapanese' class='startofrange'><primary>comics, Japanese</primary></indexterm>
1552 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='startofrange'><primary>derivative works</primary><secondary>piracy vs.</secondary></indexterm>
1553 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics' class='startofrange'><primary>Japanese comics</primary></indexterm>
1554 <indexterm id='idxmanga' class='startofrange'><primary>manga</primary></indexterm>
1555 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='startofrange'><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.</secondary></indexterm>
1556 <para>
1557 Consider, for example, a form of creativity that seems strange to many
1558 Americans but that is inescapable within Japanese culture: <citetitle>manga</citetitle>, or
1559 comics. The Japanese are fanatics about comics. Some 40 percent of
1560 publications are comics, and 30 percent of publication revenue derives
1561 from comics. They are everywhere in Japanese society, at every
1562 magazine stand, carried by a large proportion of commuters on Japan's
1563 extraordinary system of public transportation.
1564 </para>
1565 <para>
1566 Americans tend to look down upon this form of culture. That's an
1567 unattractive characteristic of ours. We're likely to misunderstand
1568 much about manga, because few of us have ever read anything close to
1569 the stories that these <quote>graphic novels</quote> tell. For the Japanese, manga
1570 cover every aspect of social life. For us, comics are <quote>men in tights.</quote>
1571 And anyway, it's not as if the New York subways are filled with
1572 readers of Joyce or even Hemingway. People of different cultures
1573 distract themselves in different ways, the Japanese in this
1574 interestingly different way.
1575 </para>
1576 <para>
1577 But my purpose here is not to understand manga. It is to describe a
1578 variant on manga that from a lawyer's perspective is quite odd, but
1579 from a Disney perspective is quite familiar.
1580 </para>
1581 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='startofrange'><primary>creativity</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works</secondary></indexterm>
1582 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics' class='startofrange'><primary>doujinshi comics</primary></indexterm>
1583 <para>
1584 This is the phenomenon of <citetitle>doujinshi</citetitle>. Doujinshi are also comics, but
1585 they are a kind of copycat comic. A rich ethic governs the creation of
1586 doujinshi. It is not doujinshi if it is <emphasis>just</emphasis> a
1587 copy; the artist must make a contribution to the art he copies, by
1588 transforming it either subtly or
1589 <!-- PAGE BREAK 39 -->
1590 significantly. A doujinshi comic can thus take a mainstream comic and
1591 develop it differently&mdash;with a different story line. Or the comic can
1592 keep the character in character but change its look slightly. There is no
1593 formula for what makes the doujinshi sufficiently <quote>different.</quote> But they
1594 must be different if they are to be considered true doujinshi. Indeed,
1595 there are committees that review doujinshi for inclusion within shows
1596 and reject any copycat comic that is merely a copy.
1597 </para>
1598 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt2' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
1599 <para>
1600 These copycat comics are not a tiny part of the manga market. They are
1601 huge. More than 33,000 <quote>circles</quote> of creators from across Japan produce
1602 these bits of Walt Disney creativity. More than 450,000 Japanese come
1603 together twice a year, in the largest public gathering in the country,
1604 to exchange and sell them. This market exists in parallel to the
1605 mainstream commercial manga market. In some ways, it obviously
1606 competes with that market, but there is no sustained effort by those
1607 who control the commercial manga market to shut the doujinshi market
1608 down. It flourishes, despite the competition and despite the law.
1609 </para>
1610 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>Japanese</secondary></indexterm>
1611 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.</primary></indexterm>
1612 <para>
1613 The most puzzling feature of the doujinshi market, for those trained
1614 in the law, at least, is that it is allowed to exist at all. Under
1615 Japanese copyright law, which in this respect (on paper) mirrors
1616 American copyright law, the doujinshi market is an illegal
1617 one. Doujinshi are plainly <quote>derivative works.</quote> There is no general
1618 practice by doujinshi artists of securing the permission of the manga
1619 creators. Instead, the practice is simply to take and modify the
1620 creations of others, as Walt Disney did with <citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1621 Jr</citetitle>. Under both Japanese and American law, that <quote>taking</quote> without
1622 the permission of the original copyright owner is illegal. It is an
1623 infringement of the original copyright to make a copy or a derivative
1624 work without the original copyright owner's permission.
1625 </para>
1626 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt2' class='endofrange'/>
1627 <indexterm id='idxwinickjudd' class='startofrange'><primary>Winick, Judd</primary></indexterm>
1628 <para>
1629 Yet this illegal market exists and indeed flourishes in Japan, and in
1630 the view of many, it is precisely because it exists that Japanese manga
1631 flourish. As American graphic novelist Judd Winick said to me, <quote>The
1632 early days of comics in America are very much like what's going on
1633 in Japan now. &hellip; American comics were born out of copying each
1634 <!-- PAGE BREAK 40 -->
1635 other. &hellip; That's how [the artists] learn to draw&mdash;by going into comic
1636 books and not tracing them, but looking at them and copying them</quote>
1637 and building from them.<footnote><para>
1638 <!-- f5 -->
1639 For an excellent history, see Scott McCloud, <citetitle>Reinventing Comics</citetitle> (New
1640 York: Perennial, 2000).
1641 </para></footnote>
1642 </para>
1643 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='endofrange'/>
1644 <indexterm><primary>Superman comics</primary></indexterm>
1645 <para>
1646 American comics now are quite different, Winick explains, in part
1647 because of the legal difficulty of adapting comics the way doujinshi are
1648 allowed. Speaking of Superman, Winick told me, <quote>there are these rules
1649 and you have to stick to them.</quote> There are things Superman <quote>cannot</quote>
1650 do. <quote>As a creator, it's frustrating having to stick to some parameters
1651 which are fifty years old.</quote>
1652 </para>
1653 <indexterm startref='idxwinickjudd' class='endofrange'/>
1654 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>Japanese</secondary></indexterm>
1655 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese</primary></indexterm>
1656 <indexterm id='idxmehrasalil' class='startofrange'><primary>Mehra, Salil</primary></indexterm>
1657 <para>
1658 The norm in Japan mitigates this legal difficulty. Some say it is
1659 precisely the benefit accruing to the Japanese manga market that
1660 explains the mitigation. Temple University law professor Salil Mehra,
1661 for example, hypothesizes that the manga market accepts these
1662 technical violations because they spur the manga market to be more
1663 wealthy and productive. Everyone would be worse off if doujinshi were
1664 banned, so the law does not ban doujinshi.<footnote><para>
1665 <!-- f6 -->
1666 See Salil K. Mehra, <quote>Copyright and Comics in Japan: Does Law Explain
1667 Why All the Comics My Kid Watches Are Japanese Imports?</quote> <citetitle>Rutgers Law
1668 Review</citetitle> 55 (2002): 155, 182. <quote>[T]here might be a collective economic
1669 rationality that would lead manga and anime artists to forgo bringing
1670 legal actions for infringement. One hypothesis is that all manga
1671 artists may be better off collectively if they set aside their
1672 individual self-interest and decide not to press their legal
1673 rights. This is essentially a prisoner's dilemma solved.</quote>
1674 </para></footnote>
1675 </para>
1676 <indexterm startref='idxcomicsjapanese' class='endofrange'/>
1677 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics' class='endofrange'/>
1678 <indexterm startref='idxmanga' class='endofrange'/>
1679 <para>
1680 The problem with this story, however, as Mehra plainly acknowledges,
1681 is that the mechanism producing this laissez faire response is not
1682 clear. It may well be that the market as a whole is better off if
1683 doujinshi are permitted rather than banned, but that doesn't explain
1684 why individual copyright owners don't sue nonetheless. If the law has
1685 no general exception for doujinshi, and indeed in some cases
1686 individual manga artists have sued doujinshi artists, why is there not
1687 a more general pattern of blocking this <quote>free taking</quote> by the doujinshi
1688 culture?
1689 </para>
1690 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='endofrange'/>
1691 <indexterm startref='idxmehrasalil' class='endofrange'/>
1692 <para>
1693 I spent four wonderful months in Japan, and I asked this question
1694 as often as I could. Perhaps the best account in the end was offered by
1695 a friend from a major Japanese law firm. <quote>We don't have enough
1696 lawyers,</quote> he told me one afternoon. There <quote>just aren't enough resources
1697 to prosecute cases like this.</quote>
1698 </para>
1699 <para>
1700 This is a theme to which we will return: that regulation by law is a
1701 function of both the words on the books and the costs of making those
1702 words have effect. For now, focus on the obvious question that is
1703 begged: Would Japan be better off with more lawyers? Would manga
1704 <!-- PAGE BREAK 41 -->
1705 be richer if doujinshi artists were regularly prosecuted? Would the
1706 Japanese gain something important if they could end this practice of
1707 uncompensated sharing? Does piracy here hurt the victims of the
1708 piracy, or does it help them? Would lawyers fighting this piracy help
1709 their clients or hurt them?
1710 </para>
1711 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics' class='endofrange'/>
1712 <para>
1713 <emphasis role='strong'>Let's pause</emphasis> for a moment.
1714 </para>
1715 <para>
1716 If you're like I was a decade ago, or like most people are when they
1717 first start thinking about these issues, then just about now you should
1718 be puzzled about something you hadn't thought through before.
1719 </para>
1720 <para>
1721 We live in a world that celebrates <quote>property.</quote> I am one of those
1722 celebrants. I believe in the value of property in general, and I also
1723 believe in the value of that weird form of property that lawyers call
1724 <quote>intellectual property.</quote><footnote><para>
1725 <!-- f7 -->
1726 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
1727 The term <citetitle>intellectual property</citetitle> is of relatively recent origin. See
1728 Siva Vaidhyanathan, <citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs</citetitle>, 11 (New York: New York
1729 University Press, 2001). See also Lawrence Lessig, <citetitle>The Future of Ideas</citetitle>
1730 (New York: Random House, 2001), 293 n. 26. The term accurately
1731 describes a set of <quote>property</quote> rights&mdash;copyright, patents,
1732 trademark, and trade-secret&mdash;but the nature of those rights is
1733 very different.
1734 </para></footnote>
1735 A large, diverse society cannot survive without property; a large,
1736 diverse, and modern society cannot flourish without intellectual
1737 property.
1738 </para>
1739 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt3' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
1740 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='startofrange'><primary>Grimm fairy tales</primary></indexterm>
1741 <indexterm><primary>Keaton, Buster</primary></indexterm>
1742 <para>
1743 But it takes just a second's reflection to realize that there is
1744 plenty of value out there that <quote>property</quote> doesn't capture. I don't
1745 mean <quote>money can't buy you love,</quote> but rather, value that is plainly
1746 part of a process of production, including commercial as well as
1747 noncommercial production. If Disney animators had stolen a set of
1748 pencils to draw Steamboat Willie, we'd have no hesitation in
1749 condemning that taking as wrong&mdash; even though trivial, even if
1750 unnoticed. Yet there was nothing wrong, at least under the law of the
1751 day, with Disney's taking from Buster Keaton or from the Brothers
1752 Grimm. There was nothing wrong with the taking from Keaton because
1753 Disney's use would have been considered <quote>fair.</quote> There was nothing
1754 wrong with the taking from the Grimms because the Grimms' work was in
1755 the public domain.
1756 </para>
1757 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='startofrange'><primary>free culture</primary><secondary>derivative works based on</secondary></indexterm>
1758 <para>
1759 Thus, even though the things that Disney took&mdash;or more generally,
1760 the things taken by anyone exercising Walt Disney creativity&mdash;are
1761 valuable, our tradition does not treat those takings as wrong. Some
1762
1763 <!-- PAGE BREAK 42 -->
1764 things remain free for the taking within a free culture, and that
1765 freedom is good.
1766 </para>
1767 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='endofrange'/>
1768 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>Japanese</secondary></indexterm>
1769 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese</primary></indexterm>
1770 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='startofrange'><primary>doujinshi comics</primary></indexterm>
1771 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics2' class='startofrange'><primary>Japanese comics</primary></indexterm>
1772 <indexterm id='idxmanga2' class='startofrange'><primary>manga</primary></indexterm>
1773 <para>
1774 The same with the doujinshi culture. If a doujinshi artist broke into
1775 a publisher's office and ran off with a thousand copies of his latest
1776 work&mdash;or even one copy&mdash;without paying, we'd have no hesitation in
1777 saying the artist was wrong. In addition to having trespassed, he would
1778 have stolen something of value. The law bans that stealing in whatever
1779 form, whether large or small.
1780 </para>
1781 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='endofrange'/>
1782 <para>
1783 Yet there is an obvious reluctance, even among Japanese lawyers, to
1784 say that the copycat comic artists are <quote>stealing.</quote> This form of Walt
1785 Disney creativity is seen as fair and right, even if lawyers in
1786 particular find it hard to say why.
1787 </para>
1788 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='endofrange'/>
1789 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='endofrange'/>
1790 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='endofrange'/>
1791 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='endofrange'/>
1792 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics2' class='endofrange'/>
1793 <indexterm startref='idxmanga2' class='endofrange'/>
1794 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William</primary></indexterm>
1795 <para>
1796 It's the same with a thousand examples that appear everywhere once you
1797 begin to look. Scientists build upon the work of other scientists
1798 without asking or paying for the privilege. (<quote>Excuse me, Professor
1799 Einstein, but may I have permission to use your theory of relativity
1800 to show that you were wrong about quantum physics?</quote>) Acting companies
1801 perform adaptations of the works of Shakespeare without securing
1802 permission from anyone. (Does <emphasis>anyone</emphasis> believe
1803 Shakespeare would be better spread within our culture if there were a
1804 central Shakespeare rights clearinghouse that all productions of
1805 Shakespeare must appeal to first?) And Hollywood goes through cycles
1806 with a certain kind of movie: five asteroid films in the late 1990s;
1807 two volcano disaster films in 1997.
1808 </para>
1809 <para>
1810 Creators here and everywhere are always and at all times building
1811 upon the creativity that went before and that surrounds them now.
1812 That building is always and everywhere at least partially done without
1813 permission and without compensating the original creator. No society,
1814 free or controlled, has ever demanded that every use be paid for or that
1815 permission for Walt Disney creativity must always be sought. Instead,
1816 every society has left a certain bit of its culture free for the taking&mdash;free
1817 societies more fully than unfree, perhaps, but all societies to some degree.
1818 <!-- PAGE BREAK 43 -->
1819 </para>
1820 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt3' class='endofrange'/>
1821 <para>
1822 The hard question is therefore not <emphasis>whether</emphasis> a
1823 culture is free. All cultures are free to some degree. The hard
1824 question instead is <quote><emphasis>How</emphasis> free is this culture?</quote>
1825 How much, and how broadly, is the culture free for others to take and
1826 build upon? Is that freedom limited to party members? To members of
1827 the royal family? To the top ten corporations on the New York Stock
1828 Exchange? Or is that freedom spread broadly? To artists generally,
1829 whether affiliated with the Met or not? To musicians generally,
1830 whether white or not? To filmmakers generally, whether affiliated with
1831 a studio or not?
1832 </para>
1833 <para>
1834 Free cultures are cultures that leave a great deal open for others to
1835 build upon; unfree, or permission, cultures leave much less. Ours was a
1836 free culture. It is becoming much less so.
1837 </para>
1838 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='endofrange'/>
1839
1840 <!-- PAGE BREAK 44 -->
1841 </chapter>
1842 <chapter label="2" id="mere-copyists">
1843 <title>CHAPTER TWO: <quote>Mere Copyists</quote></title>
1844 <indexterm><primary>Daguerre, Louis</primary></indexterm>
1845 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology' class='startofrange'><primary>camera technology</primary></indexterm>
1846 <indexterm id='idxphotography' class='startofrange'><primary>photography</primary></indexterm>
1847 <para>
1848 <emphasis role='strong'>In 1839</emphasis>, Louis Daguerre invented
1849 the first practical technology for producing what we would call
1850 <quote>photographs.</quote> Appropriately enough, they were called
1851 <quote>daguerreotypes.</quote> The process was complicated and
1852 expensive, and the field was thus limited to professionals and a few
1853 zealous and wealthy amateurs. (There was even an American Daguerre
1854 Association that helped regulate the industry, as do all such
1855 associations, by keeping competition down so as to keep prices up.)
1856 </para>
1857 <indexterm><primary>Talbot, William</primary></indexterm>
1858 <para>
1859 Yet despite high prices, the demand for daguerreotypes was strong.
1860 This pushed inventors to find simpler and cheaper ways to make
1861 <quote>automatic pictures.</quote> William Talbot soon discovered a process for
1862 making <quote>negatives.</quote> But because the negatives were glass, and had to
1863 be kept wet, the process still remained expensive and cumbersome. In
1864 the 1870s, dry plates were developed, making it easier to separate the
1865 taking of a picture from its developing. These were still plates of
1866 glass, and thus it was still not a process within reach of most
1867 amateurs.
1868 </para>
1869 <indexterm id='idxeastmangeorge' class='startofrange'><primary>Eastman, George</primary></indexterm>
1870 <para>
1871 The technological change that made mass photography possible
1872 didn't happen until 1888, and was the creation of a single man. George
1873 <!-- PAGE BREAK 45 -->
1874 Eastman, himself an amateur photographer, was frustrated by the
1875 technology of photographs made with plates. In a flash of insight (so
1876 to speak), Eastman saw that if the film could be made to be flexible,
1877 it could be held on a single spindle. That roll could then be sent to
1878 a developer, driving the costs of photography down substantially. By
1879 lowering the costs, Eastman expected he could dramatically broaden the
1880 population of photographers.
1881 </para>
1882 <indexterm id='idxkodakcameras' class='startofrange'><primary>Kodak cameras</primary></indexterm>
1883 <indexterm id='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='startofrange'><primary>Kodak Primer, The (Eastman)</primary></indexterm>
1884 <para>
1885 Eastman developed flexible, emulsion-coated paper film and placed
1886 rolls of it in small, simple cameras: the Kodak. The device was
1887 marketed on the basis of its simplicity. <quote>You press the button and we
1888 do the rest.</quote><footnote><para>
1889 <!-- f1 -->
1890 Reese V. Jenkins, <citetitle>Images and Enterprise</citetitle> (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1975), 112.
1891 </para></footnote> As he described in <citetitle>The Kodak Primer</citetitle>:
1892 </para>
1893 <blockquote>
1894 <para>
1895 The principle of the Kodak system is the separation of the work that
1896 any person whomsoever can do in making a photograph, from the work
1897 that only an expert can do. &hellip; We furnish anybody, man, woman or
1898 child, who has sufficient intelligence to point a box straight and
1899 press a button, with an instrument which altogether removes from the
1900 practice of photography the necessity for exceptional facilities or,
1901 in fact, any special knowledge of the art. It can be employed without
1902 preliminary study, without a darkroom and without
1903 chemicals.<footnote>
1904 <para>
1905 <!-- f2 -->
1906 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian</primary></indexterm>
1907 Brian Coe, <citetitle>The Birth of Photography</citetitle> (New York: Taplinger Publishing,
1908 1977), 53.
1909 </para></footnote>
1910 </para>
1911 </blockquote>
1912 <indexterm startref='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='endofrange'/>
1913 <para>
1914 For $25, anyone could make pictures. The camera came preloaded
1915 with film, and when it had been used, the camera was returned to an
1916 Eastman factory, where the film was developed. Over time, of course,
1917 the cost of the camera and the ease with which it could be used both
1918 improved. Roll film thus became the basis for the explosive growth of
1919 popular photography. Eastman's camera first went on sale in 1888; one
1920 year later, Kodak was printing more than six thousand negatives a day.
1921 From 1888 through 1909, while industrial production was rising by 4.7
1922 percent, photographic equipment and material sales increased by 11
1923 percent.<footnote><para>
1924 <!-- f3 -->
1925 Jenkins, 177.
1926 </para></footnote> Eastman Kodak's sales during the same period experienced
1927 an average annual increase of over 17 percent.<footnote><para>
1928 <!-- f4 -->
1929 Based on a chart in Jenkins, p. 178.
1930 </para></footnote>
1931 </para>
1932 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian</primary></indexterm>
1933 <para>
1934
1935 <!-- PAGE BREAK 46 -->
1936 The real significance of Eastman's invention, however, was not
1937 economic. It was social. Professional photography gave individuals a
1938 glimpse of places they would never otherwise see. Amateur photography
1939 gave them the ability to record their own lives in a way they had
1940 never been able to do before. As author Brian Coe notes, <quote>For the
1941 first time the snapshot album provided the man on the street with a
1942 permanent record of his family and its activities. &hellip; For the first
1943 time in history there exists an authentic visual record of the
1944 appearance and activities of the common man made without [literary]
1945 interpretation or bias.</quote><footnote><para>
1946 <!-- f5 -->
1947 Coe, 58.
1948 </para></footnote>
1949 </para>
1950 <indexterm><primary>democracy</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression</secondary></indexterm>
1951 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of</primary><secondary>democratic</secondary></indexterm>
1952 <para>
1953 In this way, the Kodak camera and film were technologies of
1954 expression. The pencil or paintbrush was also a technology of
1955 expression, of course. But it took years of training before they could
1956 be deployed by amateurs in any useful or effective way. With the
1957 Kodak, expression was possible much sooner and more simply. The
1958 barrier to expression was lowered. Snobs would sneer at its <quote>quality</quote>;
1959 professionals would discount it as irrelevant. But watch a child study
1960 how best to frame a picture and you get a sense of the experience of
1961 creativity that the Kodak enabled. Democratic tools gave ordinary
1962 people a way to express themselves more easily than any tools could
1963 have before.
1964 </para>
1965 <indexterm startref='idxkodakcameras' class='endofrange'/>
1966 <indexterm id='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='startofrange'><primary>permissions</primary><secondary>photography exempted from</secondary></indexterm>
1967 <para>
1968 What was required for this technology to flourish? Obviously,
1969 Eastman's genius was an important part. But also important was the
1970 legal environment within which Eastman's invention grew. For early in
1971 the history of photography, there was a series of judicial decisions
1972 that could well have changed the course of photography substantially.
1973 Courts were asked whether the photographer, amateur or professional,
1974 required permission before he could capture and print whatever image
1975 he wanted. Their answer was no.<footnote><para>
1976 <!-- f6 -->
1977 For illustrative cases, see, for example, <citetitle>Pavesich</citetitle>
1978 v. <citetitle>N.E. Life Ins. Co</citetitle>., 50 S.E. 68 (Ga. 1905);
1979 <citetitle>Foster-Milburn Co</citetitle>. v. <citetitle>Chinn</citetitle>, 123090 S.W. 364, 366
1980 (Ky. 1909); <citetitle>Corliss</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Walker</citetitle>, 64 F. 280 (Mass.
1981 Dist. Ct. 1894).
1982 </para></footnote>
1983 </para>
1984 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology' class='endofrange'/>
1985 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt4' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
1986 <indexterm id='idximagesownershipof' class='startofrange'><primary>images, ownership of</primary></indexterm>
1987 <para>
1988 The arguments in favor of requiring permission will sound surprisingly
1989 familiar. The photographer was <quote>taking</quote> something from the person or
1990 building whose photograph he shot&mdash;pirating something of
1991 value. Some even thought he was taking the target's soul. Just as
1992 Disney was not free to take the pencils that his animators used to
1993 draw
1994 <!-- PAGE BREAK 47 -->
1995 Mickey, so, too, should these photographers not be free to take images
1996 that they thought valuable.
1997 </para>
1998 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.</primary></indexterm>
1999 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.</primary></indexterm>
2000 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology2' class='startofrange'><primary>camera technology</primary></indexterm>
2001 <para>
2002 On the other side was an argument that should be familiar, as well.
2003 Sure, there may be something of value being used. But citizens should
2004 have the right to capture at least those images that stand in public view.
2005 (Louis Brandeis, who would become a Supreme Court Justice, thought
2006 the rule should be different for images from private spaces.<footnote>
2007 <para>
2008 <!-- f7 -->
2009 Samuel D. Warren and Louis D. Brandeis, <quote>The Right to Privacy,</quote>
2010 <citetitle>Harvard Law Review</citetitle> 4 (1890): 193.
2011 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.</primary></indexterm>
2012 <indexterm><primary>Warren, Samuel D.</primary></indexterm>
2013 </para></footnote>) It may be that this means that the photographer
2014 gets something for nothing. Just as Disney could take inspiration from
2015 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr</citetitle>. or the Brothers Grimm, the photographer should be
2016 free to capture an image without compensating the source.
2017 </para>
2018 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt4' class='endofrange'/>
2019 <para>
2020 Fortunately for Mr. Eastman, and for photography in general, these
2021 early decisions went in favor of the pirates. In general, no
2022 permission would be required before an image could be captured and
2023 shared with others. Instead, permission was presumed. Freedom was the
2024 default. (The law would eventually craft an exception for famous
2025 people: commercial photographers who snap pictures of famous people
2026 for commercial purposes have more restrictions than the rest of
2027 us. But in the ordinary case, the image can be captured without
2028 clearing the rights to do the capturing.<footnote><para>
2029 <!-- f8 -->
2030 See Melville B. Nimmer, <quote>The Right of Publicity,</quote> <citetitle>Law and Contemporary
2031 Problems</citetitle> 19 (1954): 203; William L. Prosser, <quote>Privacy,</quote> <citetitle>California Law
2032 Review</citetitle> 48 (1960) 398&ndash;407; <citetitle>White</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Samsung Electronics America,
2033 Inc</citetitle>., 971 F. 2d 1395 (9th Cir. 1992), cert. denied, 508 U.S. 951
2034 (1993).
2035 </para></footnote>)
2036 </para>
2037 <indexterm><primary>Kodak cameras</primary></indexterm>
2038 <indexterm><primary>Napster</primary></indexterm>
2039 <para>
2040 We can only speculate about how photography would have developed had
2041 the law gone the other way. If the presumption had been against the
2042 photographer, then the photographer would have had to demonstrate
2043 permission. Perhaps Eastman Kodak would have had to demonstrate
2044 permission, too, before it developed the film upon which images were
2045 captured. After all, if permission were not granted, then Eastman
2046 Kodak would be benefiting from the <quote>theft</quote> committed by the
2047 photographer. Just as Napster benefited from the copyright
2048 infringements committed by Napster users, Kodak would be benefiting
2049 from the <quote>image-right</quote> infringement of its photographers. We could
2050 imagine the law then requiring that some form of permission be
2051 demonstrated before a company developed pictures. We could imagine a
2052 system developing to demonstrate that permission.
2053 </para>
2054 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology2' class='endofrange'/>
2055 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology3' class='startofrange'><primary>camera technology</primary></indexterm>
2056 <indexterm><primary>democracy</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression</secondary></indexterm>
2057 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of</primary><secondary>democratic</secondary></indexterm>
2058 <para>
2059
2060 <!-- PAGE BREAK 48 -->
2061 But though we could imagine this system of permission, it would be
2062 very hard to see how photography could have flourished as it did if
2063 the requirement for permission had been built into the rules that
2064 govern it. Photography would have existed. It would have grown in
2065 importance over time. Professionals would have continued to use the
2066 technology as they did&mdash;since professionals could have more
2067 easily borne the burdens of the permission system. But the spread of
2068 photography to ordinary people would not have occurred. Nothing like
2069 that growth would have been realized. And certainly, nothing like that
2070 growth in a democratic technology of expression would have been
2071 realized.
2072 </para>
2073 <indexterm startref='idxphotography' class='endofrange'/>
2074 <indexterm startref='idxeastmangeorge' class='endofrange'/>
2075 <indexterm startref='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='endofrange'/>
2076 <indexterm startref='idximagesownershipof' class='endofrange'/>
2077 <para>
2078 <emphasis role='strong'>If you drive</emphasis> through San
2079 Francisco's Presidio, you might see two gaudy yellow school buses
2080 painted over with colorful and striking images, and the logo
2081 <quote>Just Think!</quote> in place of the name of a school. But
2082 there's little that's <quote>just</quote> cerebral in the projects
2083 that these busses enable. These buses are filled with technologies
2084 that teach kids to tinker with film. Not the film of Eastman. Not even
2085 the film of your VCR. Rather the <quote>film</quote> of digital
2086 cameras. Just Think! is a project that enables kids to make films, as
2087 a way to understand and critique the filmed culture that they find all
2088 around them. Each year, these busses travel to more than thirty
2089 schools and enable three hundred to five hundred children to learn
2090 something about media by doing something with media. By doing, they
2091 think. By tinkering, they learn.
2092 </para>
2093 <para>
2094 These buses are not cheap, but the technology they carry is
2095 increasingly so. The cost of a high-quality digital video system has
2096 fallen dramatically. As one analyst puts it, <quote>Five years ago, a good
2097 real-time digital video editing system cost $25,000. Today you can get
2098 professional quality for $595.</quote><footnote><para>
2099 <!-- f9 -->
2100 H. Edward Goldberg, <quote>Essential Presentation Tools: Hardware and
2101 Software You Need to Create Digital Multimedia Presentations,</quote>
2102 cadalyst, February 2002, available at
2103 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #7</ulink>.
2104 </para></footnote>
2105 These buses are filled with technology that would have cost hundreds
2106 of thousands just ten years ago. And it is now feasible to imagine not
2107 just buses like this, but classrooms across the country where kids are
2108 learning more and more of something teachers call <quote>media literacy.</quote>
2109 </para>
2110 <indexterm><primary>Yanofsky, Dave</primary></indexterm>
2111 <para>
2112 <!-- PAGE BREAK 49 -->
2113 <quote>Media literacy,</quote> as Dave Yanofsky, the executive director of Just
2114 Think!, puts it, <quote>is the ability &hellip; to understand, analyze, and
2115 deconstruct media images. Its aim is to make [kids] literate about the
2116 way media works, the way it's constructed, the way it's delivered, and
2117 the way people access it.</quote>
2118 </para>
2119 <para>
2120 This may seem like an odd way to think about <quote>literacy.</quote> For most
2121 people, literacy is about reading and writing. Faulkner and Hemingway
2122 and noticing split infinitives are the things that <quote>literate</quote> people know
2123 about.
2124 </para>
2125 <indexterm><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
2126 <indexterm><primary>commercials</primary></indexterm>
2127 <indexterm><primary>television</primary><secondary>advertising on</secondary></indexterm>
2128 <para>
2129 Maybe. But in a world where children see on average 390 hours of
2130 television commercials per year, or between 20,000 and 45,000
2131 commercials generally,<footnote><para>
2132 <!-- f10 -->
2133 Judith Van Evra, <citetitle>Television and Child Development</citetitle> (Hillsdale, N.J.:
2134 Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, 1990); <quote>Findings on Family and TV
2135 Study,</quote> <citetitle>Denver Post</citetitle>, 25 May 1997, B6.
2136 </para></footnote>
2137 it is increasingly important to understand the <quote>grammar</quote> of media. For
2138 just as there is a grammar for the written word, so, too, is there one
2139 for media. And just as kids learn how to write by writing lots of
2140 terrible prose, kids learn how to write media by constructing lots of
2141 (at least at first) terrible media.
2142 </para>
2143 <para>
2144 A growing field of academics and activists sees this form of literacy
2145 as crucial to the next generation of culture. For though anyone who
2146 has written understands how difficult writing is&mdash;how difficult
2147 it is to sequence the story, to keep a reader's attention, to craft
2148 language to be understandable&mdash;few of us have any real sense of
2149 how difficult media is. Or more fundamentally, few of us have a sense
2150 of how media works, how it holds an audience or leads it through a
2151 story, how it triggers emotion or builds suspense.
2152 </para>
2153 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology3' class='endofrange'/>
2154 <para>
2155 It took filmmaking a generation before it could do these things well.
2156 But even then, the knowledge was in the filming, not in writing about
2157 the film. The skill came from experiencing the making of a film, not
2158 from reading a book about it. One learns to write by writing and then
2159 reflecting upon what one has written. One learns to write with images
2160 by making them and then reflecting upon what one has created.
2161 </para>
2162 <indexterm><primary>Crichton, Michael</primary></indexterm>
2163 <indexterm id='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='startofrange'><primary>Daley, Elizabeth</primary></indexterm>
2164 <para>
2165 This grammar has changed as media has changed. When it was just film,
2166 as Elizabeth Daley, executive director of the University of Southern
2167 California's Annenberg Center for Communication and dean of the
2168
2169 <!-- PAGE BREAK 50 -->
2170 USC School of Cinema-Television, explained to me, the grammar was
2171 about <quote>the placement of objects, color, &hellip; rhythm, pacing, and
2172 texture.</quote><footnote>
2173 <para>
2174 <!-- f11 -->
2175 Interview with Elizabeth Daley and Stephanie Barish, 13 December
2176 2002.
2177 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie</primary></indexterm>
2178 <indexterm><primary>Daley, Elizabeth</primary></indexterm>
2179 </para></footnote>
2180 But as computers open up an interactive space where a story is
2181 <quote>played</quote> as well as experienced, that grammar changes. The simple
2182 control of narrative is lost, and so other techniques are necessary. Author
2183 Michael Crichton had mastered the narrative of science fiction.
2184 But when he tried to design a computer game based on one of his
2185 works, it was a new craft he had to learn. How to lead people through
2186 a game without their feeling they have been led was not obvious, even
2187 to a wildly successful author.<footnote><para>
2188 <!-- f12 -->
2189 See Scott Steinberg, <quote>Crichton Gets Medieval on PCs,</quote> E!online, 4
2190 November 2000, available at
2191 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #8</ulink>; <quote>Timeline,</quote> 22 November 2000,
2192 available at
2193 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #9</ulink>.
2194 </para></footnote>
2195 </para>
2196 <indexterm><primary>computer games</primary></indexterm>
2197 <para>
2198 This skill is precisely the craft a filmmaker learns. As Daley
2199 describes, <quote>people are very surprised about how they are led through a
2200 film. [I]t is perfectly constructed to keep you from seeing it, so you
2201 have no idea. If a filmmaker succeeds you do not know how you were
2202 led.</quote> If you know you were led through a film, the film has failed.
2203 </para>
2204 <para>
2205 Yet the push for an expanded literacy&mdash;one that goes beyond text
2206 to include audio and visual elements&mdash;is not about making better
2207 film directors. The aim is not to improve the profession of
2208 filmmaking at all. Instead, as Daley explained,
2209 </para>
2210 <blockquote>
2211 <para>
2212 From my perspective, probably the most important digital divide
2213 is not access to a box. It's the ability to be empowered with the
2214 language that that box works in. Otherwise only a very few people
2215 can write with this language, and all the rest of us are reduced to
2216 being read-only.
2217 </para>
2218 </blockquote>
2219 <para>
2220 <quote>Read-only.</quote> Passive recipients of culture produced elsewhere.
2221 Couch potatoes. Consumers. This is the world of media from the
2222 twentieth century.
2223 </para>
2224 <para>
2225 The twenty-first century could be different. This is the crucial
2226 point: It could be both read and write. Or at least reading and better
2227 understanding the craft of writing. Or best, reading and understanding
2228 the tools that enable the writing to lead or mislead. The aim of any
2229 literacy,
2230 <!-- PAGE BREAK 51 -->
2231 and this literacy in particular, is to <quote>empower people to choose the
2232 appropriate language for what they need to create or
2233 express.</quote><footnote>
2234 <para>
2235 <!-- f13 -->
2236 Interview with Daley and Barish.
2237 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie</primary></indexterm>
2238 </para></footnote> It is to enable students <quote>to communicate in the
2239 language of the twenty-first century.</quote><footnote><para>
2240 <!-- f14 -->
2241 Ibid.
2242 </para></footnote>
2243 </para>
2244 <indexterm id='idxbarishstephanie' class='startofrange'><primary>Barish, Stephanie</primary></indexterm>
2245 <para>
2246 As with any language, this language comes more easily to some than to
2247 others. It doesn't necessarily come more easily to those who excel in
2248 written language. Daley and Stephanie Barish, director of the
2249 Institute for Multimedia Literacy at the Annenberg Center, describe
2250 one particularly poignant example of a project they ran in a high
2251 school. The high school was a very poor inner-city Los Angeles
2252 school. In all the traditional measures of success, this school was a
2253 failure. But Daley and Barish ran a program that gave kids an
2254 opportunity to use film to express meaning about something the
2255 students know something about&mdash;gun violence.
2256 </para>
2257 <indexterm startref='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='endofrange'/>
2258 <para>
2259 The class was held on Friday afternoons, and it created a relatively
2260 new problem for the school. While the challenge in most classes was
2261 getting the kids to come, the challenge in this class was keeping them
2262 away. The <quote>kids were showing up at 6 A.M. and leaving at 5 at night,</quote>
2263 said Barish. They were working harder than in any other class to do
2264 what education should be about&mdash;learning how to express themselves.
2265 </para>
2266 <para>
2267 Using whatever <quote>free web stuff they could find,</quote> and relatively simple
2268 tools to enable the kids to mix <quote>image, sound, and text,</quote> Barish said
2269 this class produced a series of projects that showed something about
2270 gun violence that few would otherwise understand. This was an issue
2271 close to the lives of these students. The project <quote>gave them a tool
2272 and empowered them to be able to both understand it and talk about
2273 it,</quote> Barish explained. That tool succeeded in creating
2274 expression&mdash;far more successfully and powerfully than could have
2275 been created using only text. <quote>If you had said to these students, `you
2276 have to do it in text,' they would've just thrown their hands up and
2277 gone and done something else,</quote> Barish described, in part, no doubt,
2278 because expressing themselves in text is not something these students
2279 can do well. Yet neither is text a form in which
2280 <emphasis>these</emphasis> ideas can be expressed well. The power of
2281 this message depended upon its connection to this form of expression.
2282 </para>
2283 <indexterm startref='idxbarishstephanie' class='endofrange'/>
2284 <para>
2285
2286 <!-- PAGE BREAK 52 -->
2287 <quote>But isn't education about teaching kids to write?</quote> I asked. In part,
2288 of course, it is. But why are we teaching kids to write? Education,
2289 Daley explained, is about giving students a way of <quote>constructing
2290 meaning.</quote> To say that that means just writing is like saying teaching
2291 writing is only about teaching kids how to spell. Text is one
2292 part&mdash;and increasingly, not the most powerful part&mdash;of
2293 constructing meaning. As Daley explained in the most moving part of
2294 our interview,
2295 </para>
2296 <blockquote>
2297 <para>
2298 What you want is to give these students ways of constructing
2299 meaning. If all you give them is text, they're not going to do it.
2300 Because they can't. You know, you've got Johnny who can look at a
2301 video, he can play a video game, he can do graffiti all over your
2302 walls, he can take your car apart, and he can do all sorts of other
2303 things. He just can't read your text. So Johnny comes to school and
2304 you say, <quote>Johnny, you're illiterate. Nothing you can do matters.</quote>
2305 Well, Johnny then has two choices: He can dismiss you or he [can]
2306 dismiss himself. If his ego is healthy at all, he's going to dismiss
2307 you. [But i]nstead, if you say, <quote>Well, with all these things that you
2308 can do, let's talk about this issue. Play for me music that you think
2309 reflects that, or show me images that you think reflect that, or draw
2310 for me something that reflects that.</quote> Not by giving a kid a video
2311 camera and &hellip; saying, <quote>Let's go have fun with the video camera and
2312 make a little movie.</quote> But instead, really help you take these elements
2313 that you understand, that are your language, and construct meaning
2314 about the topic.&hellip;
2315 </para>
2316 <para>
2317 That empowers enormously. And then what happens, of
2318 course, is eventually, as it has happened in all these classes, they
2319 bump up against the fact, <quote>I need to explain this and I really need
2320 to write something.</quote> And as one of the teachers told Stephanie,
2321 they would rewrite a paragraph 5, 6, 7, 8 times, till they got it right.
2322 </para>
2323 <para>
2324 Because they needed to. There was a reason for doing it. They
2325 needed to say something, as opposed to just jumping through
2326 your hoops. They actually needed to use a language that they
2327 <!-- PAGE BREAK 53 -->
2328 didn't speak very well. But they had come to understand that they
2329 had a lot of power with this language.
2330 </para>
2331 <!-- FIXME removed a " from the end of the previous paragraph that did
2332 not match with any start quote. -->
2333 </blockquote>
2334 <indexterm id='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='startofrange'><primary>September 11, 2001, terrorist attacks of</primary></indexterm>
2335 <indexterm><primary>World Trade Center</primary></indexterm>
2336 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage' class='startofrange'><primary>news coverage</primary></indexterm>
2337 <para>
2338 <emphasis role='strong'>When two planes</emphasis> crashed into the
2339 World Trade Center, another into the Pentagon, and a fourth into a
2340 Pennsylvania field, all media around the world shifted to this
2341 news. Every moment of just about every day for that week, and for
2342 weeks after, television in particular, and media generally, retold the
2343 story of the events we had just witnessed. The telling was a
2344 retelling, because we had seen the events that were described. The
2345 genius of this awful act of terrorism was that the delayed second
2346 attack was perfectly timed to assure that the whole world would be
2347 watching.
2348 </para>
2349 <para>
2350 These retellings had an increasingly familiar feel. There was music
2351 scored for the intermissions, and fancy graphics that flashed across
2352 the screen. There was a formula to interviews. There was <quote>balance,</quote>
2353 and seriousness. This was news choreographed in the way we have
2354 increasingly come to expect it, <quote>news as entertainment,</quote> even if the
2355 entertainment is tragedy.
2356 </para>
2357 <indexterm><primary>ABC</primary></indexterm>
2358 <indexterm><primary>CBS</primary></indexterm>
2359 <para>
2360 But in addition to this produced news about the <quote>tragedy of September
2361 11,</quote> those of us tied to the Internet came to see a very different
2362 production as well. The Internet was filled with accounts of the same
2363 events. Yet these Internet accounts had a very different flavor. Some
2364 people constructed photo pages that captured images from around the
2365 world and presented them as slide shows with text. Some offered open
2366 letters. There were sound recordings. There was anger and frustration.
2367 There were attempts to provide context. There was, in short, an
2368 extraordinary worldwide barn raising, in the sense Mike Godwin uses
2369 the term in his book <citetitle>Cyber Rights</citetitle>, around a news event that had
2370 captured the attention of the world. There was ABC and CBS, but there
2371 was also the Internet.
2372 </para>
2373 <indexterm startref='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='endofrange'/>
2374 <para>
2375 I don't mean simply to praise the Internet&mdash;though I do think the
2376 people who supported this form of speech should be praised. I mean
2377 instead to point to a significance in this form of speech. For like a
2378 Kodak, the Internet enables people to capture images. And like in a
2379 movie
2380 <!-- PAGE BREAK 54 -->
2381 by a student on the <quote>Just Think!</quote> bus, the visual images could be mixed
2382 with sound or text.
2383 </para>
2384 <para>
2385 But unlike any technology for simply capturing images, the Internet
2386 allows these creations to be shared with an extraordinary number of
2387 people, practically instantaneously. This is something new in our
2388 tradition&mdash;not just that culture can be captured mechanically,
2389 and obviously not just that events are commented upon critically, but
2390 that this mix of captured images, sound, and commentary can be widely
2391 spread practically instantaneously.
2392 </para>
2393 <indexterm><primary>September 11, 2001, terrorist attacks of</primary></indexterm>
2394 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs' class='startofrange'><primary>blogs (Web-logs)</primary></indexterm>
2395 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>blogs on</secondary></indexterm>
2396 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs' class='startofrange'><primary>Web-logs (blogs)</primary></indexterm>
2397 <para>
2398 September 11 was not an aberration. It was a beginning. Around the
2399 same time, a form of communication that has grown dramatically was
2400 just beginning to come into public consciousness: the Web-log, or
2401 blog. The blog is a kind of public diary, and within some cultures,
2402 such as in Japan, it functions very much like a diary. In those
2403 cultures, it records private facts in a public way&mdash;it's a kind
2404 of electronic <citetitle>Jerry Springer</citetitle>, available anywhere in the world.
2405 </para>
2406 <indexterm><primary>political discourse</primary></indexterm>
2407 <indexterm id='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>public discourse conducted on</secondary></indexterm>
2408 <para>
2409 But in the United States, blogs have taken on a very different
2410 character. There are some who use the space simply to talk about
2411 their private life. But there are many who use the space to engage in
2412 public discourse. Discussing matters of public import, criticizing
2413 others who are mistaken in their views, criticizing politicians about
2414 the decisions they make, offering solutions to problems we all see:
2415 blogs create the sense of a virtual public meeting, but one in which
2416 we don't all hope to be there at the same time and in which
2417 conversations are not necessarily linked. The best of the blog entries
2418 are relatively short; they point directly to words used by others,
2419 criticizing with or adding to them. They are arguably the most
2420 important form of unchoreographed public discourse that we have.
2421 </para>
2422 <indexterm id='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='startofrange'><primary>democracy</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression</secondary></indexterm>
2423 <indexterm id='idxelections' class='startofrange'><primary>elections</primary></indexterm>
2424 <indexterm id='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='startofrange'><primary>expression, technologies of</primary><secondary>democratic</secondary></indexterm>
2425 <para>
2426 That's a strong statement. Yet it says as much about our democracy as
2427 it does about blogs. This is the part of America that is most
2428 difficult for those of us who love America to accept: Our democracy
2429 has atrophied. Of course we have elections, and most of the time the
2430 courts allow those elections to count. A relatively small number of
2431 people vote
2432 <!-- PAGE BREAK 55 -->
2433 in those elections. The cycle of these elections has become totally
2434 professionalized and routinized. Most of us think this is democracy.
2435 </para>
2436 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs' class='endofrange'/>
2437 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson' class='endofrange'/>
2438 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs' class='endofrange'/>
2439 <indexterm><primary>Tocqueville, Alexis de</primary></indexterm>
2440 <indexterm id='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='startofrange'><primary>democracy</primary><secondary>public discourse in</secondary></indexterm>
2441 <indexterm><primary>jury system</primary></indexterm>
2442 <para>
2443 But democracy has never just been about elections. Democracy
2444 means rule by the people, but rule means something more than mere
2445 elections. In our tradition, it also means control through reasoned
2446 discourse. This was the idea that captured the imagination of Alexis
2447 de Tocqueville, the nineteenth-century French lawyer who wrote the
2448 most important account of early <quote>Democracy in America.</quote> It wasn't
2449 popular elections that fascinated him&mdash;it was the jury, an
2450 institution that gave ordinary people the right to choose life or
2451 death for other citizens. And most fascinating for him was that the
2452 jury didn't just vote about the outcome they would impose. They
2453 deliberated. Members argued about the <quote>right</quote> result; they tried to
2454 persuade each other of the <quote>right</quote> result, and in criminal cases at
2455 least, they had to agree upon a unanimous result for the process to
2456 come to an end.<footnote><para>
2457 <!-- f15 -->
2458 See, for example, Alexis de Tocqueville, <citetitle>Democracy in America</citetitle>,
2459 bk. 1, trans. Henry Reeve (New York: Bantam Books, 2000), ch. 16.
2460 </para></footnote>
2461 </para>
2462 <indexterm startref='idxelections' class='endofrange'/>
2463 <para>
2464 Yet even this institution flags in American life today. And in its
2465 place, there is no systematic effort to enable citizen deliberation. Some
2466 are pushing to create just such an institution.<footnote><para>
2467 <!-- f16 -->
2468 Bruce Ackerman and James Fishkin, <quote>Deliberation Day,</quote> <citetitle>Journal of
2469 Political Philosophy</citetitle> 10 (2) (2002): 129.
2470 </para></footnote>
2471 And in some towns in New England, something close to deliberation
2472 remains. But for most of us for most of the time, there is no time or
2473 place for <quote>democratic deliberation</quote> to occur.
2474 </para>
2475 <indexterm id='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='startofrange'><primary>political discourse</primary></indexterm>
2476 <para>
2477 More bizarrely, there is generally not even permission for it to
2478 occur. We, the most powerful democracy in the world, have developed a
2479 strong norm against talking about politics. It's fine to talk about
2480 politics with people you agree with. But it is rude to argue about
2481 politics with people you disagree with. Political discourse becomes
2482 isolated, and isolated discourse becomes more extreme.<footnote><para>
2483 <!-- f17 -->
2484 Cass Sunstein, <citetitle>Republic.com</citetitle> (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2001),
2485 65&ndash;80, 175, 182, 183, 192.
2486 </para></footnote> We say what our friends want to hear, and hear very
2487 little beyond what our friends say.
2488 </para>
2489 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs2' class='startofrange'><primary>blogs (Web-logs)</primary></indexterm>
2490 <indexterm><primary>e-mail</primary></indexterm>
2491 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson2' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>blogs on</secondary></indexterm>
2492 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs2' class='startofrange'><primary>Web-logs (blogs)</primary></indexterm>
2493 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='endofrange'/>
2494 <indexterm startref='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='endofrange'/>
2495 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='endofrange'/>
2496 <para>
2497 Enter the blog. The blog's very architecture solves one part of this
2498 problem. People post when they want to post, and people read when they
2499 want to read. The most difficult time is synchronous time.
2500 Technologies that enable asynchronous communication, such as e-mail,
2501 increase the opportunity for communication. Blogs allow for public
2502
2503 <!-- PAGE BREAK 56 -->
2504 discourse without the public ever needing to gather in a single public
2505 place.
2506 </para>
2507 <para>
2508 But beyond architecture, blogs also have solved the problem of
2509 norms. There's no norm (yet) in blog space not to talk about politics.
2510 Indeed, the space is filled with political speech, on both the right and
2511 the left. Some of the most popular sites are conservative or libertarian,
2512 but there are many of all political stripes. And even blogs that are not
2513 political cover political issues when the occasion merits.
2514 </para>
2515 <indexterm><primary>Dean, Howard</primary></indexterm>
2516 <para>
2517 The significance of these blogs is tiny now, though not so tiny. The
2518 name Howard Dean may well have faded from the 2004 presidential race
2519 but for blogs. Yet even if the number of readers is small, the reading
2520 is having an effect.
2521 </para>
2522 <indexterm><primary>Lott, Trent</primary></indexterm>
2523 <indexterm><primary>Thurmond, Strom</primary></indexterm>
2524 <indexterm id='idxmediablogpressureon' class='startofrange'><primary>media</primary><secondary>blog pressure on</secondary></indexterm>
2525 <indexterm id='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>news events on</secondary></indexterm>
2526 <para>
2527 One direct effect is on stories that had a different life cycle in the
2528 mainstream media. The Trent Lott affair is an example. When Lott
2529 <quote>misspoke</quote> at a party for Senator Strom Thurmond, essentially praising
2530 Thurmond's segregationist policies, he calculated correctly that this
2531 story would disappear from the mainstream press within forty-eight
2532 hours. It did. But he didn't calculate its life cycle in blog
2533 space. The bloggers kept researching the story. Over time, more and
2534 more instances of the same <quote>misspeaking</quote> emerged. Finally, the story
2535 broke back into the mainstream press. In the end, Lott was forced to
2536 resign as senate majority leader.<footnote><para>
2537 <!-- f18 -->
2538 Noah Shachtman, <quote>With Incessant Postings, a Pundit Stirs the Pot,</quote> New
2539 York Times, 16 January 2003, G5.
2540 </para></footnote>
2541 </para>
2542 <indexterm id='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='startofrange'><primary>media</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of</secondary></indexterm>
2543 <para>
2544 This different cycle is possible because the same commercial pressures
2545 don't exist with blogs as with other ventures. Television and
2546 newspapers are commercial entities. They must work to keep attention.
2547 If they lose readers, they lose revenue. Like sharks, they must move
2548 on.
2549 </para>
2550 <indexterm startref='idxmediablogpressureon' class='endofrange'/>
2551 <indexterm><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>peer-generated rankings on</secondary></indexterm>
2552 <para>
2553 But bloggers don't have a similar constraint. They can obsess, they
2554 can focus, they can get serious. If a particular blogger writes a
2555 particularly interesting story, more and more people link to that
2556 story. And as the number of links to a particular story increases, it
2557 rises in the ranks of stories. People read what is popular; what is
2558 popular has been selected by a very democratic process of
2559 peer-generated rankings.
2560 </para>
2561 <indexterm startref='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='endofrange'/>
2562 <indexterm id='idxjournalism' class='startofrange'><primary>journalism</primary></indexterm>
2563 <indexterm id='idxwinerdave' class='startofrange'><primary>Winer, Dave</primary></indexterm>
2564 <para>
2565 There's a second way, as well, in which blogs have a different cycle
2566 <!-- PAGE BREAK 57 -->
2567 from the mainstream press. As Dave Winer, one of the fathers of this
2568 movement and a software author for many decades, told me, another
2569 difference is the absence of a financial <quote>conflict of interest.</quote> <quote>I think you
2570 have to take the conflict of interest</quote> out of journalism, Winer told me.
2571 <quote>An amateur journalist simply doesn't have a conflict of interest, or the
2572 conflict of interest is so easily disclosed that you know you can sort of
2573 get it out of the way.</quote>
2574 </para>
2575 <indexterm><primary>CNN</primary></indexterm>
2576 <indexterm><primary>media</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of</secondary></indexterm>
2577 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war</primary></indexterm>
2578 <indexterm><primary>media</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in</secondary></indexterm>
2579 <para>
2580 These conflicts become more important as media becomes more
2581 concentrated (more on this below). A concentrated media can hide more
2582 from the public than an unconcentrated media can&mdash;as CNN admitted
2583 it did after the Iraq war because it was afraid of the consequences to
2584 its own employees.<footnote><para>
2585 <!-- f19 -->
2586 Telephone interview with David Winer, 16 April 2003.
2587 </para></footnote>
2588 It also needs to sustain a more coherent account. (In the middle of
2589 the Iraq war, I read a post on the Internet from someone who was at
2590 that time listening to a satellite uplink with a reporter in Iraq. The
2591 New York headquarters was telling the reporter over and over that her
2592 account of the war was too bleak: She needed to offer a more
2593 optimistic story. When she told New York that wasn't warranted, they
2594 told her that <emphasis>they</emphasis> were writing <quote>the story.</quote>)
2595 </para>
2596 <indexterm startref='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='endofrange'/>
2597 <para>
2598 Blog space gives amateurs a way to enter the
2599 debate&mdash;<quote>amateur</quote> not in the sense of inexperienced,
2600 but in the sense of an Olympic athlete, meaning not paid by anyone to
2601 give their reports. It allows for a much broader range of input into a
2602 story, as reporting on the Columbia disaster revealed, when hundreds
2603 from across the southwest United States turned to the Internet to
2604 retell what they had seen.<footnote><para>
2605 <!-- f20 -->
2606 John Schwartz, <quote>Loss of the Shuttle: The Internet; A Wealth of
2607 Information Online,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 2 February 2003, A28; Staci
2608 D. Kramer, <quote>Shuttle Disaster Coverage Mixed, but Strong Overall,</quote>
2609 Online Journalism Review, 2 February 2003, available at
2610 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #10</ulink>.
2611 </para></footnote>
2612 And it drives readers to read across the range of accounts and
2613 <quote>triangulate,</quote> as Winer puts it, the truth. Blogs, Winer says, are
2614 <quote>communicating directly with our constituency, and the middle man is
2615 out of it</quote>&mdash;with all the benefits, and costs, that might entail.
2616 </para>
2617 <para>
2618 Winer is optimistic about the future of journalism infected
2619 with blogs. <quote>It's going to become an essential skill,</quote> Winer predicts,
2620 for public figures and increasingly for private figures as well. It's
2621 not clear that <quote>journalism</quote> is happy about this&mdash;some journalists
2622 have been told to curtail their blogging.<footnote>
2623 <para>
2624 <!-- f21 -->
2625 <indexterm><primary>CNN</primary></indexterm>
2626 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war</primary></indexterm>
2627 <indexterm><primary>Olafson, Steve</primary></indexterm>
2628 <indexterm><primary>blogs (Web-logs)</primary></indexterm>
2629 See Michael Falcone, <quote>Does an Editor's Pencil Ruin a Web Log?</quote> <citetitle>New
2630 York Times</citetitle>, 29 September 2003, C4. (<quote>Not all news organizations have
2631 been as accepting of employees who blog. Kevin Sites, a CNN
2632 correspondent in Iraq who started a blog about his reporting of the
2633 war on March 9, stopped posting 12 days later at his bosses'
2634 request. Last year Steve Olafson, a <citetitle>Houston Chronicle</citetitle> reporter, was
2635 fired for keeping a personal Web log, published under a pseudonym,
2636 that dealt with some of the issues and people he was covering.</quote>)
2637 </para></footnote>
2638 But it is clear that we are still in transition. <quote>A
2639
2640 <!-- PAGE BREAK 58 -->
2641 lot of what we are doing now is warm-up exercises,</quote> Winer told me.
2642 There is a lot that must mature before this space has its mature effect.
2643 And as the inclusion of content in this space is the least infringing use
2644 of the Internet (meaning infringing on copyright), Winer said, <quote>we will
2645 be the last thing that gets shut down.</quote>
2646 </para>
2647 <indexterm startref='idxjournalism' class='endofrange'/>
2648 <para>
2649 This speech affects democracy. Winer thinks that happens because <quote>you
2650 don't have to work for somebody who controls, [for] a gatekeeper.</quote>
2651 That is true. But it affects democracy in another way as well. As
2652 more and more citizens express what they think, and defend it in
2653 writing, that will change the way people understand public issues. It
2654 is easy to be wrong and misguided in your head. It is harder when the
2655 product of your mind can be criticized by others. Of course, it is a
2656 rare human who admits that he has been persuaded that he is wrong. But
2657 it is even rarer for a human to ignore when he has been proven wrong.
2658 The writing of ideas, arguments, and criticism improves democracy.
2659 Today there are probably a couple of million blogs where such writing
2660 happens. When there are ten million, there will be something
2661 extraordinary to report.
2662 </para>
2663 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage' class='endofrange'/>
2664 <indexterm startref='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='endofrange'/>
2665 <indexterm startref='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='endofrange'/>
2666 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs2' class='endofrange'/>
2667 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson2' class='endofrange'/>
2668 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs2' class='endofrange'/>
2669 <indexterm startref='idxwinerdave' class='endofrange'/>
2670 <indexterm id='idxbrownjohnseely' class='startofrange'><primary>Brown, John Seely</primary></indexterm>
2671 <indexterm id='idxadvertising1' class='startofrange'><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
2672 <para>
2673 <emphasis role='strong'>John Seely Brown</emphasis> is the chief
2674 scientist of the Xerox Corporation. His work, as his Web site
2675 describes it, is <quote>human learning and &hellip; the creation of
2676 knowledge ecologies for creating &hellip; innovation.</quote>
2677 </para>
2678 <para>
2679 Brown thus looks at these technologies of digital creativity a bit
2680 differently from the perspectives I've sketched so far. I'm sure he
2681 would be excited about any technology that might improve
2682 democracy. But his real excitement comes from how these technologies
2683 affect learning.
2684 </para>
2685 <para>
2686 As Brown believes, we learn by tinkering. When <quote>a lot of us grew up,</quote>
2687 he explains, that tinkering was done <quote>on motorcycle engines, lawnmower
2688 engines, automobiles, radios, and so on.</quote> But digital technologies
2689 enable a different kind of tinkering&mdash;with abstract ideas though
2690 in concrete form. The kids at Just Think! not only think about how a
2691 commercial portrays a politician; using digital technology, they can
2692 <!-- PAGE BREAK 59 -->
2693 take the commercial apart and manipulate it, tinker with it to see how
2694 it does what it does. Digital technologies launch a kind of bricolage,
2695 or <quote>free collage,</quote> as Brown calls it. Many get to add to or transform
2696 the tinkering of many others.
2697 </para>
2698 <para>
2699 The best large-scale example of this kind of tinkering so far is free
2700 software or open-source software (FS/OSS). FS/OSS is software whose
2701 source code is shared. Anyone can download the technology that makes a
2702 FS/OSS program run. And anyone eager to learn how a particular bit of
2703 FS/OSS technology works can tinker with the code.
2704 </para>
2705 <para>
2706 This opportunity creates a <quote>completely new kind of learning platform,</quote>
2707 as Brown describes. <quote>As soon as you start doing that, you &hellip;
2708 unleash a free collage on the community, so that other people can
2709 start looking at your code, tinkering with it, trying it out, seeing
2710 if they can improve it.</quote> Each effort is a kind of
2711 apprenticeship. <quote>Open source becomes a major apprenticeship platform.</quote>
2712 </para>
2713 <para>
2714 In this process, <quote>the concrete things you tinker with are abstract.
2715 They are code.</quote> Kids are <quote>shifting to the ability to tinker in the
2716 abstract, and this tinkering is no longer an isolated activity that
2717 you're doing in your garage. You are tinkering with a community
2718 platform. &hellip; You are tinkering with other people's stuff. The more
2719 you tinker the more you improve.</quote> The more you improve, the more you
2720 learn.
2721 </para>
2722 <para>
2723 This same thing happens with content, too. And it happens in the same
2724 collaborative way when that content is part of the Web. As Brown puts
2725 it, <quote>the Web [is] the first medium that truly honors multiple forms of
2726 intelligence.</quote> Earlier technologies, such as the typewriter or word
2727 processors, helped amplify text. But the Web amplifies much more than
2728 text. <quote>The Web &hellip; says if you are musical, if you are artistic, if
2729 you are visual, if you are interested in film &hellip; [then] there is a
2730 lot you can start to do on this medium. [It] can now amplify and honor
2731 these multiple forms of intelligence.</quote>
2732 </para>
2733 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising1' class='endofrange'/>
2734 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie</primary></indexterm>
2735 <para>
2736 Brown is talking about what Elizabeth Daley, Stephanie Barish, and
2737 Just Think! teach: that this tinkering with culture teaches as well
2738
2739 <!-- PAGE BREAK 60 -->
2740 as creates. It develops talents differently, and it builds a different
2741 kind of recognition.
2742 </para>
2743 <para>
2744 Yet the freedom to tinker with these objects is not guaranteed.
2745 Indeed, as we'll see through the course of this book, that freedom is
2746 increasingly highly contested. While there's no doubt that your father
2747 had the right to tinker with the car engine, there's great doubt that
2748 your child will have the right to tinker with the images she finds all
2749 around. The law and, increasingly, technology interfere with a
2750 freedom that technology, and curiosity, would otherwise ensure.
2751 </para>
2752 <para>
2753 These restrictions have become the focus of researchers and scholars.
2754 Professor Ed Felten of Princeton (whom we'll see more of in chapter
2755 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="property-i"/>)
2756 has developed a powerful argument in favor of the <quote>right to
2757 tinker</quote> as it applies to computer science and to knowledge in
2758 general.<footnote><para>
2759 <!-- f22 -->
2760 See, for example, Edward Felten and Andrew Appel, <quote>Technological Access
2761 Control Interferes with Noninfringing Scholarship,</quote> <citetitle>Communications
2762 of the Association for Computer Machinery</citetitle> 43 (2000): 9.
2763 </para></footnote>
2764 But Brown's concern is earlier, or younger, or more fundamental. It is
2765 about the learning that kids can do, or can't do, because of the law.
2766 </para>
2767 <para>
2768 <quote>This is where education in the twenty-first century is going,</quote> Brown
2769 explains. We need to <quote>understand how kids who grow up digital think
2770 and want to learn.</quote>
2771 </para>
2772 <para>
2773 <quote>Yet,</quote> as Brown continued, and as the balance of this book will
2774 evince, <quote>we are building a legal system that completely suppresses the
2775 natural tendencies of today's digital kids. &hellip; We're building an
2776 architecture that unleashes 60 percent of the brain [and] a legal
2777 system that closes down that part of the brain.</quote>
2778 </para>
2779 <indexterm startref="idxbrownjohnseely" class='endofrange'/>
2780 <para>
2781 We're building a technology that takes the magic of Kodak, mixes
2782 moving images and sound, and adds a space for commentary and an
2783 opportunity to spread that creativity everywhere. But we're building
2784 the law to close down that technology.
2785 </para>
2786 <para>
2787 <quote>No way to run a culture,</quote> as Brewster Kahle, whom we'll meet in
2788 chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="collectors"/>,
2789 quipped to me in a rare moment of despondence.
2790 </para>
2791 <!-- PAGE BREAK 61 -->
2792 </chapter>
2793 <chapter label="3" id="catalogs">
2794 <title>CHAPTER THREE: Catalogs</title>
2795 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse</primary></indexterm>
2796 <indexterm><primary>RPI</primary><see>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)</see></indexterm>
2797 <indexterm id='idxrensselaer' class='startofrange'><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)</primary></indexterm>
2798 <indexterm id='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='startofrange'><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)</primary><secondary>computer network search engine of</secondary></indexterm>
2799 <indexterm id='idxsearchengines' class='startofrange'><primary>search engines</primary></indexterm>
2800 <indexterm id='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='startofrange'><primary>university computer networks, p2p sharing on</primary></indexterm>
2801 <indexterm id='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>search engines used on</secondary></indexterm>
2802 <para>
2803 <emphasis role='strong'>In the fall</emphasis> of 2002, Jesse Jordan
2804 of Oceanside, New York, enrolled as a freshman at Rensselaer
2805 Polytechnic Institute, in Troy, New York. His major at RPI was
2806 information technology. Though he is not a programmer, in October
2807 Jesse decided to begin to tinker with search engine technology that
2808 was available on the RPI network.
2809 </para>
2810 <para>
2811 RPI is one of America's foremost technological research institutions.
2812 It offers degrees in fields ranging from architecture and engineering
2813 to information sciences. More than 65 percent of its five thousand
2814 undergraduates finished in the top 10 percent of their high school
2815 class. The school is thus a perfect mix of talent and experience to
2816 imagine and then build, a generation for the network age.
2817 </para>
2818 <para>
2819 RPI's computer network links students, faculty, and administration to
2820 one another. It also links RPI to the Internet. Not everything
2821 available on the RPI network is available on the Internet. But the
2822 network is designed to enable students to get access to the Internet,
2823 as well as more intimate access to other members of the RPI community.
2824 </para>
2825 <indexterm id='idxgoogle' class='startofrange'><primary>Google</primary></indexterm>
2826 <para>
2827 Search engines are a measure of a network's intimacy. Google
2828 <!-- PAGE BREAK 62 -->
2829 brought the Internet much closer to all of us by fantastically
2830 improving the quality of search on the network. Specialty search
2831 engines can do this even better. The idea of <quote>intranet</quote> search
2832 engines, search engines that search within the network of a particular
2833 institution, is to provide users of that institution with better
2834 access to material from that institution. Businesses do this all the
2835 time, enabling employees to have access to material that people
2836 outside the business can't get. Universities do it as well.
2837 </para>
2838 <indexterm startref='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='endofrange'/>
2839 <indexterm id='idxjordanjesse' class='startofrange'><primary>Jordan, Jesse</primary></indexterm>
2840 <indexterm id='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='startofrange'><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>network file system of</secondary></indexterm>
2841 <para>
2842 These engines are enabled by the network technology itself.
2843 Microsoft, for example, has a network file system that makes it very
2844 easy for search engines tuned to that network to query the system for
2845 information about the publicly (within that network) available
2846 content. Jesse's search engine was built to take advantage of this
2847 technology. It used Microsoft's network file system to build an index
2848 of all the files available within the RPI network.
2849 </para>
2850 <indexterm startref='idxgoogle' class='endofrange'/>
2851 <para>
2852 Jesse's wasn't the first search engine built for the RPI network.
2853 Indeed, his engine was a simple modification of engines that others
2854 had built. His single most important improvement over those engines
2855 was to fix a bug within the Microsoft file-sharing system that could
2856 cause a user's computer to crash. With the engines that existed
2857 before, if you tried to access a file through a Windows browser that
2858 was on a computer that was off-line, your computer could crash. Jesse
2859 modified the system a bit to fix that problem, by adding a button that
2860 a user could click to see if the machine holding the file was still
2861 on-line.
2862 </para>
2863 <indexterm startref='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='endofrange'/>
2864 <para>
2865 Jesse's engine went on-line in late October. Over the following six
2866 months, he continued to tweak it to improve its functionality. By
2867 March, the system was functioning quite well. Jesse had more than one
2868 million files in his directory, including every type of content that might
2869 be on users' computers.
2870 </para>
2871 <indexterm startref='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='endofrange'/>
2872 <para>
2873 Thus the index his search engine produced included pictures, which
2874 students could use to put on their own Web sites; copies of notes or
2875 research; copies of information pamphlets; movie clips that students
2876 might have created; university brochures&mdash;basically anything that
2877 <!-- PAGE BREAK 63 -->
2878 users of the RPI network made available in a public folder of their
2879 computer.
2880 </para>
2881 <indexterm><primary>Google</primary></indexterm>
2882 <indexterm><primary>education</primary><secondary>tinkering as means of</secondary></indexterm>
2883 <para>
2884 But the index also included music files. In fact, one quarter of the
2885 files that Jesse's search engine listed were music files. But that
2886 means, of course, that three quarters were not, and&mdash;so that this
2887 point is absolutely clear&mdash;Jesse did nothing to induce people to
2888 put music files in their public folders. He did nothing to target the
2889 search engine to these files. He was a kid tinkering with a
2890 Google-like technology at a university where he was studying
2891 information science, and hence, tinkering was the aim. Unlike Google,
2892 or Microsoft, for that matter, he made no money from this tinkering;
2893 he was not connected to any business that would make any money from
2894 this experiment. He was a kid tinkering with technology in an
2895 environment where tinkering with technology was precisely what he was
2896 supposed to do.
2897 </para>
2898 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>in recording industry</secondary></indexterm>
2899 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>against student file sharing</secondary></indexterm>
2900 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='startofrange'><primary>recording industry</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits of</secondary></indexterm>
2901 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='startofrange'><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits filed by</secondary></indexterm>
2902 <indexterm startref='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='endofrange'/>
2903 <para>
2904 On April 3, 2003, Jesse was contacted by the dean of students at
2905 RPI. The dean informed Jesse that the Recording Industry Association
2906 of America, the RIAA, would be filing a lawsuit against him and three
2907 other students whom he didn't even know, two of them at other
2908 universities. A few hours later, Jesse was served with papers from
2909 the suit. As he read these papers and watched the news reports about
2910 them, he was increasingly astonished.
2911 </para>
2912 <para>
2913 <quote>It was absurd,</quote> he told me. <quote>I don't think I did anything
2914 wrong. &hellip; I don't think there's anything wrong with the search
2915 engine that I ran or &hellip; what I had done to it. I mean, I hadn't
2916 modified it in any way that promoted or enhanced the work of
2917 pirates. I just modified the search engine in a way that would make it
2918 easier to use</quote>&mdash;again, a <emphasis>search engine</emphasis>,
2919 which Jesse had not himself built, using the Windows filesharing
2920 system, which Jesse had not himself built, to enable members of the
2921 RPI community to get access to content, which Jesse had not himself
2922 created or posted, and the vast majority of which had nothing to do
2923 with music.
2924 </para>
2925 <indexterm startref='idxsearchengines' class='endofrange'/>
2926 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of</secondary></indexterm>
2927 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>statutory damages of</secondary></indexterm>
2928 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>individual defendants intimidated by</secondary></indexterm>
2929 <indexterm><primary>statutory damages</primary></indexterm>
2930 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='startofrange'><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)</primary><secondary>intimidation tactics of</secondary></indexterm>
2931 <para>
2932 But the RIAA branded Jesse a pirate. They claimed he operated a
2933 network and had therefore <quote>willfully</quote> violated copyright laws. They
2934 <!-- PAGE BREAK 64 -->
2935 demanded that he pay them the damages for his wrong. For cases of
2936 <quote>willful infringement,</quote> the Copyright Act specifies something lawyers
2937 call <quote>statutory damages.</quote> These damages permit a copyright owner to
2938 claim $150,000 per infringement. As the RIAA alleged more than one
2939 hundred specific copyright infringements, they therefore demanded that
2940 Jesse pay them at least $15,000,000.
2941 </para>
2942 <indexterm><primary>Michigan Technical University</primary></indexterm>
2943 <indexterm><primary>Princeton University</primary></indexterm>
2944 <para>
2945 Similar lawsuits were brought against three other students: one other
2946 student at RPI, one at Michigan Technical University, and one at
2947 Princeton. Their situations were similar to Jesse's. Though each case
2948 was different in detail, the bottom line in each was exactly the same:
2949 huge demands for <quote>damages</quote> that the RIAA claimed it was entitled to.
2950 If you added up the claims, these four lawsuits were asking courts in
2951 the United States to award the plaintiffs close to $100
2952 <emphasis>billion</emphasis>&mdash;six times the
2953 <emphasis>total</emphasis> profit of the film industry in
2954 2001.<footnote><para>
2955
2956 <!-- f1 -->
2957 Tim Goral, <quote>Recording Industry Goes After Campus P-2-P Networks:
2958 Suit Alleges $97.8 Billion in Damages,</quote> <citetitle>Professional Media Group LCC</citetitle> 6
2959 (2003): 5, available at 2003 WL 55179443.
2960 </para></footnote>
2961 </para>
2962 <indexterm startref="idxrensselaer" class='endofrange'/>
2963 <para>
2964 Jesse called his parents. They were supportive but a bit frightened.
2965 An uncle was a lawyer. He began negotiations with the RIAA. They
2966 demanded to know how much money Jesse had. Jesse had saved
2967 $12,000 from summer jobs and other employment. They demanded
2968 $12,000 to dismiss the case.
2969 </para>
2970 <indexterm><primary>Oppenheimer, Matt</primary></indexterm>
2971 <para>
2972 The RIAA wanted Jesse to admit to doing something wrong. He
2973 refused. They wanted him to agree to an injunction that would
2974 essentially make it impossible for him to work in many fields of
2975 technology for the rest of his life. He refused. They made him
2976 understand that this process of being sued was not going to be
2977 pleasant. (As Jesse's father recounted to me, the chief lawyer on the
2978 case, Matt Oppenheimer, told Jesse, <quote>You don't want to pay another
2979 visit to a dentist like me.</quote>) And throughout, the RIAA insisted it
2980 would not settle the case until it took every penny Jesse had saved.
2981 </para>
2982 <indexterm><primary>legal system, attorney costs in</primary></indexterm>
2983 <para>
2984 Jesse's family was outraged at these claims. They wanted to fight.
2985 But Jesse's uncle worked to educate the family about the nature of the
2986 American legal system. Jesse could fight the RIAA. He might even
2987 win. But the cost of fighting a lawsuit like this, Jesse was told, would be
2988 at least $250,000. If he won, he would not recover that money. If he
2989 <!-- PAGE BREAK 65 -->
2990 won, he would have a piece of paper saying he had won, and a piece of
2991 paper saying he and his family were bankrupt.
2992 </para>
2993 <para>
2994 So Jesse faced a mafia-like choice: $250,000 and a chance at winning,
2995 or $12,000 and a settlement.
2996 </para>
2997 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
2998 <indexterm><primary>recording industry</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in</secondary></indexterm>
2999 <indexterm><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)</primary><secondary>lobbying power of</secondary></indexterm>
3000 <para>
3001 The recording industry insists this is a matter of law and morality.
3002 Let's put the law aside for a moment and think about the morality.
3003 Where is the morality in a lawsuit like this? What is the virtue in
3004 scapegoatism? The RIAA is an extraordinarily powerful lobby. The
3005 president of the RIAA is reported to make more than $1 million a year.
3006 Artists, on the other hand, are not well paid. The average recording
3007 artist makes $45,900.<footnote><para>
3008 <!-- f2 -->
3009 Occupational Employment Survey, U.S. Dept. of Labor (2001)
3010 (27&ndash;2042&mdash;Musicians and Singers). See also National Endowment for
3011 the Arts, <citetitle>More Than One in a Blue Moon</citetitle> (2000).
3012 </para></footnote>
3013 There are plenty of ways for the RIAA to affect
3014 and direct policy. So where is the morality in taking money from a
3015 student for running a search engine?<footnote><para>
3016 <!-- f3 -->
3017 Douglas Lichtman makes a related point in <quote>KaZaA and Punishment,</quote>
3018 <citetitle>Wall Street Journal</citetitle>, 10 September 2003, A24.
3019 </para></footnote>
3020 </para>
3021 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='endofrange'/>
3022 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='endofrange'/>
3023 <para>
3024 On June 23, Jesse wired his savings to the lawyer working for the
3025 RIAA. The case against him was then dismissed. And with this, this
3026 kid who had tinkered a computer into a $15 million lawsuit became an
3027 activist:
3028 </para>
3029 <blockquote>
3030 <para>
3031 I was definitely not an activist [before]. I never really meant to be
3032 an activist. &hellip; [But] I've been pushed into this. In no way did I
3033 ever foresee anything like this, but I think it's just completely
3034 absurd what the RIAA has done.
3035 </para>
3036 </blockquote>
3037 <para>
3038 Jesse's parents betray a certain pride in their reluctant activist. As
3039 his father told me, Jesse <quote>considers himself very conservative, and so do
3040 I. &hellip; He's not a tree hugger. &hellip; I think it's bizarre that they would
3041 pick on him. But he wants to let people know that they're sending the
3042 wrong message. And he wants to correct the record.</quote>
3043 </para>
3044 <indexterm startref='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='endofrange'/>
3045 <indexterm startref='idxjordanjesse' class='endofrange'/>
3046 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='endofrange'/>
3047 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='endofrange'/>
3048 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='endofrange'/>
3049 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='endofrange'/>
3050 <!-- PAGE BREAK 66 -->
3051 </chapter>
3052 <chapter label="4" id="pirates">
3053 <title>CHAPTER FOUR: <quote>Pirates</quote></title>
3054 <indexterm id='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='startofrange'><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>in development of content industry</secondary></indexterm>
3055 <indexterm><primary><quote>if value, then right</quote> theory</primary></indexterm>
3056 <para>
3057 <emphasis role='strong'>If <quote>piracy</quote> means</emphasis>
3058 using the creative property of others without their
3059 permission&mdash;if <quote>if value, then right</quote> is
3060 true&mdash;then the history of the content industry is a history of
3061 piracy. Every important sector of <quote>big media</quote>
3062 today&mdash;film, records, radio, and cable TV&mdash;was born of a
3063 kind of piracy so defined. The consistent story is how last
3064 generation's pirates join this generation's country club&mdash;until
3065 now.
3066 </para>
3067 <section id="film">
3068 <title>Film</title>
3069 <para>
3070 The film industry of Hollywood was built by fleeing pirates.<footnote><para>
3071 <!-- f1 -->
3072 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
3073 I am grateful to Peter DiMauro for pointing me to this extraordinary
3074 history. See also Siva Vaidhyanathan, <citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs</citetitle>, 87&ndash;93,
3075 which details Edison's <quote>adventures</quote> with copyright and patent.
3076 </para></footnote>
3077 Creators and directors migrated from the East Coast to California in
3078 the early twentieth century in part to escape controls that patents
3079 granted the inventor of filmmaking, Thomas Edison. These controls were
3080 exercised through a monopoly <quote>trust,</quote> the Motion Pictures Patents
3081 Company, and were based on Thomas Edison's creative
3082 property&mdash;patents. Edison formed the MPPC to exercise the rights
3083 this creative property
3084 <!-- PAGE BREAK 67 -->
3085 gave him, and the MPPC was serious about the control it demanded.
3086 </para>
3087 <para>
3088 As one commentator tells one part of the story,
3089 </para>
3090 <blockquote>
3091 <para>
3092 A January 1909 deadline was set for all companies to comply with
3093 the license. By February, unlicensed outlaws, who referred to
3094 themselves as independents protested the trust and carried on
3095 business without submitting to the Edison monopoly. In the
3096 summer of 1909 the independent movement was in full-swing,
3097 with producers and theater owners using illegal equipment and
3098 imported film stock to create their own underground market.
3099 </para>
3100 <indexterm><primary>Fox, William</primary></indexterm>
3101 <indexterm><primary>General Film Company</primary></indexterm>
3102 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.</primary></indexterm>
3103 <para>
3104 With the country experiencing a tremendous expansion in the number of
3105 nickelodeons, the Patents Company reacted to the independent movement
3106 by forming a strong-arm subsidiary known as the General Film Company
3107 to block the entry of non-licensed independents. With coercive tactics
3108 that have become legendary, General Film confiscated unlicensed
3109 equipment, discontinued product supply to theaters which showed
3110 unlicensed films, and effectively monopolized distribution with the
3111 acquisition of all U.S. film exchanges, except for the one owned by
3112 the independent William Fox who defied the Trust even after his
3113 license was revoked.<footnote><para>
3114 <!-- f2 -->
3115 J. A. Aberdeen, <citetitle>Hollywood Renegades: The Society of Independent Motion
3116 Picture Producers</citetitle> (Cobblestone Entertainment, 2000) and expanded texts
3117 posted at <quote>The Edison Movie Monopoly: The Motion Picture Patents
3118 Company vs. the Independent Outlaws,</quote> available at
3119 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #11</ulink>. For a
3120 discussion of the economic motive behind both these limits and the
3121 limits imposed by Victor on phonographs, see Randal C. Picker, <quote>From
3122 Edison to the Broadcast Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and
3123 the Propertization of Copyright</quote> (September 2002), University of
3124 Chicago Law School, James M. Olin Program in Law and Economics,
3125 Working Paper No. 159.
3126 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag</primary></indexterm>
3127 </para></footnote>
3128 </para>
3129 </blockquote>
3130 <para>
3131 The Napsters of those days, the <quote>independents,</quote> were companies like
3132 Fox. And no less than today, these independents were vigorously
3133 resisted. <quote>Shooting was disrupted by machinery stolen, and
3134 `accidents' resulting in loss of negatives, equipment, buildings and
3135 sometimes life and limb frequently occurred.</quote><footnote><para>
3136 <!-- f3 -->
3137 Marc Wanamaker, <quote>The First Studios,</quote> <citetitle>The Silents Majority</citetitle>, archived at
3138 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #12</ulink>.
3139 </para></footnote>
3140 That led the independents to flee the East
3141 Coast. California was remote enough from Edison's reach that
3142 filmmakers there could pirate his inventions without fear of the
3143 law. And the leaders of Hollywood filmmaking, Fox most prominently,
3144 did just that.
3145 </para>
3146 <para>
3147 Of course, California grew quickly, and the effective enforcement
3148 of federal law eventually spread west. But because patents grant the
3149 patent holder a truly <quote>limited</quote> monopoly (just seventeen years at that
3150
3151 <!-- PAGE BREAK 68 -->
3152 time), by the time enough federal marshals appeared, the patents had
3153 expired. A new industry had been born, in part from the piracy of
3154 Edison's creative property.
3155 </para>
3156 </section>
3157 <section id="recordedmusic">
3158 <title>Recorded Music</title>
3159 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>on music recordings</secondary></indexterm>
3160 <para>
3161 The record industry was born of another kind of piracy, though to see
3162 how requires a bit of detail about the way the law regulates music.
3163 </para>
3164 <indexterm id="idxfourneauxhenri" class='startofrange'><primary>Fourneaux, Henri</primary></indexterm>
3165 <indexterm><primary>Russel, Phil</primary></indexterm>
3166 <para>
3167 At the time that Edison and Henri Fourneaux invented machines
3168 for reproducing music (Edison the phonograph, Fourneaux the player
3169 piano), the law gave composers the exclusive right to control copies of
3170 their music and the exclusive right to control public performances of
3171 their music. In other words, in 1900, if I wanted a copy of Phil Russel's
3172 1899 hit <quote>Happy Mose,</quote> the law said I would have to pay for the right
3173 to get a copy of the musical score, and I would also have to pay for the
3174 right to perform it publicly.
3175 </para>
3176 <indexterm><primary>Beatles</primary></indexterm>
3177 <para>
3178 But what if I wanted to record <quote>Happy Mose,</quote> using Edison's phonograph
3179 or Fourneaux's player piano? Here the law stumbled. It was clear
3180 enough that I would have to buy any copy of the musical score that I
3181 performed in making this recording. And it was clear enough that I
3182 would have to pay for any public performance of the work I was
3183 recording. But it wasn't totally clear that I would have to pay for a
3184 <quote>public performance</quote> if I recorded the song in my own house (even
3185 today, you don't owe the Beatles anything if you sing their songs in
3186 the shower), or if I recorded the song from memory (copies in your
3187 brain are not&mdash;yet&mdash; regulated by copyright law). So if I
3188 simply sang the song into a recording device in the privacy of my own
3189 home, it wasn't clear that I owed the composer anything. And more
3190 importantly, it wasn't clear whether I owed the composer anything if I
3191 then made copies of those recordings. Because of this gap in the law,
3192 then, I could effectively pirate someone else's song without paying
3193 its composer anything.
3194 </para>
3195 <indexterm startref="idxfourneauxhenri" class='endofrange'/>
3196 <para>
3197 The composers (and publishers) were none too happy about
3198 <!-- PAGE BREAK 69 -->
3199 this capacity to pirate. As South Dakota senator Alfred Kittredge
3200 put it,
3201 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred</primary></indexterm>
3202 </para>
3203 <blockquote>
3204 <para>
3205 Imagine the injustice of the thing. A composer writes a song or an
3206 opera. A publisher buys at great expense the rights to the same and
3207 copyrights it. Along come the phonographic companies and companies who
3208 cut music rolls and deliberately steal the work of the brain of the
3209 composer and publisher without any regard for [their]
3210 rights.<footnote><para>
3211 <!-- f4 -->
3212 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright: Hearings on
3213 S. 6330 and H.R. 19853 Before the ( Joint) Committees on Patents, 59th
3214 Cong. 59, 1st sess. (1906) (statement of Senator Alfred B. Kittredge,
3215 of South Dakota, chairman), reprinted in <citetitle>Legislative History of the
3216 Copyright Act</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and Abe Goldman, eds. (South
3217 Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints, 1976).
3218 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred</primary></indexterm>
3219 </para></footnote>
3220 </para>
3221 </blockquote>
3222 <indexterm><primary>Sousa, John Philip</primary></indexterm>
3223 <para>
3224 The innovators who developed the technology to record other
3225 people's works were <quote>sponging upon the toil, the work, the talent, and
3226 genius of American composers,</quote><footnote><para>
3227 <!-- f5 -->
3228 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright, 223
3229 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3230 </para></footnote>
3231 and the <quote>music publishing industry</quote>
3232 was thereby <quote>at the complete mercy of this one pirate.</quote><footnote><para>
3233 <!-- f6 -->
3234 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright, 226
3235 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3236 </para></footnote>
3237 As John Philip
3238 Sousa put it, in as direct a way as possible, <quote>When they make money
3239 out of my pieces, I want a share of it.</quote><footnote><para>
3240 <!-- f7 -->
3241 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright, 23
3242 (statement of John Philip Sousa, composer).
3243 </para></footnote>
3244 </para>
3245 <indexterm><primary>American Graphophone Company</primary></indexterm>
3246 <indexterm><primary>player pianos</primary></indexterm>
3247 <indexterm><primary>sheet music</primary></indexterm>
3248 <para>
3249 These arguments have familiar echoes in the wars of our day. So, too,
3250 do the arguments on the other side. The innovators who developed the
3251 player piano argued that <quote>it is perfectly demonstrable that the
3252 introduction of automatic music players has not deprived any composer
3253 of anything he had before their introduction.</quote> Rather, the machines
3254 increased the sales of sheet music.<footnote><para>
3255 <!-- f8 -->
3256
3257 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright, 283&ndash;84
3258 (statement of Albert Walker, representative of the Auto-Music
3259 Perforating Company of New York).
3260 </para></footnote> In any case, the innovators argued, the job of
3261 Congress was <quote>to consider first the interest of [the public], whom
3262 they represent, and whose servants they are.</quote> <quote>All talk about
3263 `theft,'</quote> the general counsel of the American Graphophone Company
3264 wrote, <quote>is the merest claptrap, for there exists no property in ideas
3265 musical, literary or artistic, except as defined by
3266 statute.</quote><footnote><para>
3267 <!-- f9 -->
3268 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright, 376 (prepared
3269 memorandum of Philip Mauro, general patent counsel of the American
3270 Graphophone Company Association).
3271 </para></footnote>
3272 </para>
3273 <para>
3274 The law soon resolved this battle in favor of the composer
3275 <emphasis>and</emphasis> the recording artist. Congress amended the
3276 law to make sure that composers would be paid for the <quote>mechanical
3277 reproductions</quote> of their music. But rather than simply granting the
3278 composer complete control over the right to make mechanical
3279 reproductions, Congress gave recording artists a right to record the
3280 music, at a price set by Congress, once the composer allowed it to be
3281 recorded once. This is the part of
3282
3283 <!-- PAGE BREAK 70 -->
3284 copyright law that makes cover songs possible. Once a composer
3285 authorizes a recording of his song, others are free to record the same
3286 song, so long as they pay the original composer a fee set by the law.
3287 </para>
3288 <para>
3289 American law ordinarily calls this a <quote>compulsory license,</quote> but I will
3290 refer to it as a <quote>statutory license.</quote> A statutory license is a license
3291 whose key terms are set by law. After Congress's amendment of the
3292 Copyright Act in 1909, record companies were free to distribute copies
3293 of recordings so long as they paid the composer (or copyright holder)
3294 the fee set by the statute.
3295 </para>
3296 <indexterm><primary>Grisham, John</primary></indexterm>
3297 <para>
3298 This is an exception within the law of copyright. When John Grisham
3299 writes a novel, a publisher is free to publish that novel only if
3300 Grisham gives the publisher permission. Grisham, in turn, is free to
3301 charge whatever he wants for that permission. The price to publish
3302 Grisham is thus set by Grisham, and copyright law ordinarily says you
3303 have no permission to use Grisham's work except with permission of
3304 Grisham.
3305 </para>
3306 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='endofrange'/>
3307 <para>
3308 But the law governing recordings gives recording artists less. And
3309 thus, in effect, the law <emphasis>subsidizes</emphasis> the recording
3310 industry through a kind of piracy&mdash;by giving recording artists a
3311 weaker right than it otherwise gives creative authors. The Beatles
3312 have less control over their creative work than Grisham does. And the
3313 beneficiaries of this less control are the recording industry and the
3314 public. The recording industry gets something of value for less than
3315 it otherwise would pay; the public gets access to a much wider range
3316 of musical creativity. Indeed, Congress was quite explicit about its
3317 reasons for granting this right. Its fear was the monopoly power of
3318 rights holders, and that that power would stifle follow-on
3319 creativity.<footnote><para>
3320
3321 <!-- f10 -->
3322 Copyright Law Revision: Hearings on S. 2499, S. 2900, H.R. 243, and
3323 H.R. 11794 Before the ( Joint) Committee on Patents, 60th Cong., 1st
3324 sess., 217 (1908) (statement of Senator Reed Smoot, chairman), reprinted
3325 in <citetitle>Legislative History of the 1909 Copyright Act</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and
3326 Abe Goldman, eds. (South Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints, 1976).
3327 </para></footnote>
3328 <indexterm><primary>Beatles</primary></indexterm>
3329 </para>
3330 <para>
3331 While the recording industry has been quite coy about this recently,
3332 historically it has been quite a supporter of the statutory license for
3333 records. As a 1967 report from the House Committee on the Judiciary
3334 relates,
3335 </para>
3336 <blockquote>
3337 <para>
3338 the record producers argued vigorously that the compulsory
3339 <!-- PAGE BREAK 71 -->
3340 license system must be retained. They asserted that the record
3341 industry is a half-billion-dollar business of great economic
3342 importance in the United States and throughout the world; records
3343 today are the principal means of disseminating music, and this creates
3344 special problems, since performers need unhampered access to musical
3345 material on nondiscriminatory terms. Historically, the record
3346 producers pointed out, there were no recording rights before 1909 and
3347 the 1909 statute adopted the compulsory license as a deliberate
3348 anti-monopoly condition on the grant of these rights. They argue that
3349 the result has been an outpouring of recorded music, with the public
3350 being given lower prices, improved quality, and a greater
3351 choice.<footnote><para>
3352 <!-- f11 -->
3353 Copyright Law Revision: Report to Accompany H.R. 2512, House Committee
3354 on the Judiciary, 90th Cong., 1st sess., House Document no. 83, (8
3355 March 1967). I am grateful to Glenn Brown for drawing my attention to
3356 this report.</para></footnote>
3357 </para>
3358 </blockquote>
3359 <para>
3360 By limiting the rights musicians have, by partially pirating their
3361 creative work, the record producers, and the public, benefit.
3362 </para>
3363 </section>
3364 <section id="radio">
3365 <title>Radio</title>
3366 <indexterm id='idxartistspayments1' class='startofrange'><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
3367 <para>
3368 Radio was also born of piracy.
3369 </para>
3370 <para>
3371 When a radio station plays a record on the air, that constitutes a
3372 <quote>public performance</quote> of the composer's work.<footnote><para>
3373 <!-- f12 -->
3374 See 17 <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>, sections 106 and 110. At the beginning,
3375 record companies printed <quote>Not Licensed for Radio Broadcast</quote> and other
3376 messages purporting to restrict the ability to play a record on a
3377 radio station. Judge Learned Hand rejected the argument that a
3378 warning attached to a record might restrict the rights of the radio
3379 station. See <citetitle>RCA Manufacturing Co</citetitle>. v. <citetitle>Whiteman</citetitle>, 114 F. 2d 86 (2nd
3380 Cir. 1940). See also Randal C. Picker, <quote>From Edison to the Broadcast
3381 Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and the Propertization of
3382 Copyright,</quote> <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review</citetitle> 70 (2003): 281.
3383 <indexterm><primary>Hand, Learned</primary></indexterm>
3384 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.</primary></indexterm>
3385 </para></footnote>
3386 As I described above, the law gives the composer (or copyright holder)
3387 an exclusive right to public performances of his work. The radio
3388 station thus owes the composer money for that performance.
3389 </para>
3390 <para>
3391 But when the radio station plays a record, it is not only performing a
3392 copy of the <emphasis>composer's</emphasis> work. The radio station is
3393 also performing a copy of the <emphasis>recording artist's</emphasis>
3394 work. It's one thing to have <quote>Happy Birthday</quote> sung on the radio by the
3395 local children's choir; it's quite another to have it sung by the
3396 Rolling Stones or Lyle Lovett. The recording artist is adding to the
3397 value of the composition performed on the radio station. And if the
3398 law were perfectly consistent, the radio station would have to pay the
3399 recording artist for his work, just as it pays the composer of the
3400 music for his work.
3401 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle</primary></indexterm>
3402
3403 <!-- PAGE BREAK 72 -->
3404 </para>
3405 <para>
3406 But it doesn't. Under the law governing radio performances, the radio
3407 station does not have to pay the recording artist. The radio station
3408 need only pay the composer. The radio station thus gets a bit of
3409 something for nothing. It gets to perform the recording artist's work
3410 for free, even if it must pay the composer something for the privilege
3411 of playing the song.
3412 </para>
3413 <indexterm id="idxmadonna" class='startofrange'><primary>Madonna</primary></indexterm>
3414 <para>
3415 This difference can be huge. Imagine you compose a piece of music.
3416 Imagine it is your first. You own the exclusive right to authorize
3417 public performances of that music. So if Madonna wants to sing your
3418 song in public, she has to get your permission.
3419 </para>
3420 <para>
3421 Imagine she does sing your song, and imagine she likes it a lot. She
3422 then decides to make a recording of your song, and it becomes a top
3423 hit. Under our law, every time a radio station plays your song, you
3424 get some money. But Madonna gets nothing, save the indirect effect on
3425 the sale of her CDs. The public performance of her recording is not a
3426 <quote>protected</quote> right. The radio station thus gets to
3427 <emphasis>pirate</emphasis> the value of Madonna's work without paying
3428 her anything.
3429 </para>
3430 <indexterm startref="idxmadonna" class='endofrange'/>
3431 <para>
3432 No doubt, one might argue that, on balance, the recording artists
3433 benefit. On average, the promotion they get is worth more than the
3434 performance rights they give up. Maybe. But even if so, the law
3435 ordinarily gives the creator the right to make this choice. By making
3436 the choice for him or her, the law gives the radio station the right
3437 to take something for nothing.
3438 </para>
3439 <indexterm startref='idxartistspayments1' class='endofrange'/>
3440 </section>
3441 <section id="cabletv">
3442 <title>Cable TV</title>
3443 <indexterm id='idxcabletelevision' class='startofrange'><primary>cable television</primary></indexterm>
3444 <para>
3445 Cable TV was also born of a kind of piracy.
3446 </para>
3447 <para>
3448 When cable entrepreneurs first started wiring communities with cable
3449 television in 1948, most refused to pay broadcasters for the content
3450 that they echoed to their customers. Even when the cable companies
3451 started selling access to television broadcasts, they refused to pay
3452 <!-- PAGE BREAK 73 -->
3453 for what they sold. Cable companies were thus Napsterizing
3454 broadcasters' content, but more egregiously than anything Napster ever
3455 did&mdash; Napster never charged for the content it enabled others to
3456 give away.
3457 </para>
3458 <indexterm><primary>Anello, Douglas</primary></indexterm>
3459 <indexterm><primary>Burdick, Quentin</primary></indexterm>
3460 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.</primary></indexterm>
3461 <para>
3462 Broadcasters and copyright owners were quick to attack this theft.
3463 Rosel Hyde, chairman of the FCC, viewed the practice as a kind of
3464 <quote>unfair and potentially destructive competition.</quote><footnote><para>
3465 <!-- f13 -->
3466 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV: Hearing on S. 1006 Before the
3467 Subcommittee on Patents, Trademarks, and Copyrights of the Senate
3468 Committee on the Judiciary, 89th Cong., 2nd sess., 78 (1966)
3469 (statement of Rosel H. Hyde, chairman of the Federal Communications
3470 Commission).
3471 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.</primary></indexterm>
3472 </para></footnote>
3473 There may have been a <quote>public interest</quote> in spreading the reach of cable
3474 TV, but as Douglas Anello, general counsel to the National Association
3475 of Broadcasters, asked Senator Quentin Burdick during testimony, <quote>Does public
3476 interest dictate that you use somebody else's property?</quote><footnote><para>
3477 <!-- f14 -->
3478 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV, 116 (statement of Douglas A. Anello,
3479 general counsel of the National Association of Broadcasters).
3480 </para></footnote>
3481 As another broadcaster put it,
3482 </para>
3483 <blockquote>
3484 <para>
3485 The extraordinary thing about the CATV business is that it is the
3486 only business I know of where the product that is being sold is not
3487 paid for.<footnote><para>
3488 <!-- f15 -->
3489 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV, 126 (statement of Ernest W. Jennes,
3490 general counsel of the Association of Maximum Service Telecasters, Inc.).
3491 </para></footnote>
3492 </para>
3493 </blockquote>
3494 <para>
3495 Again, the demand of the copyright holders seemed reasonable enough:
3496 </para>
3497 <blockquote>
3498 <para>
3499 All we are asking for is a very simple thing, that people who now
3500 take our property for nothing pay for it. We are trying to stop
3501 piracy and I don't think there is any lesser word to describe it. I
3502 think there are harsher words which would fit it.<footnote><para>
3503 <!-- f16 -->
3504 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV, 169 (joint statement of Arthur B.
3505 Krim, president of United Artists Corp., and John Sinn, president of
3506 United Artists Television, Inc.).
3507 </para></footnote>
3508 </para>
3509 </blockquote>
3510 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton</primary></indexterm>
3511 <para>
3512 These were <quote>free-ride[rs],</quote> Screen Actor's Guild president Charlton
3513 Heston said, who were <quote>depriving actors of
3514 compensation.</quote><footnote><para>
3515 <!-- f17 -->
3516 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV, 209 (statement of Charlton Heston,
3517 president of the Screen Actors Guild).
3518 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton</primary></indexterm>
3519 </para>
3520 </footnote>
3521 </para>
3522 <para>
3523 But again, there was another side to the debate. As Assistant Attorney
3524 General Edwin Zimmerman put it,
3525 </para>
3526 <blockquote>
3527 <para>
3528 Our point here is that unlike the problem of whether you have any
3529 copyright protection at all, the problem here is whether copyright
3530 holders who are already compensated, who already have a monopoly,
3531 should be permitted to extend that monopoly. &hellip; The
3532
3533 <!-- PAGE BREAK 74 -->
3534 question here is how much compensation they should have and
3535 how far back they should carry their right to compensation.<footnote><para>
3536 <!-- f18 -->
3537 Copyright Law Revision&mdash;CATV, 216 (statement of Edwin M.
3538 Zimmerman, acting assistant attorney general).
3539 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin</primary></indexterm>
3540 </para></footnote>
3541 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin</primary></indexterm>
3542 </para>
3543 </blockquote>
3544 <para>
3545 Copyright owners took the cable companies to court. Twice the Supreme
3546 Court held that the cable companies owed the copyright owners nothing.
3547 </para>
3548 <para>
3549 It took Congress almost thirty years before it resolved the question
3550 of whether cable companies had to pay for the content they <quote>pirated.</quote>
3551 In the end, Congress resolved this question in the same way that it
3552 resolved the question about record players and player pianos. Yes,
3553 cable companies would have to pay for the content that they broadcast;
3554 but the price they would have to pay was not set by the copyright
3555 owner. The price was set by law, so that the broadcasters couldn't
3556 exercise veto power over the emerging technologies of cable. Cable
3557 companies thus built their empire in part upon a <quote>piracy</quote> of the value
3558 created by broadcasters' content.
3559 </para>
3560 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='endofrange'/>
3561 <indexterm startref='idxcabletelevision' class='endofrange'/>
3562 <para>
3563 <emphasis role='strong'>These separate stories</emphasis> sing a
3564 common theme. If <quote>piracy</quote> means using value from someone
3565 else's creative property without permission from that creator&mdash;as
3566 it is increasingly described today<footnote><para>
3567 <!-- f19 -->
3568 See, for example, National Music Publisher's Association, <citetitle>The Engine
3569 of Free Expression: Copyright on the Internet&mdash;The Myth of Free
3570 Information</citetitle>, available at
3571 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #13</ulink>. <quote>The
3572 threat of piracy&mdash;the use of someone else's creative work without
3573 permission or compensation&mdash;has grown with the Internet.</quote>
3574 </para></footnote>
3575 &mdash; then <emphasis>every</emphasis> industry affected by copyright
3576 today is the product and beneficiary of a certain kind of
3577 piracy. Film, records, radio, cable TV. &hellip; The list is long and
3578 could well be expanded. Every generation welcomes the pirates from the
3579 last. Every generation&mdash;until now.
3580 </para>
3581 <!-- PAGE BREAK 75 -->
3582 </section>
3583 </chapter>
3584 <chapter label="5" id="piracy">
3585 <title>CHAPTER FIVE: <quote>Piracy</quote></title>
3586 <para>
3587 <emphasis role='strong'>There is piracy</emphasis> of copyrighted
3588 material. Lots of it. This piracy comes in many forms. The most
3589 significant is commercial piracy, the unauthorized taking of other
3590 people's content within a commercial context. Despite the many
3591 justifications that are offered in its defense, this taking is
3592 wrong. No one should condone it, and the law should stop it.
3593 </para>
3594 <para>
3595 But as well as copy-shop piracy, there is another kind of <quote>taking</quote>
3596 that is more directly related to the Internet. That taking, too, seems
3597 wrong to many, and it is wrong much of the time. Before we paint this
3598 taking <quote>piracy,</quote> however, we should understand its nature a bit more.
3599 For the harm of this taking is significantly more ambiguous than
3600 outright copying, and the law should account for that ambiguity, as it
3601 has so often done in the past.
3602 <!-- PAGE BREAK 76 -->
3603 </para>
3604 <section id="piracy-i">
3605 <title>Piracy I</title>
3606 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in</primary></indexterm>
3607 <indexterm id='idxcdsforeign' class='startofrange'><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>foreign piracy of</secondary></indexterm>
3608 <para>
3609 All across the world, but especially in Asia and Eastern Europe, there
3610 are businesses that do nothing but take others people's copyrighted
3611 content, copy it, and sell it&mdash;all without the permission of a copyright
3612 owner. The recording industry estimates that it loses about $4.6 billion
3613 every year to physical piracy<footnote><para>
3614 <!-- f1 -->
3615 See IFPI (International Federation of the Phonographic Industry), <citetitle>The
3616 Recording Industry Commercial Piracy Report 2003</citetitle>, July 2003, available
3617 at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #14</ulink>. See
3618 also Ben Hunt, <quote>Companies Warned on Music Piracy Risk,</quote> <citetitle>Financial
3619 Times</citetitle>, 14 February 2003, 11.
3620 </para></footnote>
3621 (that works out to one in three CDs sold worldwide). The MPAA
3622 estimates that it loses $3 billion annually worldwide to piracy.
3623 </para>
3624 <para>
3625 This is piracy plain and simple. Nothing in the argument of this
3626 book, nor in the argument that most people make when talking about
3627 the subject of this book, should draw into doubt this simple point:
3628 This piracy is wrong.
3629 </para>
3630 <para>
3631 Which is not to say that excuses and justifications couldn't be made
3632 for it. We could, for example, remind ourselves that for the first one
3633 hundred years of the American Republic, America did not honor foreign
3634 copyrights. We were born, in this sense, a pirate nation. It might
3635 therefore seem hypocritical for us to insist so strongly that other
3636 developing nations treat as wrong what we, for the first hundred years
3637 of our existence, treated as right.
3638 </para>
3639 <para>
3640 That excuse isn't terribly strong. Technically, our law did not ban
3641 the taking of foreign works. It explicitly limited itself to American
3642 works. Thus the American publishers who published foreign works
3643 without the permission of foreign authors were not violating any rule.
3644 The copy shops in Asia, by contrast, are violating Asian law. Asian
3645 law does protect foreign copyrights, and the actions of the copy shops
3646 violate that law. So the wrong of piracy that they engage in is not
3647 just a moral wrong, but a legal wrong, and not just an internationally
3648 legal wrong, but a locally legal wrong as well.
3649 </para>
3650 <para>
3651 True, these local rules have, in effect, been imposed upon these
3652 countries. No country can be part of the world economy and choose
3653 <!-- PAGE BREAK 77-->
3654 not to protect copyright internationally. We may have been born a
3655 pirate nation, but we will not allow any other nation to have a
3656 similar childhood.
3657 </para>
3658 <para>
3659 If a country is to be treated as a sovereign, however, then its laws are
3660 its laws regardless of their source. The international law under which
3661 these nations live gives them some opportunities to escape the burden
3662 of intellectual property law.<footnote><para>
3663 <!-- f2 -->
3664 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite, Information Feudalism:
3665 <citetitle>Who Owns the Knowledge Economy?</citetitle> (New York: The
3666 New Press, 2003), 10&ndash;13, 209. The Trade-Related Aspects of
3667 Intellectual Property Rights (TRIPS) agreement obligates member
3668 nations to create administrative and enforcement mechanisms for
3669 intellectual property rights, a costly proposition for developing
3670 countries. Additionally, patent rights may lead to higher prices for
3671 staple industries such as agriculture. Critics of TRIPS question the
3672 disparity between burdens imposed upon developing countries and
3673 benefits conferred to industrialized nations. TRIPS does permit
3674 governments to use patents for public, noncommercial uses without
3675 first obtaining the patent holder's permission. Developing nations may
3676 be able to use this to gain the benefits of foreign patents at lower
3677 prices. This is a promising strategy for developing nations within the
3678 TRIPS framework.
3679 <indexterm><primary>agricultural patents</primary></indexterm>
3680 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter</primary></indexterm>
3681 </para></footnote> In my view, more developing nations should take
3682 advantage of that opportunity, but when they don't, then their laws
3683 should be respected. And under the laws of these nations, this piracy
3684 is wrong.
3685 </para>
3686 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in</primary></indexterm>
3687 <para>
3688 Alternatively, we could try to excuse this piracy by noting that in
3689 any case, it does no harm to the industry. The Chinese who get access
3690 to American CDs at 50 cents a copy are not people who would have
3691 bought those American CDs at $15 a copy. So no one really has any
3692 less money than they otherwise would have had.<footnote><para>
3693 <!-- f3 -->
3694 For an analysis of the economic impact of copying technology, see Stan
3695 Liebowitz, <citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy</citetitle> (New York: Amacom, 2002),
3696 144&ndash;90. <quote>In some instances &hellip; the impact of piracy on the
3697 copyright holder's ability to appropriate the value of the work will
3698 be negligible. One obvious instance is the case where the individual
3699 engaging in pirating would not have purchased an original even if
3700 pirating were not an option.</quote> Ibid., 149.
3701 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan</primary></indexterm>
3702 </para></footnote>
3703 </para>
3704 <para>
3705 This is often true (though I have friends who have purchased many
3706 thousands of pirated DVDs who certainly have enough money to pay
3707 for the content they have taken), and it does mitigate to some degree
3708 the harm caused by such taking. Extremists in this debate love to say,
3709 <quote>You wouldn't go into Barnes &amp; Noble and take a book off of the shelf
3710 without paying; why should it be any different with on-line music?</quote>
3711 The difference is, of course, that when you take a book from Barnes &amp;
3712 Noble, it has one less book to sell. By contrast, when you take an MP3
3713 from a computer network, there is not one less CD that can be sold.
3714 The physics of piracy of the intangible are different from the physics of
3715 piracy of the tangible.
3716 </para>
3717 <indexterm startref='idxcdsforeign' class='endofrange'/>
3718 <para>
3719 This argument is still very weak. However, although copyright is a
3720 property right of a very special sort, it <emphasis>is</emphasis> a
3721 property right. Like all property rights, the copyright gives the
3722 owner the right to decide the terms under which content is shared. If
3723 the copyright owner doesn't want to sell, she doesn't have to. There
3724 are exceptions: important statutory licenses that apply to copyrighted
3725 content regardless of the wish of the copyright owner. Those licenses
3726 give people the right to <quote>take</quote> copyrighted content whether or not the
3727 copyright owner wants to sell. But
3728
3729 <!-- PAGE BREAK 78 -->
3730 where the law does not give people the right to take content, it is
3731 wrong to take that content even if the wrong does no harm. If we have
3732 a property system, and that system is properly balanced to the
3733 technology of a time, then it is wrong to take property without the
3734 permission of a property owner. That is exactly what <quote>property</quote> means.
3735 </para>
3736 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in</primary></indexterm>
3737 <indexterm><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>in Asia</secondary></indexterm>
3738 <indexterm><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)</primary></indexterm>
3739 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
3740 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
3741 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>competitive strategies of</secondary></indexterm>
3742 <indexterm><primary>Windows</primary></indexterm>
3743 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>international software piracy of</secondary></indexterm>
3744 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>Windows operating system of</secondary></indexterm>
3745 <para>
3746 Finally, we could try to excuse this piracy with the argument that the
3747 piracy actually helps the copyright owner. When the Chinese <quote>steal</quote>
3748 Windows, that makes the Chinese dependent on Microsoft. Microsoft
3749 loses the value of the software that was taken. But it gains users who
3750 are used to life in the Microsoft world. Over time, as the nation
3751 grows more wealthy, more and more people will buy software rather than
3752 steal it. And hence over time, because that buying will benefit
3753 Microsoft, Microsoft benefits from the piracy. If instead of pirating
3754 Microsoft Windows, the Chinese used the free GNU/Linux operating
3755 system, then these Chinese users would not eventually be buying
3756 Microsoft. Without piracy, then, Microsoft would lose.
3757 </para>
3758 <indexterm><primary>law</primary><secondary>databases of case reports in</secondary></indexterm>
3759 <para>
3760 This argument, too, is somewhat true. The addiction strategy is a good
3761 one. Many businesses practice it. Some thrive because of it. Law
3762 students, for example, are given free access to the two largest legal
3763 databases. The companies marketing both hope the students will become
3764 so used to their service that they will want to use it and not the
3765 other when they become lawyers (and must pay high subscription fees).
3766 </para>
3767 <indexterm><primary>Netscape</primary></indexterm>
3768 <indexterm><primary>Internet Explorer</primary></indexterm>
3769 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
3770 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
3771 <para>
3772 Still, the argument is not terribly persuasive. We don't give the
3773 alcoholic a defense when he steals his first beer, merely because that
3774 will make it more likely that he will buy the next three. Instead, we
3775 ordinarily allow businesses to decide for themselves when it is best
3776 to give their product away. If Microsoft fears the competition of
3777 GNU/Linux, then Microsoft can give its product away, as it did, for
3778 example, with Internet Explorer to fight Netscape. A property right
3779 means giving the property owner the right to say who gets access to
3780 what&mdash;at least ordinarily. And if the law properly balances the
3781 rights of the copyright owner with the rights of access, then
3782 violating the law is still wrong.
3783 </para>
3784 <para>
3785 <!-- PAGE BREAK 79 -->
3786 Thus, while I understand the pull of these justifications for piracy,
3787 and I certainly see the motivation, in my view, in the end, these efforts
3788 at justifying commercial piracy simply don't cut it. This kind of piracy
3789 is rampant and just plain wrong. It doesn't transform the content it
3790 steals; it doesn't transform the market it competes in. It merely gives
3791 someone access to something that the law says he should not have.
3792 Nothing has changed to draw that law into doubt. This form of piracy
3793 is flat out wrong.
3794 </para>
3795 <para>
3796 But as the examples from the four chapters that introduced this part
3797 suggest, even if some piracy is plainly wrong, not all <quote>piracy</quote> is. Or
3798 at least, not all <quote>piracy</quote> is wrong if that term is understood in the
3799 way it is increasingly used today. Many kinds of <quote>piracy</quote> are useful
3800 and productive, to produce either new content or new ways of doing
3801 business. Neither our tradition nor any tradition has ever banned all
3802 <quote>piracy</quote> in that sense of the term.
3803 </para>
3804 <para>
3805 This doesn't mean that there are no questions raised by the latest
3806 piracy concern, peer-to-peer file sharing. But it does mean that we
3807 need to understand the harm in peer-to-peer sharing a bit more before
3808 we condemn it to the gallows with the charge of piracy.
3809 </para>
3810 <para>
3811 For (1) like the original Hollywood, p2p sharing escapes an overly
3812 controlling industry; and (2) like the original recording industry, it
3813 simply exploits a new way to distribute content; but (3) unlike cable
3814 TV, no one is selling the content that is shared on p2p services.
3815 </para>
3816 <para>
3817 These differences distinguish p2p sharing from true piracy. They
3818 should push us to find a way to protect artists while enabling this
3819 sharing to survive.
3820 </para>
3821 </section>
3822 <section id="piracy-ii">
3823 <title>Piracy II</title>
3824 <para>
3825 The key to the <quote>piracy</quote> that the law aims to quash is a use that <quote>rob[s]
3826 the author of [his] profit.</quote><footnote><para>
3827 <!-- f4 -->
3828 <citetitle>Bach</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Longman</citetitle>, 98 Eng. Rep. 1274 (1777).
3829 </para></footnote>
3830 This means we must determine whether
3831 and how much p2p sharing harms before we know how strongly the
3832 <!-- PAGE BREAK 80 -->
3833 law should seek to either prevent it or find an alternative to assure the
3834 author of his profit.
3835 </para>
3836 <indexterm><primary>innovation</primary></indexterm>
3837 <indexterm><primary>Fanning, Shawn</primary></indexterm>
3838 <para>
3839 Peer-to-peer sharing was made famous by Napster. But the inventors of
3840 the Napster technology had not made any major technological
3841 innovations. Like every great advance in innovation on the Internet
3842 (and, arguably, off the Internet as well<footnote><para>
3843 <!-- f5 -->
3844 <indexterm><primary>innovation</primary></indexterm>
3845 See Clayton M. Christensen, <citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The Revolutionary
3846 National Bestseller That Changed the Way We Do Business</citetitle> (New York:
3847 HarperBusiness, 2000). Professor Christensen examines why companies
3848 that give rise to and dominate a product area are frequently unable to
3849 come up with the most creative, paradigm-shifting uses for their own
3850 products. This job usually falls to outside innovators, who
3851 reassemble existing technology in inventive ways. For a discussion of
3852 Christensen's ideas, see Lawrence Lessig, <citetitle>Future</citetitle>, 89&ndash;92, 139.
3853
3854 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.</primary></indexterm>
3855 </para></footnote>), Shawn Fanning and crew had simply
3856 put together components that had been developed independently.
3857 </para>
3858 <para>
3859 The result was spontaneous combustion. Launched in July 1999,
3860 Napster amassed over 10 million users within nine months. After
3861 eighteen months, there were close to 80 million registered users of the
3862 system.<footnote><para>
3863 <!-- f6 -->
3864 See Carolyn Lochhead, <quote>Silicon Valley Dream, Hollywood Nightmare,</quote> <citetitle>San
3865 Francisco Chronicle</citetitle>, 24 September 2002, A1; <quote>Rock 'n' Roll Suicide,</quote>
3866 <citetitle>New Scientist</citetitle>, 6 July 2002, 42; Benny Evangelista, <quote>Napster Names CEO,
3867 Secures New Financing,</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle</citetitle>, 23 May 2003, C1;
3868 <quote>Napster's Wake-Up Call,</quote> <citetitle>Economist</citetitle>, 24 June 2000, 23; John Naughton,
3869 <quote>Hollywood at War with the Internet</quote> (London) <citetitle>Times</citetitle>, 26 July 2002, 18.
3870 </para></footnote>
3871 Courts quickly shut Napster down, but other services emerged
3872 to take its place. (Kazaa is currently the most popular p2p service. It
3873 boasts over 100 million members.) These services' systems are different
3874 architecturally, though not very different in function: Each enables
3875 users to make content available to any number of other users. With a
3876 p2p system, you can share your favorite songs with your best friend&mdash;
3877 or your 20,000 best friends.
3878 </para>
3879 <para>
3880 According to a number of estimates, a huge proportion of Americans
3881 have tasted file-sharing technology. A study by Ipsos-Insight in
3882 September 2002 estimated that 60 million Americans had downloaded
3883 music&mdash;28 percent of Americans older than 12.<footnote><para>
3884
3885 <!-- f7 -->
3886 See Ipsos-Insight, <citetitle>TEMPO: Keeping Pace with Online Music Distribution</citetitle>
3887 (September 2002), reporting that 28 percent of Americans aged twelve
3888 and older have downloaded music off of the Internet and 30 percent have
3889 listened to digital music files stored on their computers.
3890 </para></footnote>
3891 A survey by the NPD group quoted in <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle>
3892 estimated that 43 million citizens used file-sharing networks to
3893 exchange content in May 2003.<footnote><para>
3894 <!-- f8 -->
3895 Amy Harmon, <quote>Industry Offers a Carrot in Online Music Fight,</quote> <citetitle>New
3896 York Times</citetitle>, 6 June 2003, A1.
3897 </para></footnote>
3898 The vast majority of these are not kids. Whatever the actual figure, a
3899 massive quantity of content is being <quote>taken</quote> on these networks. The
3900 ease and inexpensiveness of file-sharing networks have inspired
3901 millions to enjoy music in a way that they hadn't before.
3902 </para>
3903 <para>
3904 Some of this enjoying involves copyright infringement. Some of it does
3905 not. And even among the part that is technically copyright
3906 infringement, calculating the actual harm to copyright owners is more
3907 complicated than one might think. So consider&mdash;a bit more
3908 carefully than the polarized voices around this debate usually
3909 do&mdash;the kinds of sharing that file sharing enables, and the kinds
3910 of harm it entails.
3911 </para>
3912 <para>
3913 <!-- PAGE BREAK 81 -->
3914 File sharers share different kinds of content. We can divide these
3915 different kinds into four types.
3916 </para>
3917 <orderedlist numeration="upperalpha">
3918 <listitem>
3919 <indexterm><primary>Madonna</primary></indexterm>
3920 <para>
3921 <!-- A. -->
3922 There are some who use sharing networks as substitutes for purchasing
3923 content. Thus, when a new Madonna CD is released, rather than buying
3924 the CD, these users simply take it. We might quibble about whether
3925 everyone who takes it would actually have bought it if sharing didn't
3926 make it available for free. Most probably wouldn't have, but clearly
3927 there are some who would. The latter are the target of category A:
3928 users who download instead of purchasing.
3929 </para></listitem>
3930 <listitem><para>
3931 <!-- B. -->
3932 There are some who use sharing networks to sample music before
3933 purchasing it. Thus, a friend sends another friend an MP3 of an artist
3934 he's not heard of. The other friend then buys CDs by that artist. This
3935 is a kind of targeted advertising, quite likely to succeed. If the
3936 friend recommending the album gains nothing from a bad recommendation,
3937 then one could expect that the recommendations will actually be quite
3938 good. The net effect of this sharing could increase the quantity of
3939 music purchased.
3940 </para></listitem>
3941 <listitem><para>
3942 <!-- C. -->
3943 There are many who use sharing networks to get access to copyrighted
3944 content that is no longer sold or that they would not have purchased
3945 because the transaction costs off the Net are too high. This use of
3946 sharing networks is among the most rewarding for many. Songs that were
3947 part of your childhood but have long vanished from the marketplace
3948 magically appear again on the network. (One friend told me that when
3949 she discovered Napster, she spent a solid weekend <quote>recalling</quote> old
3950 songs. She was astonished at the range and mix of content that was
3951 available.) For content not sold, this is still technically a
3952 violation of copyright, though because the copyright owner is not
3953 selling the content anymore, the economic harm is zero&mdash;the same
3954 harm that occurs when I sell my collection of 1960s 45-rpm records to
3955 a local collector.
3956 </para></listitem>
3957 <listitem><para>
3958 <!-- PAGE BREAK 82 -->
3959 <!-- D. -->
3960 Finally, there are many who use sharing networks to get access
3961 to content that is not copyrighted or that the copyright owner
3962 wants to give away.
3963 </para></listitem>
3964 </orderedlist>
3965 <para>
3966 How do these different types of sharing balance out?
3967 </para>
3968 <para>
3969 Let's start with some simple but important points. From the
3970 perspective of the law, only type D sharing is clearly legal. From the
3971 perspective of economics, only type A sharing is clearly
3972 harmful.<footnote><para>
3973 <!-- f9 -->
3974 See Liebowitz, <citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy</citetitle>, 148&ndash;49.
3975 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan</primary></indexterm>
3976 </para></footnote>
3977 Type B sharing is illegal but plainly beneficial. Type C sharing is
3978 illegal, yet good for society (since more exposure to music is good)
3979 and harmless to the artist (since the work is not otherwise
3980 available). So how sharing matters on balance is a hard question to
3981 answer&mdash;and certainly much more difficult than the current
3982 rhetoric around the issue suggests.
3983 </para>
3984 <para>
3985 Whether on balance sharing is harmful depends importantly on how
3986 harmful type A sharing is. Just as Edison complained about Hollywood,
3987 composers complained about piano rolls, recording artists complained
3988 about radio, and broadcasters complained about cable TV, the music
3989 industry complains that type A sharing is a kind of <quote>theft</quote> that is
3990 <quote>devastating</quote> the industry.
3991 </para>
3992 <indexterm id='idxcassette' class='startofrange'><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
3993 <para>
3994 While the numbers do suggest that sharing is harmful, how
3995 harmful is harder to reckon. It has long been the recording industry's
3996 practice to blame technology for any drop in sales. The history of
3997 cassette recording is a good example. As a study by Cap Gemini Ernst
3998 &amp; Young put it, <quote>Rather than exploiting this new, popular
3999 technology, the labels fought it.</quote><footnote><para>
4000 <!-- f10 -->
4001 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording</primary></indexterm>
4002 See Cap Gemini Ernst &amp; Young, <citetitle>Technology Evolution and the
4003 Music Industry's Business Model Crisis</citetitle> (2003), 3. This report
4004 describes the music industry's effort to stigmatize the budding
4005 practice of cassette taping in the 1970s, including an advertising
4006 campaign featuring a cassette-shape skull and the caption <quote>Home taping
4007 is killing music.</quote> At the time digital audio tape became a threat,
4008 the Office of Technical Assessment conducted a survey of consumer
4009 behavior. In 1988, 40 percent of consumers older than ten had taped
4010 music to a cassette format. U.S. Congress, Office of Technology
4011 Assessment, <citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying: Technology Challenges the Law</citetitle>,
4012 OTA-CIT-422 (Washington, D.C.: U.S. Government Printing Office,
4013 October 1989), 145&ndash;56. </para></footnote>
4014 The labels claimed that every album taped was an album unsold, and
4015 when record sales fell by 11.4 percent in 1981, the industry claimed
4016 that its point was proved. Technology was the problem, and banning or
4017 regulating technology was the answer.
4018 </para>
4019 <indexterm><primary>MTV</primary></indexterm>
4020 <para>
4021 Yet soon thereafter, and before Congress was given an opportunity
4022 to enact regulation, MTV was launched, and the industry had a record
4023 turnaround. <quote>In the end,</quote> Cap Gemini concludes, <quote>the `crisis' &hellip; was
4024 not the fault of the tapers&mdash;who did not [stop after MTV came into
4025 <!-- PAGE BREAK 83 -->
4026 being]&mdash;but had to a large extent resulted from stagnation in musical
4027 innovation at the major labels.</quote><footnote><para>
4028 <!-- f11 -->
4029 U.S. Congress, <citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying</citetitle>, 4.
4030 </para></footnote>
4031 </para>
4032 <indexterm startref='idxcassette' class='endofrange'/>
4033 <para>
4034 But just because the industry was wrong before does not mean it is
4035 wrong today. To evaluate the real threat that p2p sharing presents to
4036 the industry in particular, and society in general&mdash;or at least
4037 the society that inherits the tradition that gave us the film
4038 industry, the record industry, the radio industry, cable TV, and the
4039 VCR&mdash;the question is not simply whether type A sharing is
4040 harmful. The question is also <emphasis>how</emphasis> harmful type A
4041 sharing is, and how beneficial the other types of sharing are.
4042 </para>
4043 <para>
4044 We start to answer this question by focusing on the net harm, from the
4045 standpoint of the industry as a whole, that sharing networks cause.
4046 The <quote>net harm</quote> to the industry as a whole is the amount by which type
4047 A sharing exceeds type B. If the record companies sold more records
4048 through sampling than they lost through substitution, then sharing
4049 networks would actually benefit music companies on balance. They would
4050 therefore have little <emphasis>static</emphasis> reason to resist
4051 them.
4052
4053 </para>
4054 <indexterm id='idxcdssales' class='startofrange'><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>sales levels of</secondary></indexterm>
4055 <para>
4056 Could that be true? Could the industry as a whole be gaining because
4057 of file sharing? Odd as that might sound, the data about CD sales
4058 actually suggest it might be close.
4059 </para>
4060 <para>
4061 In 2002, the RIAA reported that CD sales had fallen by 8.9 percent,
4062 from 882 million to 803 million units; revenues fell 6.7
4063 percent.<footnote><para>
4064 <!-- f12 -->
4065 See Recording Industry Association of America, <citetitle>2002 Yearend Statistics</citetitle>,
4066 available at
4067 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #15</ulink>. A later
4068 report indicates even greater losses. See Recording Industry
4069 Association of America, <citetitle>Some Facts About Music Piracy</citetitle>, 25 June 2003,
4070 available at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
4071 #16</ulink>: <quote>In the past four years, unit shipments of recorded music
4072 have fallen by 26 percent from 1.16 billion units in to 860 million
4073 units in 2002 in the United States (based on units shipped). In terms
4074 of sales, revenues are down 14 percent, from $14.6 billion in to $12.6
4075 billion last year (based on U.S. dollar value of shipments). The music
4076 industry worldwide has gone from a $39 billion industry in 2000 down
4077 to a $32 billion industry in 2002 (based on U.S. dollar value of
4078 shipments).</quote>
4079 </para></footnote>
4080 This confirms a trend over the past few years. The RIAA blames
4081 Internet piracy for the trend, though there are many other causes that
4082 could account for this drop. SoundScan, for example, reports a more
4083 than 20 percent drop in the number of CDs released since 1999. That no
4084 doubt accounts for some of the decrease in sales. Rising prices could
4085 account for at least some of the loss. <quote>From 1999 to 2001, the average
4086 price of a CD rose 7.2 percent, from $13.04 to $14.19.</quote><footnote>
4087 <!-- f13 -->
4088 <para>
4089 Jane Black, <quote>Big Music's Broken Record,</quote> BusinessWeek online, 13
4090 February 2003, available at
4091 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #17</ulink>.
4092 <indexterm><primary>Black, Jane</primary></indexterm>
4093 </para>
4094 </footnote>
4095 Competition from other forms of media could also account for some of
4096 the decline. As Jane Black of <citetitle>BusinessWeek</citetitle> notes, <quote>The
4097 soundtrack to the film <citetitle>High Fidelity</citetitle> has a list price of
4098 $18.98. You could get the whole movie [on DVD] for
4099 $19.99.</quote><footnote><para>
4100 <!-- f14 -->
4101 Ibid.
4102 </para></footnote>
4103 </para>
4104 <para>
4105
4106 <!-- PAGE BREAK 84 -->
4107 But let's assume the RIAA is right, and all of the decline in CD sales
4108 is because of Internet sharing. Here's the rub: In the same period
4109 that the RIAA estimates that 803 million CDs were sold, the RIAA
4110 estimates that 2.1 billion CDs were downloaded for free. Thus,
4111 although 2.6 times the total number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4112 free, sales revenue fell by just 6.7 percent.
4113 </para>
4114 <para>
4115 There are too many different things happening at the same time to
4116 explain these numbers definitively, but one conclusion is unavoidable:
4117 The recording industry constantly asks, <quote>What's the difference between
4118 downloading a song and stealing a CD?</quote>&mdash;but their own numbers
4119 reveal the difference. If I steal a CD, then there is one less CD to
4120 sell. Every taking is a lost sale. But on the basis of the numbers the
4121 RIAA provides, it is absolutely clear that the same is not true of
4122 downloads. If every download were a lost sale&mdash;if every use of
4123 Kazaa <quote>rob[bed] the author of [his] profit</quote>&mdash;then the industry
4124 would have suffered a 100 percent drop in sales last year, not a 7
4125 percent drop. If 2.6 times the number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4126 free, and yet sales revenue dropped by just 6.7 percent, then there is
4127 a huge difference between <quote>downloading a song and stealing a CD.</quote>
4128 </para>
4129 <indexterm startref='idxcdssales' class='endofrange'/>
4130 <para>
4131 These are the harms&mdash;alleged and perhaps exaggerated but, let's
4132 assume, real. What of the benefits? File sharing may impose costs on
4133 the recording industry. What value does it produce in addition to
4134 these costs?
4135 </para>
4136 <para>
4137 One benefit is type C sharing&mdash;making available content that
4138 is technically still under copyright but is no longer commercially
4139 available. This is not a small category of content. There are
4140 millions of tracks that are no longer commercially
4141 available.<footnote><para>
4142 <!-- f15 -->
4143 By one estimate, 75 percent of the music released by the major labels
4144 is no longer in print. See Online Entertainment and Copyright
4145 Law&mdash;Coming Soon to a Digital Device Near You: Hearing Before the
4146 Senate Committee on the Judiciary, 107th Cong., 1st sess. (3 April
4147 2001) (prepared statement of the Future of Music Coalition), available
4148 at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #18</ulink>.
4149 </para></footnote>
4150 And while it's conceivable that some of this content is not available
4151 because the artist producing the content doesn't want it to be made
4152 available, the vast majority of it is unavailable solely because the
4153 publisher or the distributor has decided it no longer makes economic
4154 sense <emphasis>to the company</emphasis> to make it available.
4155 </para>
4156 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>resales of</secondary></indexterm>
4157 <para>
4158 In real space&mdash;long before the Internet&mdash;the market had a simple
4159 <!-- PAGE BREAK 85 -->
4160 response to this problem: used book and record stores. There are
4161 thousands of used book and used record stores in America
4162 today.<footnote><para>
4163 <!-- f16 -->
4164 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>resales of</secondary></indexterm>
4165 While there are not good estimates of the number of used record stores
4166 in existence, in 2002, there were 7,198 used book dealers in the
4167 United States, an increase of 20 percent since 1993. See Book Hunter
4168 Press, <citetitle>The Quiet Revolution: The Expansion of the Used Book
4169 Market</citetitle> (2002), available at
4170 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #19</ulink>. Used
4171 records accounted for $260 million in sales in 2002. See National
4172 Association of Recording Merchandisers, <quote>2002 Annual Survey
4173 Results,</quote> available at
4174 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #20</ulink>.
4175 </para></footnote>
4176 These stores buy content from owners, then sell the content they
4177 buy. And under American copyright law, when they buy and sell this
4178 content, <emphasis>even if the content is still under
4179 copyright</emphasis>, the copyright owner doesn't get a dime. Used
4180 book and record stores are commercial entities; their owners make
4181 money from the content they sell; but as with cable companies before
4182 statutory licensing, they don't have to pay the copyright owner for
4183 the content they sell.
4184 </para>
4185 <indexterm><primary>Bernstein, Leonard</primary></indexterm>
4186 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>out of print</secondary></indexterm>
4187 <para>
4188 Type C sharing, then, is very much like used book stores or used
4189 record stores. It is different, of course, because the person making
4190 the content available isn't making money from making the content
4191 available. It is also different, of course, because in real space,
4192 when I sell a record, I don't have it anymore, while in cyberspace,
4193 when someone shares my 1949 recording of Bernstein's <quote>Two Love Songs,</quote>
4194 I still have it. That difference would matter economically if the
4195 owner of the copyright were selling the record in competition to my
4196 sharing. But we're talking about the class of content that is not
4197 currently commercially available. The Internet is making it available,
4198 through cooperative sharing, without competing with the market.
4199 </para>
4200 <para>
4201 It may well be, all things considered, that it would be better if the
4202 copyright owner got something from this trade. But just because it may
4203 well be better, it doesn't follow that it would be good to ban used book
4204 stores. Or put differently, if you think that type C sharing should be
4205 stopped, do you think that libraries and used book stores should be
4206 shut as well?
4207 </para>
4208 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='startofrange'><primary>books</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of</secondary></indexterm>
4209 <para>
4210 Finally, and perhaps most importantly, file-sharing networks enable
4211 type D sharing to occur&mdash;the sharing of content that copyright owners
4212 want to have shared or for which there is no continuing copyright. This
4213 sharing clearly benefits authors and society. Science fiction author
4214 Cory Doctorow, for example, released his first novel, <citetitle>Down and Out in
4215 the Magic Kingdom</citetitle>, both free on-line and in bookstores on the same
4216
4217 <!-- PAGE BREAK 86 -->
4218 day. His (and his publisher's) thinking was that the on-line distribution
4219 would be a great advertisement for the <quote>real</quote> book. People would read
4220 part on-line, and then decide whether they liked the book or not. If
4221 they liked it, they would be more likely to buy it. Doctorow's content is
4222 type D content. If sharing networks enable his work to be spread, then
4223 both he and society are better off. (Actually, much better off: It is a
4224 great book!)
4225 </para>
4226 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='endofrange'/>
4227 <para>
4228 Likewise for work in the public domain: This sharing benefits society
4229 with no legal harm to authors at all. If efforts to solve the problem
4230 of type A sharing destroy the opportunity for type D sharing, then we
4231 lose something important in order to protect type A content.
4232 </para>
4233 <para>
4234 The point throughout is this: While the recording industry
4235 understandably says, <quote>This is how much we've lost,</quote> we must also ask,
4236 <quote>How much has society gained from p2p sharing? What are the
4237 efficiencies? What is the content that otherwise would be
4238 unavailable?</quote>
4239 </para>
4240 <para>
4241 For unlike the piracy I described in the first section of this
4242 chapter, much of the <quote>piracy</quote> that file sharing enables is plainly
4243 legal and good. And like the piracy I described in chapter
4244 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="pirates"/>, much of
4245 this piracy is motivated by a new way of spreading content caused by
4246 changes in the technology of distribution. Thus, consistent with the
4247 tradition that gave us Hollywood, radio, the recording industry, and
4248 cable TV, the question we should be asking about file sharing is how
4249 best to preserve its benefits while minimizing (to the extent
4250 possible) the wrongful harm it causes artists. The question is one of
4251 balance. The law should seek that balance, and that balance will be
4252 found only with time.
4253 </para>
4254 <para>
4255 <quote>But isn't the war just a war against illegal sharing? Isn't the target
4256 just what you call type A sharing?</quote>
4257 </para>
4258 <para>
4259 You would think. And we should hope. But so far, it is not. The
4260 effect
4261 of the war purportedly on type A sharing alone has been felt far
4262 beyond that one class of sharing. That much is obvious from the
4263 Napster
4264 case itself. When Napster told the district court that it had
4265 developed
4266 a technology to block the transfer of 99.4 percent of identified
4267 <!-- PAGE BREAK 87 -->
4268 infringing material, the district court told counsel for Napster 99.4
4269 percent was not good enough. Napster had to push the infringements
4270 <quote>down to zero.</quote><footnote><para>
4271 <!-- f17 -->
4272 See Transcript of Proceedings, In Re: Napster Copyright Litigation at 34-
4273 35 (N.D. Cal., 11 July 2001), nos. MDL-00-1369 MHP, C 99-5183
4274 MHP, available at
4275
4276 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #21</ulink>. For an
4277 account of the litigation and its toll on Napster, see Joseph Menn,
4278 <citetitle>All the Rave: The Rise and Fall of Shawn Fanning's Napster</citetitle> (New
4279 York: Crown Business, 2003), 269&ndash;82.
4280 </para></footnote>
4281 </para>
4282 <para>
4283 If 99.4 percent is not good enough, then this is a war on file-sharing
4284 technologies, not a war on copyright infringement. There is no way to
4285 assure that a p2p system is used 100 percent of the time in compliance
4286 with the law, any more than there is a way to assure that 100 percent of
4287 VCRs or 100 percent of Xerox machines or 100 percent of handguns
4288 are used in compliance with the law. Zero tolerance means zero p2p.
4289 The court's ruling means that we as a society must lose the benefits of
4290 p2p, even for the totally legal and beneficial uses they serve, simply to
4291 assure that there are zero copyright infringements caused by p2p.
4292 </para>
4293 <para>
4294 Zero tolerance has not been our history. It has not produced the
4295 content industry that we know today. The history of American law has
4296 been a process of balance. As new technologies changed the way content
4297 was distributed, the law adjusted, after some time, to the new
4298 technology. In this adjustment, the law sought to ensure the
4299 legitimate rights of creators while protecting innovation. Sometimes
4300 this has meant more rights for creators. Sometimes less.
4301 </para>
4302 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
4303 <indexterm><primary>composers, copyright protections of</primary></indexterm>
4304 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='startofrange'><primary>Congress, U.S.</primary><secondary>on copyright laws</secondary></indexterm>
4305 <indexterm id='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='startofrange'><primary>Congress, U.S.</primary><secondary>on recording industry</secondary></indexterm>
4306 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>on music recordings</secondary></indexterm>
4307 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in</secondary></indexterm>
4308 <indexterm><primary>radio</primary><secondary>music recordings played on</secondary></indexterm>
4309 <indexterm><primary>recording industry</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in</secondary></indexterm>
4310 <indexterm><primary>recording industry</primary><secondary>copyright protections in</secondary></indexterm>
4311 <indexterm><primary>recording industry</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and</secondary></indexterm>
4312 <indexterm><primary>statutory licenses</primary></indexterm>
4313 <indexterm><primary>composer's rights vs. producers' rights in</primary></indexterm>
4314 <para>
4315 So, as we've seen, when <quote>mechanical reproduction</quote> threatened the
4316 interests of composers, Congress balanced the rights of composers
4317 against the interests of the recording industry. It granted rights to
4318 composers, but also to the recording artists: Composers were to be
4319 paid, but at a price set by Congress. But when radio started
4320 broadcasting the recordings made by these recording artists, and they
4321 complained to Congress that their <quote>creative property</quote> was not being
4322 respected (since the radio station did not have to pay them for the
4323 creativity it broadcast), Congress rejected their claim. An indirect
4324 benefit was enough.
4325 </para>
4326 <indexterm id='idxcabletv2' class='startofrange'><primary>cable television</primary></indexterm>
4327 <para>
4328 Cable TV followed the pattern of record albums. When the courts
4329 rejected the claim that cable broadcasters had to pay for the content
4330 they rebroadcast, Congress responded by giving broadcasters a right to
4331 compensation, but at a level set by the law. It likewise gave cable
4332 companies the right to the content, so long as they paid the statutory
4333 price.
4334 </para>
4335 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='endofrange'/>
4336 <para>
4337
4338 <!-- PAGE BREAK 88 -->
4339 This compromise, like the compromise affecting records and player
4340 pianos, served two important goals&mdash;indeed, the two central goals
4341 of any copyright legislation. First, the law assured that new
4342 innovators would have the freedom to develop new ways to deliver
4343 content. Second, the law assured that copyright holders would be paid
4344 for the content that was distributed. One fear was that if Congress
4345 simply required cable TV to pay copyright holders whatever they
4346 demanded for their content, then copyright holders associated with
4347 broadcasters would use their power to stifle this new technology,
4348 cable. But if Congress had permitted cable to use broadcasters'
4349 content for free, then it would have unfairly subsidized cable. Thus
4350 Congress chose a path that would assure
4351 <emphasis>compensation</emphasis> without giving the past
4352 (broadcasters) control over the future (cable).
4353 </para>
4354 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='endofrange'/>
4355 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='endofrange'/>
4356 <indexterm startref='idxcabletv2' class='endofrange'/>
4357 <indexterm><primary>Betamax</primary></indexterm>
4358 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs1' class='startofrange'><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
4359 <para>
4360 In the same year that Congress struck this balance, two major
4361 producers and distributors of film content filed a lawsuit against
4362 another technology, the video tape recorder (VTR, or as we refer to
4363 them today, VCRs) that Sony had produced, the Betamax. Disney's and
4364 Universal's claim against Sony was relatively simple: Sony produced a
4365 device, Disney and Universal claimed, that enabled consumers to engage
4366 in copyright infringement. Because the device that Sony built had a
4367 <quote>record</quote> button, the device could be used to record copyrighted movies
4368 and shows. Sony was therefore benefiting from the copyright
4369 infringement of its customers. It should therefore, Disney and
4370 Universal claimed, be partially liable for that infringement.
4371 </para>
4372 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='endofrange'/>
4373 <para>
4374 There was something to Disney's and Universal's claim. Sony did
4375 decide to design its machine to make it very simple to record television
4376 shows. It could have built the machine to block or inhibit any direct
4377 copying from a television broadcast. Or possibly, it could have built the
4378 machine to copy only if there were a special <quote>copy me</quote> signal on the
4379 line. It was clear that there were many television shows that did not
4380 grant anyone permission to copy. Indeed, if anyone had asked, no
4381 doubt the majority of shows would not have authorized copying. And
4382 <!-- PAGE BREAK 89 -->
4383 in the face of this obvious preference, Sony could have designed its
4384 system to minimize the opportunity for copyright infringement. It did
4385 not, and for that, Disney and Universal wanted to hold it responsible
4386 for the architecture it chose.
4387 </para>
4388 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='startofrange'><primary>Congress, U.S.</primary><secondary>on copyright laws</secondary></indexterm>
4389 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.</primary><secondary>on VCR technology</secondary></indexterm>
4390 <para>
4391 MPAA president Jack Valenti became the studios' most vocal
4392 champion. Valenti called VCRs <quote>tapeworms.</quote> He warned, <quote>When there are
4393 20, 30, 40 million of these VCRs in the land, we will be invaded by
4394 millions of `tapeworms,' eating away at the very heart and essence of
4395 the most precious asset the copyright owner has, his
4396 copyright.</quote><footnote><para>
4397 <!-- f18 -->
4398 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders): Hearing on
4399 S. 1758 Before the Senate Committee on the Judiciary, 97th Cong., 1st
4400 and 2nd sess., 459 (1982) (testimony of Jack Valenti, president, Motion
4401 Picture Association of America, Inc.).
4402 </para></footnote>
4403 <quote>One does not have to be trained in sophisticated marketing and
4404 creative judgment,</quote> he told Congress, <quote>to understand the devastation
4405 on the after-theater marketplace caused by the hundreds of millions of
4406 tapings that will adversely impact on the future of the creative
4407 community in this country. It is simply a question of basic economics
4408 and plain common sense.</quote><footnote><para>
4409 <!-- f19 -->
4410 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders), 475.
4411 </para></footnote>
4412 Indeed, as surveys would later show, 45
4413 percent of VCR owners had movie libraries of ten videos or more<footnote><para>
4414 <!-- f20 -->
4415 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc</citetitle>. v. <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America</citetitle>, 480 F. Supp. 429,
4416 (C.D. Cal., 1979).
4417 </para></footnote>
4418 &mdash; a use the Court would later hold was not <quote>fair.</quote> By
4419 <quote>allowing VCR owners to copy freely by the means of an exemption from
4420 copyright infringement without creating a mechanism to compensate
4421 copyright owners,</quote> Valenti testified, Congress would <quote>take from the
4422 owners the very essence of their property: the exclusive right to
4423 control who may use their work, that is, who may copy it and thereby
4424 profit from its reproduction.</quote><footnote><para>
4425 <!-- f21 -->
4426 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders), 485 (testimony
4427 of Jack Valenti).
4428 </para></footnote>
4429 </para>
4430 <para>
4431 It took eight years for this case to be resolved by the Supreme
4432 Court. In the interim, the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals, which
4433 includes Hollywood in its jurisdiction&mdash;leading Judge Alex
4434 Kozinski, who sits on that court, refers to it as the <quote>Hollywood
4435 Circuit</quote>&mdash;held that Sony would be liable for the copyright
4436 infringement made possible by its machines. Under the Ninth Circuit's
4437 rule, this totally familiar technology&mdash;which Jack Valenti had
4438 called <quote>the Boston Strangler of the American film industry</quote> (worse
4439 yet, it was a <emphasis>Japanese</emphasis> Boston Strangler of the
4440 American film industry)&mdash;was an illegal
4441 technology.<footnote><para>
4442 <!-- f22 -->
4443 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc</citetitle>. v. <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America</citetitle>, 659 F. 2d 963 (9th Cir.
4444 1981).
4445 </para></footnote>
4446 <indexterm><primary>Kozinski, Alex</primary></indexterm>
4447 </para>
4448 <para>
4449 But the Supreme Court reversed the decision of the Ninth Circuit.
4450
4451 <!-- PAGE BREAK 90 -->
4452 And in its reversal, the Court clearly articulated its understanding of
4453 when and whether courts should intervene in such disputes. As the
4454 Court wrote,
4455 </para>
4456 <blockquote>
4457 <para>
4458 Sound policy, as well as history, supports our consistent deference
4459 to Congress when major technological innovations alter the
4460 market
4461 for copyrighted materials. Congress has the constitutional
4462 authority
4463 and the institutional ability to accommodate fully the
4464 varied permutations of competing interests that are inevitably
4465 implicated
4466 by such new technology.<footnote><para>
4467 <!-- f23 -->
4468 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc</citetitle>., 464 U.S. 417, 431 (1984).
4469 </para></footnote>
4470 </para>
4471 </blockquote>
4472 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='endofrange'/>
4473 <para>
4474 Congress was asked to respond to the Supreme Court's decision. But as
4475 with the plea of recording artists about radio broadcasts, Congress
4476 ignored the request. Congress was convinced that American film got
4477 enough, this <quote>taking</quote> notwithstanding. If we put these cases
4478 together, a pattern is clear:
4479 </para>
4480
4481 <informaltable id="t1">
4482 <tgroup cols="4" align="left">
4483 <thead>
4484 <row>
4485 <entry>CASE</entry>
4486 <entry>WHOSE VALUE WAS <quote>PIRATED</quote></entry>
4487 <entry>RESPONSE OF THE COURTS</entry>
4488 <entry>RESPONSE OF CONGRESS</entry>
4489 </row>
4490 </thead>
4491 <tbody>
4492 <row>
4493 <entry>Recordings</entry>
4494 <entry>Composers</entry>
4495 <entry>No protection</entry>
4496 <entry>Statutory license</entry>
4497 </row>
4498 <row>
4499 <entry>Radio</entry>
4500 <entry>Recording artists</entry>
4501 <entry>N/A</entry>
4502 <entry>Nothing</entry>
4503 </row>
4504 <row>
4505 <entry>Cable TV</entry>
4506 <entry>Broadcasters</entry>
4507 <entry>No protection</entry>
4508 <entry>Statutory license</entry>
4509 </row>
4510 <row>
4511 <entry>VCR</entry>
4512 <entry>Film creators</entry>
4513 <entry>No protection</entry>
4514 <entry>Nothing</entry>
4515 </row>
4516 </tbody>
4517 </tgroup>
4518 </informaltable>
4519 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs1' class='endofrange'/>
4520 <para>
4521 In each case throughout our history, a new technology changed the
4522 way content was distributed.<footnote><para>
4523 <!-- f24 -->
4524 These are the most important instances in our history, but there are other
4525 cases as well. The technology of digital audio tape (DAT), for example,
4526 was regulated by Congress to minimize the risk of piracy. The remedy
4527 Congress imposed did burden DAT producers, by taxing tape sales and
4528 controlling the technology of DAT. See Audio Home Recording Act of
4529 1992 (Title 17 of the <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>), Pub. L. No. 102-563, 106 Stat.
4530 4237, codified at 17 U.S.C. §1001. Again, however, this regulation did not
4531 eliminate the opportunity for free riding in the sense I've described. See
4532 Lessig, <citetitle>Future</citetitle>, 71. See also Picker, <quote>From Edison to the Broadcast Flag,</quote>
4533 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review</citetitle> 70 (2003): 293&ndash;96.
4534 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag</primary></indexterm>
4535 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.</primary></indexterm>
4536 </para></footnote>
4537 In each case, throughout our history,
4538 that change meant that someone got a <quote>free ride</quote> on someone else's
4539 work.
4540 </para>
4541 <para>
4542 In <emphasis>none</emphasis> of these cases did either the courts or
4543 Congress eliminate all free riding. In <emphasis>none</emphasis> of
4544 these cases did the courts or Congress insist that the law should
4545 assure that the copyright holder get all the value that his copyright
4546 created. In every case, the copyright owners complained of <quote>piracy.</quote>
4547 In every case, Congress acted to recognize some of the legitimacy in
4548 the behavior of the <quote>pirates.</quote> In each case, Congress allowed some new
4549 technology to benefit from content made before. It balanced the
4550 interests at stake.
4551 <!-- PAGE BREAK 91 -->
4552 </para>
4553 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
4554 <para>
4555 When you think across these examples, and the other examples that
4556 make up the first four chapters of this section, this balance makes
4557 sense. Was Walt Disney a pirate? Would doujinshi be better if creators
4558 had to ask permission? Should tools that enable others to capture and
4559 spread images as a way to cultivate or criticize our culture be better
4560 regulated?
4561 Is it really right that building a search engine should expose you
4562 to $15 million in damages? Would it have been better if Edison had
4563 controlled film? Should every cover band have to hire a lawyer to get
4564 permission to record a song?
4565 </para>
4566 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.</primary><secondary>on balance of interests in copyright law</secondary></indexterm>
4567 <para>
4568 We could answer yes to each of these questions, but our tradition
4569 has answered no. In our tradition, as the Supreme Court has stated,
4570 copyright <quote>has never accorded the copyright owner complete control
4571 over all possible uses of his work.</quote><footnote><para>
4572 <!-- f25 -->
4573 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc</citetitle>., 464 U.S. 417,
4574 (1984).
4575 </para></footnote>
4576 Instead, the particular uses that the law regulates have been defined
4577 by balancing the good that comes from granting an exclusive right
4578 against the burdens such an exclusive right creates. And this
4579 balancing has historically been done <emphasis>after</emphasis> a
4580 technology has matured, or settled into the mix of technologies that
4581 facilitate the distribution of content.
4582 </para>
4583 <para>
4584 We should be doing the same thing today. The technology of the
4585 Internet is changing quickly. The way people connect to the Internet
4586 (wires vs. wireless) is changing very quickly. No doubt the network
4587 should not become a tool for <quote>stealing</quote> from artists. But neither
4588 should the law become a tool to entrench one particular way in which
4589 artists (or more accurately, distributors) get paid. As I describe in
4590 some detail in the last chapter of this book, we should be securing
4591 income to artists while we allow the market to secure the most
4592 efficient way to promote and distribute content. This will require
4593 changes in the law, at least in the interim. These changes should be
4594 designed to balance the protection of the law against the strong
4595 public interest that innovation continue.
4596 </para>
4597 <para>
4598
4599 <!-- PAGE BREAK 92 -->
4600 This is especially true when a new technology enables a vastly
4601 superior mode of distribution. And this p2p has done. P2p technologies
4602 can be ideally efficient in moving content across a widely diverse
4603 network. Left to develop, they could make the network vastly more
4604 efficient. Yet these <quote>potential public benefits,</quote> as John Schwartz
4605 writes in <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle>, <quote>could be delayed in the P2P
4606 fight.</quote><footnote><para>
4607 <!-- f26 -->
4608 John Schwartz, <quote>New Economy: The Attack on Peer-to-Peer Software
4609 Echoes Past Efforts,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 22 September 2003, C3.
4610 </para></footnote>
4611 </para>
4612 <para>
4613 <emphasis role='strong'>Yet when anyone</emphasis> begins to talk
4614 about <quote>balance,</quote> the copyright warriors raise a different
4615 argument. <quote>All this hand waving about balance and
4616 incentives,</quote> they say, <quote>misses a fundamental point. Our
4617 content,</quote> the warriors insist, <quote>is our
4618 <emphasis>property</emphasis>. Why should we wait for Congress to
4619 `rebalance' our property rights? Do you have to wait before calling
4620 the police when your car has been stolen? And why should Congress
4621 deliberate at all about the merits of this theft? Do we ask whether
4622 the car thief had a good use for the car before we arrest him?</quote>
4623 </para>
4624 <para>
4625 <quote>It is <emphasis>our property</emphasis>,</quote> the warriors
4626 insist. <quote>And it should be protected just as any other property
4627 is protected.</quote>
4628 </para>
4629 <!-- PAGE BREAK 93 -->
4630 </section>
4631 </chapter>
4632 </part>
4633 <part id="c-property">
4634 <title><quote>PROPERTY</quote></title>
4635 <partintro>
4636 <para>
4637
4638 <!-- PAGE BREAK 94 -->
4639 <emphasis role='strong'>The copyright warriors</emphasis> are right: A
4640 copyright is a kind of property. It can be owned and sold, and the law
4641 protects against its theft. Ordinarily, the copyright owner gets to
4642 hold out for any price he wants. Markets reckon the supply and demand
4643 that partially determine the price she can get.
4644 </para>
4645 <para>
4646 But in ordinary language, to call a copyright a <quote>property</quote> right is a
4647 bit misleading, for the property of copyright is an odd kind of
4648 property. Indeed, the very idea of property in any idea or any
4649 expression is very odd. I understand what I am taking when I take the
4650 picnic table you put in your backyard. I am taking a thing, the picnic
4651 table, and after I take it, you don't have it. But what am I taking
4652 when I take the good <emphasis>idea</emphasis> you had to put a picnic
4653 table in the backyard&mdash;by, for example, going to Sears, buying a
4654 table, and putting it in my backyard? What is the thing I am taking
4655 then?
4656 </para>
4657 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas</primary></indexterm>
4658 <para>
4659 The point is not just about the thingness of picnic tables versus
4660 ideas, though that's an important difference. The point instead is that
4661 <!-- PAGE BREAK 95 -->
4662 in the ordinary case&mdash;indeed, in practically every case except for a
4663 narrow
4664 range of exceptions&mdash;ideas released to the world are free. I don't
4665 take anything from you when I copy the way you dress&mdash;though I
4666 might seem weird if I did it every day, and especially weird if you are a
4667 woman. Instead, as Thomas Jefferson said (and as is especially true
4668 when I copy the way someone else dresses), <quote>He who receives an idea
4669 from me, receives instruction himself without lessening mine; as he who
4670 lights his taper at mine, receives light without darkening me.</quote><footnote><para>
4671 <!-- f1 -->
4672 Letter from Thomas Jefferson to Isaac McPherson (13 August 1813) in
4673 <citetitle>The Writings of Thomas Jefferson</citetitle>, vol. 6 (Andrew A. Lipscomb and Albert
4674 Ellery Bergh, eds., 1903), 330, 333&ndash;34.
4675 </para></footnote>
4676 </para>
4677 <indexterm><primary>property rights</primary><secondary>intangibility of</secondary></indexterm>
4678 <para>
4679 The exceptions to free use are ideas and expressions within the
4680 reach of the law of patent and copyright, and a few other domains that
4681 I won't discuss here. Here the law says you can't take my idea or
4682 expression
4683 without my permission: The law turns the intangible into
4684 property.
4685 </para>
4686 <para>
4687 But how, and to what extent, and in what form&mdash;the details,
4688 in other words&mdash;matter. To get a good sense of how this practice
4689 of turning the intangible into property emerged, we need to place this
4690 <quote>property</quote> in its proper context.<footnote><para>
4691 <!-- f2 -->
4692 As the legal realists taught American law, all property rights are
4693 intangible. A property right is simply a right that an individual has
4694 against the world to do or not do certain things that may or may not
4695 attach to a physical object. The right itself is intangible, even if
4696 the object to which it is (metaphorically) attached is tangible. See
4697 Adam Mossoff, <quote>What Is Property? Putting the Pieces Back Together,</quote>
4698 <citetitle>Arizona Law Review</citetitle> 45 (2003): 373, 429 n. 241.
4699 </para></footnote>
4700 </para>
4701 <para>
4702 My strategy in doing this will be the same as my strategy in the
4703 preceding part. I offer four stories to help put the idea of
4704 <quote>copyright material is property</quote> in context. Where did the idea come
4705 from? What are its limits? How does it function in practice? After
4706 these stories, the significance of this true
4707 statement&mdash;<quote>copyright material is property</quote>&mdash; will be a bit
4708 more clear, and its implications will be revealed as quite different
4709 from the implications that the copyright warriors would have us draw.
4710 </para>
4711 </partintro>
4712
4713 <!-- PAGE BREAK 96 -->
4714 <chapter label="6" id="founders">
4715 <title>CHAPTER SIX: Founders</title>
4716 <indexterm id='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='startofrange'><primary>books</primary><secondary>English copyright law developed for</secondary></indexterm>
4717 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth</primary></indexterm>
4718 <indexterm><primary>Henry V</primary></indexterm>
4719 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William</primary></indexterm>
4720 <indexterm id='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='startofrange'><primary>Romeo and Juliet (Shakespeare)</primary></indexterm>
4721 <para>
4722 <emphasis role='strong'>William Shakespeare</emphasis> wrote
4723 <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet</citetitle> in 1595. The play was first
4724 published in 1597. It was the eleventh major play that Shakespeare had
4725 written. He would continue to write plays through 1613, and the plays
4726 that he wrote have continued to define Anglo-American culture ever
4727 since. So deeply have the works of a sixteenth-century writer seeped
4728 into our culture that we often don't even recognize their source. I
4729 once overheard someone commenting on Kenneth Branagh's adaptation of
4730 Henry V: <quote>I liked it, but Shakespeare is so full of
4731 clichés.</quote>
4732 </para>
4733 <indexterm><primary>Conger</primary></indexterm>
4734 <indexterm id='idxtonsonjacob' class='startofrange'><primary>Tonson, Jacob</primary></indexterm>
4735 <para>
4736 In 1774, almost 180 years after <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet</citetitle> was written, the
4737 <quote>copy-right</quote> for the work was still thought by many to be the exclusive
4738 right of a single London publisher, Jacob Tonson.<footnote><para>
4739 <!-- f1 -->
4740 <indexterm><primary>Jonson, Ben</primary></indexterm>
4741 <indexterm><primary>Dryden, John</primary></indexterm>
4742 Jacob Tonson is typically remembered for his associations with prominent
4743 eighteenth-century literary figures, especially John Dryden, and for his
4744 handsome <quote>definitive editions</quote> of classic works. In addition to <citetitle>Romeo and
4745 Juliet</citetitle>, he published an astonishing array of works that still remain at the
4746 heart of the English canon, including collected works of Shakespeare, Ben
4747 Jonson, John Milton, and John Dryden. See Keith Walker, <quote>Jacob Tonson,
4748 Bookseller,</quote> <citetitle>American Scholar</citetitle> 61:3 (1992): 424&ndash;31.
4749 </para></footnote>
4750 Tonson was the most prominent of a small group of publishers called
4751 the Conger<footnote><para>
4752 <!-- f2 -->
4753 Lyman Ray Patterson, <citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective</citetitle> (Nashville:
4754 Vanderbilt University Press, 1968), 151&ndash;52.
4755 </para></footnote>
4756 who controlled bookselling in England during the eighteenth
4757 century. The Conger claimed a perpetual right to control the <quote>copy</quote> of
4758 books that they had acquired from authors. That perpetual right meant
4759 that no
4760 <!-- PAGE BREAK 97 -->
4761 one else could publish copies of a book to which they held the
4762 copyright. Prices of the classics were thus kept high; competition to
4763 produce better or cheaper editions was eliminated.
4764 </para>
4765 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament' class='startofrange'><primary>British Parliament</primary></indexterm>
4766 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (1710)</primary></indexterm>
4767 <para>
4768 Now, there's something puzzling about the year 1774 to anyone who
4769 knows a little about copyright law. The better-known year in the
4770 history of copyright is 1710, the year that the British Parliament
4771 adopted the first <quote>copyright</quote> act. Known as the Statute of Anne, the
4772 act stated that all published works would get a copyright term of
4773 fourteen years, renewable once if the author was alive, and that all
4774 works already published by 1710 would get a single term of twenty-one
4775 additional years.<footnote><para>
4776 <!-- f3 -->
4777 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
4778 As Siva Vaidhyanathan nicely argues, it is erroneous to call this a
4779 <quote>copyright law.</quote> See Vaidhyanathan, <citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs</citetitle>, 40.
4780 </para></footnote> Under this law, <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet</citetitle> should have been
4781 free in 1731. So why was there any issue about it still being under
4782 Tonson's control in 1774?
4783 </para>
4784 <indexterm startref='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='endofrange'/>
4785 <indexterm startref='idxtonsonjacob' class='endofrange'/>
4786 <indexterm><primary>Licensing Act (1662)</primary></indexterm>
4787 <para>
4788 The reason is that the English hadn't yet agreed on what a <quote>copyright</quote>
4789 was&mdash;indeed, no one had. At the time the English passed the
4790 Statute of Anne, there was no other legislation governing copyrights.
4791 The last law regulating publishers, the Licensing Act of 1662, had
4792 expired in 1695. That law gave publishers a monopoly over publishing,
4793 as a way to make it easier for the Crown to control what was
4794 published. But after it expired, there was no positive law that said
4795 that the publishers, or <quote>Stationers,</quote> had an exclusive right to print
4796 books.
4797 </para>
4798 <para>
4799 There was no <emphasis>positive</emphasis> law, but that didn't mean
4800 that there was no law. The Anglo-American legal tradition looks to
4801 both the words of legislatures and the words of judges to know the
4802 rules that are to govern how people are to behave. We call the words
4803 from legislatures <quote>positive law.</quote> We call the words from judges
4804 <quote>common law.</quote> The common law sets the background against which
4805 legislatures legislate; the legislature, ordinarily, can trump that
4806 background only if it passes a law to displace it. And so the real
4807 question after the licensing statutes had expired was whether the
4808 common law protected a copyright, independent of any positive law.
4809 </para>
4810 <para>
4811 This question was important to the publishers, or <quote>booksellers,</quote> as
4812 they were called, because there was growing competition from foreign
4813 publishers. The Scottish, in particular, were increasingly publishing
4814 and exporting books to England. That competition reduced the profits
4815
4816 <!-- PAGE BREAK 98 -->
4817 of the Conger, which reacted by demanding that Parliament pass a law
4818 to again give them exclusive control over publishing. That demand
4819 ultimately
4820 resulted in the Statute of Anne.
4821 </para>
4822 <para>
4823 The Statute of Anne granted the author or <quote>proprietor</quote> of a book an
4824 exclusive right to print that book. In an important limitation,
4825 however, and to the horror of the booksellers, the law gave the
4826 bookseller that right for a limited term. At the end of that term, the
4827 copyright <quote>expired,</quote> and the work would then be free and could be
4828 published by anyone. Or so the legislature is thought to have
4829 believed.
4830 </para>
4831 <para>
4832 Now, the thing to puzzle about for a moment is this: Why would
4833 Parliament limit the exclusive right? Not why would they limit it to
4834 the particular limit they set, but why would they limit the right
4835 <emphasis>at all?</emphasis>
4836 </para>
4837 <para>
4838 For the booksellers, and the authors whom they represented, had a very
4839 strong claim. Take <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet</citetitle> as an example: That play
4840 was written by Shakespeare. It was his genius that brought it into the
4841 world. He didn't take anybody's property when he created this play
4842 (that's a controversial claim, but never mind), and by his creating
4843 this play, he didn't make it any harder for others to craft a play. So
4844 why is it that the law would ever allow someone else to come along and
4845 take Shakespeare's play without his, or his estate's, permission? What
4846 reason is there to allow someone else to <quote>steal</quote> Shakespeare's work?
4847 </para>
4848 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (1710)</primary></indexterm>
4849 <para>
4850 The answer comes in two parts. We first need to see something special
4851 about the notion of <quote>copyright</quote> that existed at the time of the
4852 Statute of Anne. Second, we have to see something important about
4853 <quote>booksellers.</quote>
4854 </para>
4855 <para>
4856 First, about copyright. In the last three hundred years, we have come
4857 to apply the concept of <quote>copyright</quote> ever more broadly. But in 1710, it
4858 wasn't so much a concept as it was a very particular right. The
4859 copyright was born as a very specific set of restrictions: It forbade
4860 others from reprinting a book. In 1710, the <quote>copy-right</quote> was a right
4861 to use a particular machine to replicate a particular work. It did not
4862 go beyond that very narrow right. It did not control any more
4863 generally how
4864 <!-- PAGE BREAK 99 -->
4865 a work could be <emphasis>used</emphasis>. Today the right includes a
4866 large collection of restrictions on the freedom of others: It grants
4867 the author the exclusive right to copy, the exclusive right to
4868 distribute, the exclusive right to perform, and so on.
4869 </para>
4870 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth</primary></indexterm>
4871 <para>
4872 So, for example, even if the copyright to Shakespeare's works were
4873 perpetual, all that would have meant under the original meaning of the
4874 term was that no one could reprint Shakespeare's work without the
4875 permission of the Shakespeare estate. It would not have controlled
4876 anything, for example, about how the work could be performed, whether
4877 the work could be translated, or whether Kenneth Branagh would be
4878 allowed to make his films. The <quote>copy-right</quote> was only an exclusive
4879 right to print&mdash;no less, of course, but also no more.
4880 </para>
4881 <indexterm><primary>Henry VIII, King of England</primary></indexterm>
4882 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Monopolies (1656)</primary></indexterm>
4883 <para>
4884 Even that limited right was viewed with skepticism by the British.
4885 They had had a long and ugly experience with <quote>exclusive rights,</quote>
4886 especially <quote>exclusive rights</quote> granted by the Crown. The English had
4887 fought a civil war in part about the Crown's practice of handing out
4888 monopolies&mdash;especially monopolies for works that already
4889 existed. King Henry VIII granted a patent to print the Bible and a
4890 monopoly to Darcy to print playing cards. The English Parliament began
4891 to fight back against this power of the Crown. In 1656, it passed the
4892 Statute of Monopolies, limiting monopolies to patents for new
4893 inventions. And by 1710, Parliament was eager to deal with the growing
4894 monopoly in publishing.
4895 </para>
4896 <para>
4897 Thus the <quote>copy-right,</quote> when viewed as a monopoly right, was naturally
4898 viewed as a right that should be limited. (However convincing the
4899 claim that <quote>it's my property, and I should have it forever,</quote> try
4900 sounding convincing when uttering, <quote>It's my monopoly, and I should
4901 have it forever.</quote>) The state would protect the exclusive right, but
4902 only so long as it benefited society. The British saw the harms from
4903 specialinterest favors; they passed a law to stop them.
4904 </para>
4905 <indexterm id='idxbooksellers' class='startofrange'><primary>booksellers, English</primary></indexterm>
4906 <para>
4907 Second, about booksellers. It wasn't just that the copyright was a
4908 monopoly. It was also that it was a monopoly held by the booksellers.
4909 Booksellers sound quaint and harmless to us. They were not viewed
4910 as harmless in seventeenth-century England. Members of the Conger
4911 <!-- PAGE BREAK 100 -->
4912
4913 were increasingly seen as monopolists of the worst
4914 kind&mdash;tools of the Crown's repression, selling the liberty of
4915 England to guarantee themselves a monopoly profit. The attacks against
4916 these monopolists were harsh: Milton described them as <quote>old patentees
4917 and monopolizers in the trade of book-selling</quote>; they were <quote>men who do
4918 not therefore labour in an honest profession to which learning is
4919 indetted.</quote><footnote><para>
4920
4921 <!-- f4 -->
4922 Philip Wittenberg, <citetitle>The Protection and Marketing of Literary
4923 Property</citetitle> (New York: J. Messner, Inc., 1937), 31.
4924 </para></footnote>
4925 </para>
4926 <para>
4927 Many believed the power the booksellers exercised over the spread of
4928 knowledge was harming that spread, just at the time the Enlightenment
4929 was teaching the importance of education and knowledge spread
4930 generally. The idea that knowledge should be free was a hallmark of
4931 the time, and these powerful commercial interests were interfering
4932 with that idea.
4933 </para>
4934 <para>
4935 To balance this power, Parliament decided to increase competition
4936 among booksellers, and the simplest way to do that was to spread the
4937 wealth of valuable books. Parliament therefore limited the term of
4938 copyrights, and thereby guaranteed that valuable books would become
4939 open to any publisher to publish after a limited time. Thus the setting
4940 of the term for existing works to just twenty-one years was a
4941 compromise
4942 to fight the power of the booksellers. The limitation on terms was
4943 an indirect way to assure competition among publishers, and thus the
4944 construction and spread of culture.
4945 </para>
4946 <para>
4947 When 1731 (1710 + 21) came along, however, the booksellers were
4948 getting anxious. They saw the consequences of more competition, and
4949 like every competitor, they didn't like them. At first booksellers simply
4950 ignored the Statute of Anne, continuing to insist on the perpetual right
4951 to control publication. But in 1735 and 1737, they tried to persuade
4952 Parliament to extend their terms. Twenty-one years was not enough,
4953 they said; they needed more time.
4954 </para>
4955 <para>
4956 Parliament rejected their requests. As one pamphleteer put it, in
4957 words that echo today,
4958 </para>
4959 <blockquote>
4960 <para>
4961 I see no Reason for granting a further Term now, which will not
4962 hold as well for granting it again and again, as often as the Old
4963 <!-- PAGE BREAK 101 -->
4964 ones Expire; so that should this Bill pass, it will in Effect be
4965 establishing a perpetual Monopoly, a Thing deservedly odious in the
4966 Eye of the Law; it will be a great Cramp to Trade, a Discouragement to
4967 Learning, no Benefit to the Authors, but a general Tax on the Publick;
4968 and all this only to increase the private Gain of the
4969 Booksellers.<footnote><para>
4970 <!-- f5 -->
4971 A Letter to a Member of Parliament concerning the Bill now depending
4972 in the House of Commons, for making more effectual an Act in the
4973 Eighth Year of the Reign of Queen Anne, entitled, An Act for the
4974 Encouragement of Learning, by Vesting the Copies of Printed Books in
4975 the Authors or Purchasers of such Copies, during the Times therein
4976 mentioned (London, 1735), in Brief Amici Curiae of Tyler T. Ochoa et
4977 al., 8, <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, 537 U.S. 186 (2003) (No. 01-618).
4978 </para></footnote>
4979 </para>
4980 </blockquote>
4981 <para>
4982 Having failed in Parliament, the publishers turned to the courts in a
4983 series of cases. Their argument was simple and direct: The Statute of
4984 Anne gave authors certain protections through positive law, but those
4985 protections were not intended as replacements for the common law.
4986 Instead, they were intended simply to supplement the common law.
4987 Under common law, it was already wrong to take another person's
4988 creative <quote>property</quote> and use it without his permission. The Statute of
4989 Anne, the booksellers argued, didn't change that. Therefore, just
4990 because the protections of the Statute of Anne expired, that didn't
4991 mean the protections of the common law expired: Under the common law
4992 they had the right to ban the publication of a book, even if its
4993 Statute of Anne copyright had expired. This, they argued, was the only
4994 way to protect authors.
4995 </para>
4996 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond</primary></indexterm>
4997 <para>
4998 This was a clever argument, and one that had the support of some of
4999 the leading jurists of the day. It also displayed extraordinary
5000 chutzpah. Until then, as law professor Raymond Patterson has put it,
5001 <quote>The publishers &hellip; had as much concern for authors as a cattle
5002 rancher has for cattle.</quote><footnote><para>
5003 <!-- f6 -->
5004 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond</primary></indexterm>
5005 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
5006 Lyman Ray Patterson, <quote>Free Speech, Copyright, and Fair Use,</quote> <citetitle>Vanderbilt
5007 Law Review</citetitle> 40 (1987): 28. For a wonderfully compelling account, see
5008 Vaidhyanathan, 37&ndash;48.
5009 </para></footnote>
5010 The bookseller didn't care squat for the rights of the author. His
5011 concern was the monopoly profit that the author's work gave.
5012 </para>
5013 <para>
5014 The booksellers' argument was not accepted without a fight.
5015 The hero of this fight was a Scottish bookseller named Alexander
5016 Donaldson.<footnote><para>
5017 <!-- f7 -->
5018 For a compelling account, see David Saunders, <citetitle>Authorship and Copyright</citetitle>
5019 (London: Routledge, 1992), 62&ndash;69.
5020 </para></footnote>
5021 </para>
5022 <indexterm><primary>Boswell, James</primary></indexterm>
5023 <indexterm><primary>Erskine, Andrew</primary></indexterm>
5024 <para>
5025 Donaldson was an outsider to the London Conger. He began his
5026 career in Edinburgh in 1750. The focus of his business was inexpensive
5027 reprints <quote>of standard works whose copyright term had expired,</quote> at least
5028 under the Statute of Anne.<footnote><para>
5029 <!-- f8 -->
5030 Mark Rose, <citetitle>Authors and Owners</citetitle> (Cambridge: Harvard University Press,
5031 1993), 92.
5032 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark</primary></indexterm>
5033 </para></footnote>
5034 Donaldson's publishing house prospered
5035 <!-- PAGE BREAK 102 -->
5036 and became <quote>something of a center for literary Scotsmen.</quote> <quote>[A]mong
5037 them,</quote> Professor Mark Rose writes, was <quote>the young James Boswell
5038 who, together with his friend Andrew Erskine, published an anthology
5039 of contemporary Scottish poems with Donaldson.</quote><footnote><para>
5040 <!-- f9 -->
5041 Ibid., 93.
5042 </para></footnote>
5043 </para>
5044 <para>
5045 When the London booksellers tried to shut down Donaldson's shop in
5046 Scotland, he responded by moving his shop to London, where he sold
5047 inexpensive editions <quote>of the most popular English books, in defiance
5048 of the supposed common law right of Literary
5049 Property.</quote><footnote><para>
5050 <!-- f10 -->
5051 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond</primary></indexterm>
5052 Lyman Ray Patterson, <citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective</citetitle>, 167 (quoting
5053 Borwell).
5054 </para></footnote>
5055 His books undercut the Conger prices by 30 to 50 percent, and he
5056 rested his right to compete upon the ground that, under the Statute of
5057 Anne, the works he was selling had passed out of protection.
5058 </para>
5059 <para>
5060 The London booksellers quickly brought suit to block <quote>piracy</quote> like
5061 Donaldson's. A number of actions were successful against the <quote>pirates,</quote>
5062 the most important early victory being <citetitle>Millar</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Taylor</citetitle>.
5063 </para>
5064 <indexterm><primary>Seasons, The (Thomson)</primary></indexterm>
5065 <indexterm><primary>Taylor, Robert</primary></indexterm>
5066 <para>
5067 Millar was a bookseller who in 1729 had purchased the rights to James
5068 Thomson's poem <quote>The Seasons.</quote> Millar complied with the requirements of
5069 the Statute of Anne, and therefore received the full protection of the
5070 statute. After the term of copyright ended, Robert Taylor began
5071 printing a competing volume. Millar sued, claiming a perpetual common
5072 law right, the Statute of Anne notwithstanding.<footnote><para>
5073 <!-- f11 -->
5074 Howard B. Abrams, <quote>The Historic Foundation of American Copyright Law:
5075 Exploding the Myth of Common Law Copyright,</quote> <citetitle>Wayne Law Review</citetitle> 29
5076 (1983): 1152.
5077 </para></footnote>
5078 </para>
5079 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='startofrange'><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord</primary></indexterm>
5080 <para>
5081 Astonishingly to modern lawyers, one of the greatest judges in English
5082 history, Lord Mansfield, agreed with the booksellers. Whatever
5083 protection the Statute of Anne gave booksellers, it did not, he held,
5084 extinguish any common law right. The question was whether the common
5085 law would protect the author against subsequent <quote>pirates.</quote>
5086 Mansfield's answer was yes: The common law would bar Taylor from
5087 reprinting Thomson's poem without Millar's permission. That common law
5088 rule thus effectively gave the booksellers a perpetual right to
5089 control the publication of any book assigned to them.
5090 </para>
5091 <para>
5092 Considered as a matter of abstract justice&mdash;reasoning as if
5093 justice were just a matter of logical deduction from first
5094 principles&mdash;Mansfield's conclusion might make some sense. But
5095 what it ignored was the larger issue that Parliament had struggled
5096 with in 1710: How best to limit
5097 <!-- PAGE BREAK 103 -->
5098 the monopoly power of publishers? Parliament's strategy was to offer a
5099 term for existing works that was long enough to buy peace in 1710, but
5100 short enough to assure that culture would pass into competition within
5101 a reasonable period of time. Within twenty-one years, Parliament
5102 believed, Britain would mature from the controlled culture that the
5103 Crown coveted to the free culture that we inherited.
5104 </para>
5105 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='endofrange'/>
5106 <para>
5107 The fight to defend the limits of the Statute of Anne was not to end
5108 there, however, and it is here that Donaldson enters the mix.
5109 </para>
5110 <indexterm><primary>Beckett, Thomas</primary></indexterm>
5111 <para>
5112 Millar died soon after his victory, so his case was not appealed. His
5113 estate sold Thomson's poems to a syndicate of printers that included
5114 Thomas Beckett.<footnote><para>
5115 <!-- f12 -->
5116 Ibid., 1156.
5117 </para></footnote>
5118 Donaldson then released an unauthorized edition
5119 of Thomson's works. Beckett, on the strength of the decision in <citetitle>Millar</citetitle>,
5120 got an injunction against Donaldson. Donaldson appealed the case to
5121 the House of Lords, which functioned much like our own Supreme
5122 Court. In February of 1774, that body had the chance to interpret the
5123 meaning of Parliament's limits from sixty years before.
5124 </para>
5125 <para>
5126 As few legal cases ever do, <citetitle>Donaldson</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Beckett</citetitle> drew an
5127 enormous amount of attention throughout Britain. Donaldson's lawyers
5128 argued that whatever rights may have existed under the common law, the
5129 Statute of Anne terminated those rights. After passage of the Statute
5130 of Anne, the only legal protection for an exclusive right to control
5131 publication came from that statute. Thus, they argued, after the term
5132 specified in the Statute of Anne expired, works that had been
5133 protected by the statute were no longer protected.
5134 </para>
5135 <para>
5136 The House of Lords was an odd institution. Legal questions were
5137 presented to the House and voted upon first by the <quote>law lords,</quote>
5138 members of special legal distinction who functioned much like the
5139 Justices in our Supreme Court. Then, after the law lords voted, the
5140 House of Lords generally voted.
5141 </para>
5142 <para>
5143 The reports about the law lords' votes are mixed. On some counts,
5144 it looks as if perpetual copyright prevailed. But there is no ambiguity
5145 <!-- PAGE BREAK 104 -->
5146 about how the House of Lords voted as whole. By a two-to-one majority
5147 (22 to 11) they voted to reject the idea of perpetual copyrights.
5148 Whatever one's understanding of the common law, now a copyright was
5149 fixed for a limited time, after which the work protected by copyright
5150 passed into the public domain.
5151 </para>
5152 <para>
5153 <quote>The public domain.</quote> Before the case of <citetitle>Donaldson</citetitle>
5154 v. <citetitle>Beckett</citetitle>, there was no clear idea of a public domain in
5155 England. Before 1774, there was a strong argument that common law
5156 copyrights were perpetual. After 1774, the public domain was
5157 born. For the first time in Anglo-American history, the legal control
5158 over creative works expired, and the greatest works in English
5159 history&mdash;including those of Shakespeare, Bacon, Milton, Johnson,
5160 and Bunyan&mdash;were free of legal restraint.
5161 <indexterm><primary>Bacon, Francis</primary></indexterm>
5162 <indexterm><primary>Bunyan, John</primary></indexterm>
5163 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Samuel</primary></indexterm>
5164 <indexterm><primary>Milton, John</primary></indexterm>
5165 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William</primary></indexterm>
5166 </para>
5167 <para>
5168 It is hard for us to imagine, but this decision by the House of Lords
5169 fueled an extraordinarily popular and political reaction. In Scotland,
5170 where most of the <quote>pirate publishers</quote> did their work, people
5171 celebrated the decision in the streets. As the <citetitle>Edinburgh Advertiser</citetitle>
5172 reported, <quote>No private cause has so much engrossed the attention of the
5173 public, and none has been tried before the House of Lords in the
5174 decision of which so many individuals were interested.</quote> <quote>Great
5175 rejoicing in Edinburgh upon victory over literary property: bonfires
5176 and illuminations.</quote><footnote><para>
5177 <!-- f13 -->
5178 Rose, 97.
5179 </para></footnote>
5180 </para>
5181 <para>
5182 In London, however, at least among publishers, the reaction was
5183 equally strong in the opposite direction. The <citetitle>Morning Chronicle</citetitle>
5184 reported:
5185 </para>
5186 <blockquote>
5187 <para>
5188 By the above decision &hellip; near 200,000 pounds worth of what was
5189 honestly purchased at public sale, and which was yesterday thought
5190 property is now reduced to nothing. The Booksellers of London and
5191 Westminster, many of whom sold estates and houses to purchase
5192 Copy-right, are in a manner ruined, and those who after many years
5193 industry thought they had acquired a competency to provide for their
5194 families now find themselves without a shilling to devise to their
5195 successors.<footnote><para>
5196 <!-- f14 -->
5197 Ibid.
5198 </para></footnote>
5199 </para>
5200 </blockquote>
5201 <para>
5202 <!-- PAGE BREAK 105 -->
5203 <quote>Ruined</quote> is a bit of an exaggeration. But it is not an exaggeration to
5204 say that the change was profound. The decision of the House of Lords
5205 meant that the booksellers could no longer control how culture in
5206 England would grow and develop. Culture in England was thereafter
5207 <emphasis>free</emphasis>. Not in the sense that copyrights would not
5208 be respected, for of course, for a limited time after a work was
5209 published, the bookseller had an exclusive right to control the
5210 publication of that book. And not in the sense that books could be
5211 stolen, for even after a copyright expired, you still had to buy the
5212 book from someone. But <emphasis>free</emphasis> in the sense that the
5213 culture and its growth would no longer be controlled by a small group
5214 of publishers. As every free market does, this free market of free
5215 culture would grow as the consumers and producers chose. English
5216 culture would develop as the many English readers chose to let it
5217 develop&mdash; chose in the books they bought and wrote; chose in the
5218 memes they repeated and endorsed. Chose in a <emphasis>competitive
5219 context</emphasis>, not a context in which the choices about what
5220 culture is available to people and how they get access to it are made
5221 by the few despite the wishes of the many.
5222 </para>
5223 <indexterm startref='idxbooksellers' class='endofrange'/>
5224 <para>
5225 At least, this was the rule in a world where the Parliament is
5226 antimonopoly, resistant to the protectionist pleas of publishers. In a
5227 world where the Parliament is more pliant, free culture would be less
5228 protected.
5229 </para>
5230 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament' class='endofrange'/>
5231 <indexterm startref='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='endofrange'/>
5232 <!-- PAGE BREAK 106 -->
5233 </chapter>
5234 <chapter label="7" id="recorders">
5235 <title>CHAPTER SEVEN: Recorders</title>
5236 <para>
5237 <emphasis role='strong'>Jon Else</emphasis> is a filmmaker. He is best
5238 known for his documentaries and has been very successful in spreading
5239 his art. He is also a teacher, and as a teacher myself, I envy the
5240 loyalty and admiration that his students feel for him. (I met, by
5241 accident, two of his students at a dinner party. He was their god.)
5242 </para>
5243 <para>
5244 Else worked on a documentary that I was involved in. At a break,
5245 he told me a story about the freedom to create with film in America
5246 today.
5247 </para>
5248 <para>
5249 In 1990, Else was working on a documentary about Wagner's Ring
5250 Cycle. The focus was stagehands at the San Francisco Opera.
5251 Stagehands are a particularly funny and colorful element of an opera.
5252 During a show, they hang out below the stage in the grips' lounge and
5253 in the lighting loft. They make a perfect contrast to the art on the
5254 stage.
5255 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera</primary></indexterm>
5256 </para>
5257 <para>
5258 During one of the performances, Else was shooting some stagehands
5259 playing checkers. In one corner of the room was a television set.
5260 Playing on the television set, while the stagehands played checkers
5261 and the opera company played Wagner, was <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle>. As Else judged
5262 <!-- PAGE BREAK 107 -->
5263 it, this touch of cartoon helped capture the flavor of what was special
5264 about the scene.
5265 </para>
5266 <para>
5267 Years later, when he finally got funding to complete the film, Else
5268 attempted to clear the rights for those few seconds of <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle>.
5269 For of course, those few seconds are copyrighted; and of course, to use
5270 copyrighted material you need the permission of the copyright owner,
5271 unless <quote>fair use</quote> or some other privilege applies.
5272 </para>
5273 <indexterm><primary>Gracie Films</primary></indexterm>
5274 <para>
5275 Else called <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle> creator Matt Groening's office to get permission.
5276 Groening approved the shot. The shot was a four-and-a-halfsecond image
5277 on a tiny television set in the corner of the room. How could it hurt?
5278 Groening was happy to have it in the film, but he told Else to contact
5279 Gracie Films, the company that produces the program.
5280 </para>
5281 <indexterm><primary>Gracie Films</primary></indexterm>
5282 <para>
5283 Gracie Films was okay with it, too, but they, like Groening, wanted
5284 to be careful. So they told Else to contact Fox, Gracie's parent company.
5285 Else called Fox and told them about the clip in the corner of the one
5286 room shot of the film. Matt Groening had already given permission,
5287 Else said. He was just confirming the permission with Fox.
5288 </para>
5289 <para>
5290 Then, as Else told me, <quote>two things happened. First we discovered
5291 &hellip; that Matt Groening doesn't own his own creation&mdash;or at
5292 least that someone [at Fox] believes he doesn't own his own creation.</quote>
5293 And second, Fox <quote>wanted ten thousand dollars as a licensing fee for us
5294 to use this four-point-five seconds of &hellip; entirely unsolicited
5295 <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle> which was in the corner of the shot.</quote>
5296 </para>
5297 <indexterm><primary>Herrera, Rebecca</primary></indexterm>
5298 <para>
5299 Else was certain there was a mistake. He worked his way up to someone
5300 he thought was a vice president for licensing, Rebecca Herrera. He
5301 explained to her, <quote>There must be some mistake here. &hellip; We're
5302 asking for your educational rate on this.</quote> That was the educational
5303 rate, Herrera told Else. A day or so later, Else called again to
5304 confirm what he had been told.
5305 </para>
5306 <para>
5307 <quote>I wanted to make sure I had my facts straight,</quote> he told me. <quote>Yes, you
5308 have your facts straight,</quote> she said. It would cost $10,000 to use the
5309 clip of <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle> in the corner of a shot in a documentary film
5310 about
5311
5312 <!-- PAGE BREAK 108 -->
5313 Wagner's Ring Cycle. And then, astonishingly, Herrera told Else, <quote>And
5314 if you quote me, I'll turn you over to our attorneys.</quote> As an assistant
5315 to Herrera told Else later on, <quote>They don't give a shit. They just want
5316 the money.</quote>
5317 </para>
5318 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera</primary></indexterm>
5319 <indexterm><primary>Day After Trinity, The</primary></indexterm>
5320 <para>
5321 Else didn't have the money to buy the right to replay what was playing
5322 on the television backstage at the San Francisco Opera. To reproduce
5323 this reality was beyond the documentary filmmaker's budget. At the
5324 very last minute before the film was to be released, Else digitally
5325 replaced the shot with a clip from another film that he had worked on,
5326 <citetitle>The Day After Trinity</citetitle>, from ten years before.
5327 </para>
5328 <para>
5329 There's no doubt that someone, whether Matt Groening or Fox, owns the
5330 copyright to <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle>. That copyright is their property. To use
5331 that copyrighted material thus sometimes requires the permission of
5332 the copyright owner. If the use that Else wanted to make of the
5333 <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle> copyright were one of the uses restricted by the law, then he
5334 would need to get the permission of the copyright owner before he
5335 could use the work in that way. And in a free market, it is the owner
5336 of the copyright who gets to set the price for any use that the law
5337 says the owner gets to control.
5338 </para>
5339 <para>
5340 For example, <quote>public performance</quote> is a use of <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle> that the
5341 copyright owner gets to control. If you take a selection of favorite
5342 episodes, rent a movie theater, and charge for tickets to come see <quote>My
5343 Favorite <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle>,</quote> then you need to get permission from the copyright
5344 owner. And the copyright owner (rightly, in my view) can charge
5345 whatever she wants&mdash;$10 or $1,000,000. That's her right, as set
5346 by the law.
5347 </para>
5348 <para>
5349 But when lawyers hear this story about Jon Else and Fox, their first
5350 thought is <quote>fair use.</quote><footnote><para>
5351 <!-- f1 -->
5352 For an excellent argument that such use is <quote>fair use,</quote> but that
5353 lawyers don't permit recognition that it is <quote>fair use,</quote> see Richard
5354 A. Posner with William F. Patry, <quote>Fair Use and Statutory Reform in the
5355 Wake of <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle></quote> (draft on file with author), University of Chicago
5356 Law School, 5 August 2003.
5357 </para></footnote>
5358 Else's use of just 4.5 seconds of an indirect shot of a <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle>
5359 episode is clearly a fair use of <citetitle>The Simpsons</citetitle>&mdash;and fair use does
5360 not require the permission of anyone.
5361 </para>
5362 <para>
5363 <!-- PAGE BREAK 109 -->
5364 So I asked Else why he didn't just rely upon <quote>fair use.</quote> Here's his reply:
5365 </para>
5366 <blockquote>
5367 <para>
5368 The <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle> fiasco was for me a great lesson in the gulf between what
5369 lawyers find irrelevant in some abstract sense, and what is crushingly
5370 relevant in practice to those of us actually trying to make and
5371 broadcast documentaries. I never had any doubt that it was <quote>clearly
5372 fair use</quote> in an absolute legal sense. But I couldn't rely on the
5373 concept in any concrete way. Here's why:
5374 </para>
5375 <orderedlist numeration="arabic">
5376 <listitem><para>
5377 <!-- 1. -->
5378 Before our films can be broadcast, the network requires that we buy
5379 Errors and Omissions insurance. The carriers require a detailed
5380 <quote>visual cue sheet</quote> listing the source and licensing status of each
5381 shot in the film. They take a dim view of <quote>fair use,</quote> and a claim of
5382 <quote>fair use</quote> can grind the application process to a halt.
5383 </para></listitem>
5384 <listitem>
5385 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Star Wars</citetitle></primary></indexterm>
5386 <indexterm><primary>Lucas, George</primary></indexterm>
5387 <para>
5388 <!-- 2. -->
5389 I probably never should have asked Matt Groening in the first
5390 place. But I knew (at least from folklore) that Fox had a history of
5391 tracking down and stopping unlicensed <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle> usage, just as George
5392 Lucas had a very high profile litigating <citetitle>Star Wars</citetitle> usage. So I decided
5393 to play by the book, thinking that we would be granted free or cheap
5394 license to four seconds of <citetitle>Simpsons</citetitle>. As a documentary producer working
5395 to exhaustion on a shoestring, the last thing I wanted was to risk
5396 legal trouble, even nuisance legal trouble, and even to defend a
5397 principle.
5398 </para></listitem>
5399 <listitem><para>
5400 <!-- 3. -->
5401 I did, in fact, speak with one of your colleagues at Stanford Law
5402 School &hellip; who confirmed that it was fair use. He also confirmed
5403 that Fox would <quote>depose and litigate you to within an inch of your
5404 life,</quote> regardless of the merits of my claim. He made clear that it
5405 would boil down to who had the bigger legal department and the deeper
5406 pockets, me or them.
5407 <!-- PAGE BREAK 110 -->
5408 </para></listitem>
5409 <listitem><para>
5410 <!-- 4. -->
5411 The question of fair use usually comes up at the end of the
5412 project, when we are up against a release deadline and out of
5413 money.
5414 </para></listitem>
5415 </orderedlist>
5416 </blockquote>
5417 <para>
5418 In theory, fair use means you need no permission. The theory therefore
5419 supports free culture and insulates against a permission culture. But
5420 in practice, fair use functions very differently. The fuzzy lines of
5421 the law, tied to the extraordinary liability if lines are crossed,
5422 means that the effective fair use for many types of creators is
5423 slight. The law has the right aim; practice has defeated the aim.
5424 </para>
5425 <para>
5426 This practice shows just how far the law has come from its
5427 eighteenth-century roots. The law was born as a shield to protect
5428 publishers' profits against the unfair competition of a pirate. It has
5429 matured into a sword that interferes with any use, transformative or
5430 not.
5431 </para>
5432 <!-- PAGE BREAK 111 -->
5433 </chapter>
5434 <chapter label="8" id="transformers">
5435 <title>CHAPTER EIGHT: Transformers</title>
5436 <indexterm><primary>Allen, Paul</primary></indexterm>
5437 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex1' class='startofrange'><primary>Alben, Alex</primary></indexterm>
5438 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary></indexterm>
5439 <para>
5440 <emphasis role='strong'>In 1993</emphasis>, Alex Alben was a lawyer
5441 working at Starwave, Inc. Starwave was an innovative company founded
5442 by Microsoft cofounder Paul Allen to develop digital
5443 entertainment. Long before the Internet became popular, Starwave began
5444 investing in new technology for delivering entertainment in
5445 anticipation of the power of networks.
5446 </para>
5447 <indexterm id='idxartistsretrospective' class='startofrange'><primary>artists</primary><secondary>retrospective compilations on</secondary></indexterm>
5448 <indexterm id='idxcdroms' class='startofrange'><primary>CD-ROMs, film clips used in</primary></indexterm>
5449 <para>
5450 Alben had a special interest in new technology. He was intrigued by
5451 the emerging market for CD-ROM technology&mdash;not to distribute
5452 film, but to do things with film that otherwise would be very
5453 difficult. In 1993, he launched an initiative to develop a product to
5454 build retrospectives on the work of particular actors. The first actor
5455 chosen was Clint Eastwood. The idea was to showcase all of the work of
5456 Eastwood, with clips from his films and interviews with figures
5457 important to his career.
5458 </para>
5459 <para>
5460 At that time, Eastwood had made more than fifty films, as an actor and
5461 as a director. Alben began with a series of interviews with Eastwood,
5462 asking him about his career. Because Starwave produced those
5463 interviews, it was free to include them on the CD.
5464 </para>
5465 <para>
5466 <!-- PAGE BREAK 112 -->
5467 That alone would not have made a very interesting product, so
5468 Starwave wanted to add content from the movies in Eastwood's career:
5469 posters, scripts, and other material relating to the films Eastwood
5470 made. Most of his career was spent at Warner Brothers, and so it was
5471 relatively easy to get permission for that content.
5472 </para>
5473 <para>
5474 Then Alben and his team decided to include actual film clips. <quote>Our
5475 goal was that we were going to have a clip from every one of
5476 Eastwood's films,</quote> Alben told me. It was here that the problem
5477 arose. <quote>No one had ever really done this before,</quote> Alben explained. <quote>No
5478 one had ever tried to do this in the context of an artistic look at an
5479 actor's career.</quote>
5480 </para>
5481 <para>
5482 Alben brought the idea to Michael Slade, the CEO of Starwave.
5483 Slade asked, <quote>Well, what will it take?</quote>
5484 </para>
5485 <para>
5486 Alben replied, <quote>Well, we're going to have to clear rights from
5487 everyone who appears in these films, and the music and everything
5488 else that we want to use in these film clips.</quote> Slade said, <quote>Great! Go
5489 for it.</quote><footnote>
5490 <para>
5491 <!-- f1 -->
5492 Technically, the rights that Alben had to clear were mainly those of
5493 publicity&mdash;rights an artist has to control the commercial
5494 exploitation of his image. But these rights, too, burden <quote>Rip, Mix,
5495 Burn</quote> creativity, as this chapter evinces.
5496 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>publicity rights on images of</secondary></indexterm>
5497 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex</primary></indexterm>
5498 </para></footnote>
5499 </para>
5500 <para>
5501 The problem was that neither Alben nor Slade had any idea what
5502 clearing those rights would mean. Every actor in each of the films
5503 could have a claim to royalties for the reuse of that film. But CD-
5504 ROMs had not been specified in the contracts for the actors, so there
5505 was no clear way to know just what Starwave was to do.
5506 </para>
5507 <para>
5508 I asked Alben how he dealt with the problem. With an obvious
5509 pride in his resourcefulness that obscured the obvious bizarreness of his
5510 tale, Alben recounted just what they did:
5511 </para>
5512 <blockquote>
5513 <para>
5514 So we very mechanically went about looking up the film clips. We made
5515 some artistic decisions about what film clips to include&mdash;of
5516 course we were going to use the <quote>Make my day</quote> clip from <citetitle>Dirty
5517 Harry</citetitle>. But you then need to get the guy on the ground who's wiggling
5518 under the gun and you need to get his permission. And then you have
5519 to decide what you are going to pay him.
5520 </para>
5521 <para>
5522 <!-- PAGE BREAK 113 -->
5523 We decided that it would be fair if we offered them the dayplayer rate
5524 for the right to reuse that performance. We're talking about a clip of
5525 less than a minute, but to reuse that performance in the CD-ROM the
5526 rate at the time was about $600. So we had to identify the
5527 people&mdash;some of them were hard to identify because in Eastwood
5528 movies you can't tell who's the guy crashing through the
5529 glass&mdash;is it the actor or is it the stuntman? And then we just,
5530 we put together a team, my assistant and some others, and we just
5531 started calling people.
5532 </para>
5533 </blockquote>
5534 <indexterm><primary>Sutherland, Donald</primary></indexterm>
5535 <para>
5536 Some actors were glad to help&mdash;Donald Sutherland, for example,
5537 followed up himself to be sure that the rights had been cleared.
5538 Others were dumbfounded at their good fortune. Alben would ask,
5539 <quote>Hey, can I pay you $600 or maybe if you were in two films, you
5540 know, $1,200?</quote> And they would say, <quote>Are you for real? Hey, I'd love
5541 to get $1,200.</quote> And some of course were a bit difficult (estranged
5542 ex-wives, in particular). But eventually, Alben and his team had
5543 cleared the rights to this retrospective CD-ROM on Clint Eastwood's
5544 career.
5545 </para>
5546 <para>
5547 It was one <emphasis>year</emphasis> later&mdash;<quote>and even then we
5548 weren't sure whether we were totally in the clear.</quote>
5549 </para>
5550 <para>
5551 Alben is proud of his work. The project was the first of its kind and
5552 the only time he knew of that a team had undertaken such a massive
5553 project for the purpose of releasing a retrospective.
5554 </para>
5555 <blockquote>
5556 <para>
5557 Everyone thought it would be too hard. Everyone just threw up their
5558 hands and said, <quote>Oh, my gosh, a film, it's so many copyrights, there's
5559 the music, there's the screenplay, there's the director, there's the
5560 actors.</quote> But we just broke it down. We just put it into its
5561 constituent parts and said, <quote>Okay, there's this many actors, this many
5562 directors, &hellip; this many musicians,</quote> and we just went at it very
5563 systematically and cleared the rights.
5564 </para>
5565 </blockquote>
5566 <para>
5567
5568 <!-- PAGE BREAK 114 -->
5569 And no doubt, the product itself was exceptionally good. Eastwood
5570 loved it, and it sold very well.
5571 </para>
5572 <indexterm><primary>Drucker, Peter</primary></indexterm>
5573 <para>
5574 But I pressed Alben about how weird it seems that it would have to
5575 take a year's work simply to clear rights. No doubt Alben had done
5576 this efficiently, but as Peter Drucker has famously quipped, <quote>There is
5577 nothing so useless as doing efficiently that which should not be done
5578 at all.</quote><footnote><para>
5579 <!-- f2 -->
5580 U.S. Department of Commerce Office of Acquisition Management, <citetitle>Seven
5581 Steps to Performance-Based Services Acquisition</citetitle>, available at
5582 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #22</ulink>.
5583 </para></footnote>
5584 Did it make sense, I asked Alben, that this is the way a new work
5585 has to be made?
5586 </para>
5587 <para>
5588 For, as he acknowledged, <quote>very few &hellip; have the time and resources,
5589 and the will to do this,</quote> and thus, very few such works would ever be
5590 made. Does it make sense, I asked him, from the standpoint of what
5591 anybody really thought they were ever giving rights for originally, that
5592 you would have to go clear rights for these kinds of clips?
5593 </para>
5594 <blockquote>
5595 <para>
5596 I don't think so. When an actor renders a performance in a movie,
5597 he or she gets paid very well. &hellip; And then when 30 seconds of
5598 that performance is used in a new product that is a retrospective
5599 of somebody's career, I don't think that that person &hellip; should be
5600 compensated for that.
5601 </para>
5602 </blockquote>
5603 <para>
5604 Or at least, is this <emphasis>how</emphasis> the artist should be
5605 compensated? Would it make sense, I asked, for there to be some kind
5606 of statutory license that someone could pay and be free to make
5607 derivative use of clips like this? Did it really make sense that a
5608 follow-on creator would have to track down every artist, actor,
5609 director, musician, and get explicit permission from each? Wouldn't a
5610 lot more be created if the legal part of the creative process could be
5611 made to be more clean?
5612 </para>
5613 <blockquote>
5614 <para>
5615 Absolutely. I think that if there were some fair-licensing
5616 mechanism&mdash;where you weren't subject to hold-ups and you weren't
5617 subject to estranged former spouses&mdash;you'd see a lot more of this
5618 work, because it wouldn't be so daunting to try to put together a
5619 <!-- PAGE BREAK 115 -->
5620 retrospective of someone's career and meaningfully illustrate it with
5621 lots of media from that person's career. You'd build in a cost as the
5622 producer of one of these things. You'd build in a cost of paying X
5623 dollars to the talent that performed. But it would be a known
5624 cost. That's the thing that trips everybody up and makes this kind of
5625 product hard to get off the ground. If you knew I have a hundred
5626 minutes of film in this product and it's going to cost me X, then you
5627 build your budget around it, and you can get investments and
5628 everything else that you need to produce it. But if you say, <quote>Oh, I
5629 want a hundred minutes of something and I have no idea what it's going
5630 to cost me, and a certain number of people are going to hold me up for
5631 money,</quote> then it becomes difficult to put one of these things together.
5632 </para>
5633 </blockquote>
5634 <para>
5635 Alben worked for a big company. His company was backed by some of the
5636 richest investors in the world. He therefore had authority and access
5637 that the average Web designer would not have. So if it took him a
5638 year, how long would it take someone else? And how much creativity is
5639 never made just because the costs of clearing the rights are so high?
5640 </para>
5641 <indexterm startref='idxcdroms' class='endofrange'/>
5642 <indexterm startref='idxartistsretrospective' class='endofrange'/>
5643 <para>
5644 These costs are the burdens of a kind of regulation. Put on a
5645 Republican hat for a moment, and get angry for a bit. The government
5646 defines the scope of these rights, and the scope defined determines
5647 how much it's going to cost to negotiate them. (Remember the idea that
5648 land runs to the heavens, and imagine the pilot purchasing flythrough
5649 rights as he negotiates to fly from Los Angeles to San Francisco.)
5650 These rights might well have once made sense; but as circumstances
5651 change, they make no sense at all. Or at least, a well-trained,
5652 regulationminimizing Republican should look at the rights and ask,
5653 <quote>Does this still make sense?</quote>
5654 </para>
5655 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex1' class='endofrange'/>
5656 <para>
5657 I've seen the flash of recognition when people get this point, but only
5658 a few times. The first was at a conference of federal judges in California.
5659 The judges were gathered to discuss the emerging topic of cyber-law. I
5660 was asked to be on the panel. Harvey Saferstein, a well-respected lawyer
5661
5662 <!-- PAGE BREAK 116 -->
5663 from an L.A. firm, introduced the panel with a video that he and a
5664 friend, Robert Fairbank, had produced.
5665 </para>
5666 <para>
5667 The video was a brilliant collage of film from every period in the
5668 twentieth century, all framed around the idea of a <citetitle>60 Minutes</citetitle> episode.
5669 The execution was perfect, down to the sixty-minute stopwatch. The
5670 judges loved every minute of it.
5671 </para>
5672 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, David</primary></indexterm>
5673 <para>
5674 When the lights came up, I looked over to my copanelist, David
5675 Nimmer, perhaps the leading copyright scholar and practitioner in the
5676 nation. He had an astonished look on his face, as he peered across the
5677 room of over 250 well-entertained judges. Taking an ominous tone, he
5678 began his talk with a question: <quote>Do you know how many federal laws
5679 were just violated in this room?</quote>
5680 </para>
5681 <indexterm><primary>Boies, David</primary></indexterm>
5682 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex</primary></indexterm>
5683 <para>
5684 For of course, the two brilliantly talented creators who made this
5685 film hadn't done what Alben did. They hadn't spent a year clearing the
5686 rights to these clips; technically, what they had done violated the
5687 law. Of course, it wasn't as if they or anyone were going to be
5688 prosecuted for this violation (the presence of 250 judges and a gaggle
5689 of federal marshals notwithstanding). But Nimmer was making an
5690 important point: A year before anyone would have heard of the word
5691 Napster, and two years before another member of our panel, David
5692 Boies, would defend Napster before the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals,
5693 Nimmer was trying to get the judges to see that the law would not be
5694 friendly to the capacities that this technology would
5695 enable. Technology means you can now do amazing things easily; but you
5696 couldn't easily do them legally.
5697 </para>
5698 <para>
5699 We live in a <quote>cut and paste</quote> culture enabled by technology. Anyone
5700 building a presentation knows the extraordinary freedom that the cut
5701 and paste architecture of the Internet created&mdash;in a second you can
5702 find just about any image you want; in another second, you can have it
5703 planted in your presentation.
5704 </para>
5705 <indexterm><primary>Camp Chaos</primary></indexterm>
5706 <para>
5707 But presentations are just a tiny beginning. Using the Internet and
5708 <!-- PAGE BREAK 117 -->
5709 its archives, musicians are able to string together mixes of sound
5710 never before imagined; filmmakers are able to build movies out of
5711 clips on computers around the world. An extraordinary site in Sweden
5712 takes images of politicians and blends them with music to create
5713 biting political commentary. A site called Camp Chaos has produced
5714 some of the most biting criticism of the record industry that there is
5715 through the mixing of Flash! and music.
5716 </para>
5717 <para>
5718 All of these creations are technically illegal. Even if the creators
5719 wanted to be <quote>legal,</quote> the cost of complying with the law is impossibly
5720 high. Therefore, for the law-abiding sorts, a wealth of creativity is
5721 never made. And for that part that is made, if it doesn't follow the
5722 clearance rules, it doesn't get released.
5723 </para>
5724 <para>
5725 To some, these stories suggest a solution: Let's alter the mix of
5726 rights so that people are free to build upon our culture. Free to add
5727 or mix as they see fit. We could even make this change without
5728 necessarily requiring that the <quote>free</quote> use be free as in <quote>free beer.</quote>
5729 Instead, the system could simply make it easy for follow-on creators
5730 to compensate artists without requiring an army of lawyers to come
5731 along: a rule, for example, that says <quote>the royalty owed the copyright
5732 owner of an unregistered work for the derivative reuse of his work
5733 will be a flat 1 percent of net revenues, to be held in escrow for the
5734 copyright owner.</quote> Under this rule, the copyright owner could benefit
5735 from some royalty, but he would not have the benefit of a full
5736 property right (meaning the right to name his own price) unless he
5737 registers the work.
5738 </para>
5739 <para>
5740 Who could possibly object to this? And what reason would there be
5741 for objecting? We're talking about work that is not now being made;
5742 which if made, under this plan, would produce new income for artists.
5743 What reason would anyone have to oppose it?
5744 </para>
5745 <para>
5746 <emphasis role='strong'>In February 2003</emphasis>, DreamWorks
5747 studios announced an agreement with Mike Myers, the comic genius of
5748 <citetitle>Saturday Night Live</citetitle> and
5749 <!-- PAGE BREAK 118 -->
5750 Austin Powers. According to the announcement, Myers and Dream-Works
5751 would work together to form a <quote>unique filmmaking pact.</quote> Under the
5752 agreement, DreamWorks <quote>will acquire the rights to existing motion
5753 picture hits and classics, write new storylines and&mdash;with the use
5754 of stateof-the-art digital technology&mdash;insert Myers and other
5755 actors into the film, thereby creating an entirely new piece of
5756 entertainment.</quote>
5757 </para>
5758 <para>
5759 The announcement called this <quote>film sampling.</quote> As Myers explained,
5760 <quote>Film Sampling is an exciting way to put an original spin on existing
5761 films and allow audiences to see old movies in a new light. Rap
5762 artists have been doing this for years with music and now we are able
5763 to take that same concept and apply it to film.</quote> Steven Spielberg is
5764 quoted as saying, <quote>If anyone can create a way to bring old films to
5765 new audiences, it is Mike.</quote>
5766 </para>
5767 <para>
5768 Spielberg is right. Film sampling by Myers will be brilliant. But if
5769 you don't think about it, you might miss the truly astonishing point
5770 about this announcement. As the vast majority of our film heritage
5771 remains under copyright, the real meaning of the DreamWorks
5772 announcement is just this: It is Mike Myers and only Mike Myers who is
5773 free to sample. Any general freedom to build upon the film archive of
5774 our culture, a freedom in other contexts presumed for us all, is now a
5775 privilege reserved for the funny and famous&mdash;and presumably rich.
5776 </para>
5777 <para>
5778 This privilege becomes reserved for two sorts of reasons. The first
5779 continues the story of the last chapter: the vagueness of <quote>fair use.</quote>
5780 Much of <quote>sampling</quote> should be considered <quote>fair use.</quote> But few would
5781 rely upon so weak a doctrine to create. That leads to the second reason
5782 that the privilege is reserved for the few: The costs of negotiating the
5783 legal rights for the creative reuse of content are astronomically high.
5784 These costs mirror the costs with fair use: You either pay a lawyer to
5785 defend your fair use rights or pay a lawyer to track down permissions
5786 so you don't have to rely upon fair use rights. Either way, the creative
5787 process is a process of paying lawyers&mdash;again a privilege, or perhaps a
5788 curse, reserved for the few.
5789 </para>
5790 <!-- PAGE BREAK 119 -->
5791 </chapter>
5792 <chapter label="9" id="collectors">
5793 <title>CHAPTER NINE: Collectors</title>
5794 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital1' class='startofrange'><primary>archives, digital</primary></indexterm>
5795 <indexterm><primary>bots</primary></indexterm>
5796 <para>
5797 <emphasis role='strong'>In April 1996</emphasis>, millions of
5798 <quote>bots</quote>&mdash;computer codes designed to
5799 <quote>spider,</quote> or automatically search the Internet and copy
5800 content&mdash;began running across the Net. Page by page, these bots
5801 copied Internet-based information onto a small set of computers
5802 located in a basement in San Francisco's Presidio. Once the bots
5803 finished the whole of the Internet, they started again. Over and over
5804 again, once every two months, these bits of code took copies of the
5805 Internet and stored them.
5806 </para>
5807 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine</primary></indexterm>
5808 <para>
5809 By October 2001, the bots had collected more than five years of
5810 copies. And at a small announcement in Berkeley, California, the
5811 archive that these copies created, the Internet Archive, was opened to
5812 the world. Using a technology called <quote>the Way Back Machine,</quote> you could
5813 enter a Web page, and see all of its copies going back to 1996, as
5814 well as when those pages changed.
5815 </para>
5816 <indexterm id='idxorwellgeorge' class='startofrange'><primary>Orwell, George</primary></indexterm>
5817 <para>
5818 This is the thing about the Internet that Orwell would have
5819 appreciated. In the dystopia described in <citetitle>1984</citetitle>, old newspapers were
5820 constantly updated to assure that the current view of the world,
5821 approved of by the government, was not contradicted by previous news
5822 reports.
5823 </para>
5824 <para>
5825 <!-- PAGE BREAK 120 -->
5826 Thousands of workers constantly reedited the past, meaning there was
5827 no way ever to know whether the story you were reading today was the
5828 story that was printed on the date published on the paper.
5829 </para>
5830 <para>
5831 It's the same with the Internet. If you go to a Web page today,
5832 there's no way for you to know whether the content you are reading is
5833 the same as the content you read before. The page may seem the same,
5834 but the content could easily be different. The Internet is Orwell's
5835 library&mdash;constantly updated, without any reliable memory.
5836 </para>
5837 <indexterm startref='idxorwellgeorge' class='endofrange'/>
5838 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine</primary></indexterm>
5839 <para>
5840 Until the Way Back Machine, at least. With the Way Back Machine, and
5841 the Internet Archive underlying it, you can see what the Internet
5842 was. You have the power to see what you remember. More importantly,
5843 perhaps, you also have the power to find what you don't remember and
5844 what others might prefer you forget.<footnote><para>
5845 <!-- f1 -->
5846 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war</primary></indexterm>
5847 <indexterm><primary>White House press releases</primary></indexterm>
5848 The temptations remain, however. Brewster Kahle reports that the White
5849 House changes its own press releases without notice. A May 13, 2003,
5850 press release stated, <quote>Combat Operations in Iraq Have Ended.</quote> That was
5851 later changed, without notice, to <quote>Major Combat Operations in Iraq
5852 Have Ended.</quote> E-mail from Brewster Kahle, 1 December 2003.
5853 </para></footnote>
5854 </para>
5855 <indexterm><primary>history, records of</primary></indexterm>
5856 <para>
5857 <emphasis role='strong'>We take it</emphasis> for granted that we can
5858 go back to see what we remember reading. Think about newspapers. If
5859 you wanted to study the reaction of your hometown newspaper to the
5860 race riots in Watts in 1965, or to Bull Connor's water cannon in 1963,
5861 you could go to your public library and look at the newspapers. Those
5862 papers probably exist on microfiche. If you're lucky, they exist in
5863 paper, too. Either way, you are free, using a library, to go back and
5864 remember&mdash;not just what it is convenient to remember, but
5865 remember something close to the truth.
5866 </para>
5867 <para>
5868 It is said that those who fail to remember history are doomed to
5869 repeat it. That's not quite correct. We <emphasis>all</emphasis>
5870 forget history. The key is whether we have a way to go back to
5871 rediscover what we forget. More directly, the key is whether an
5872 objective past can keep us honest. Libraries help do that, by
5873 collecting content and keeping it, for schoolchildren, for
5874 researchers, for grandma. A free society presumes this knowedge.
5875 </para>
5876 <para>
5877 The Internet was an exception to this presumption. Until the Internet
5878 Archive, there was no way to go back. The Internet was the
5879 quintessentially transitory medium. And yet, as it becomes more
5880 important in forming and reforming society, it becomes more and more
5881 <!-- PAGE BREAK 121 -->
5882 important to maintain in some historical form. It's just bizarre to
5883 think that we have scads of archives of newspapers from tiny towns
5884 around the world, yet there is but one copy of the Internet&mdash;the
5885 one kept by the Internet Archive.
5886 </para>
5887 <para>
5888 Brewster Kahle is the founder of the Internet Archive. He was a very
5889 successful Internet entrepreneur after he was a successful computer
5890 researcher. In the 1990s, Kahle decided he had had enough business
5891 success. It was time to become a different kind of success. So he
5892 launched a series of projects designed to archive human knowledge. The
5893 Internet Archive was just the first of the projects of this Andrew
5894 Carnegie of the Internet. By December of 2002, the archive had over 10
5895 billion pages, and it was growing at about a billion pages a month.
5896 </para>
5897 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress</primary></indexterm>
5898 <indexterm><primary>Television Archive</primary></indexterm>
5899 <indexterm><primary>Vanderbilt University</primary></indexterm>
5900 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine</primary></indexterm>
5901 <indexterm><primary>libraries</primary><secondary>archival function of</secondary></indexterm>
5902 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage2' class='startofrange'><primary>news coverage</primary></indexterm>
5903 <para>
5904 The Way Back Machine is the largest archive of human knowledge in
5905 human history. At the end of 2002, it held <quote>two hundred and thirty
5906 terabytes of material</quote>&mdash;and was <quote>ten times larger than the
5907 Library of Congress.</quote> And this was just the first of the archives that
5908 Kahle set out to build. In addition to the Internet Archive, Kahle has
5909 been constructing the Television Archive. Television, it turns out, is
5910 even more ephemeral than the Internet. While much of twentieth-century
5911 culture was constructed through television, only a tiny proportion of
5912 that culture is available for anyone to see today. Three hours of news
5913 are recorded each evening by Vanderbilt University&mdash;thanks to a
5914 specific exemption in the copyright law. That content is indexed, and
5915 is available to scholars for a very low fee. <quote>But other than that,
5916 [television] is almost unavailable,</quote> Kahle told me. <quote>If you were
5917 Barbara Walters you could get access to [the archives], but if you are
5918 just a graduate student?</quote> As Kahle put it,
5919 </para>
5920 <blockquote>
5921 <indexterm><primary>Quayle, Dan</primary></indexterm>
5922 <indexterm><primary>60 Minutes</primary></indexterm>
5923 <para>
5924 Do you remember when Dan Quayle was interacting with Murphy Brown?
5925 Remember that back and forth surreal experience of a politician
5926 interacting with a fictional television character? If you were a
5927 graduate student wanting to study that, and you wanted to get those
5928 original back and forth exchanges between the two, the
5929
5930 <!-- PAGE BREAK 122 -->
5931 <citetitle>60 Minutes</citetitle> episode that came out after it &hellip; it would be almost
5932 impossible. &hellip; Those materials are almost unfindable. &hellip;
5933 </para>
5934 </blockquote>
5935 <indexterm><primary>newspapers</primary><secondary>archives of</secondary></indexterm>
5936 <para>
5937 Why is that? Why is it that the part of our culture that is recorded
5938 in newspapers remains perpetually accessible, while the part that is
5939 recorded on videotape is not? How is it that we've created a world
5940 where researchers trying to understand the effect of media on
5941 nineteenthcentury America will have an easier time than researchers
5942 trying to understand the effect of media on twentieth-century America?
5943 </para>
5944 <para>
5945 In part, this is because of the law. Early in American copyright law,
5946 copyright owners were required to deposit copies of their work in
5947 libraries. These copies were intended both to facilitate the spread
5948 of knowledge and to assure that a copy of the work would be around
5949 once the copyright expired, so that others might access and copy the
5950 work.
5951 </para>
5952 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress</primary></indexterm>
5953 <indexterm><primary>films</primary><secondary>archive of</secondary></indexterm>
5954 <para>
5955 These rules applied to film as well. But in 1915, the Library
5956 of Congress made an exception for film. Film could be copyrighted so
5957 long as such deposits were made. But the filmmaker was then allowed to
5958 borrow back the deposits&mdash;for an unlimited time at no cost. In
5959 1915 alone, there were more than 5,475 films deposited and <quote>borrowed
5960 back.</quote> Thus, when the copyrights to films expire, there is no copy
5961 held by any library. The copy exists&mdash;if it exists at
5962 all&mdash;in the library archive of the film company.<footnote><para>
5963 <!-- f2 -->
5964 Doug Herrick, <quote>Toward a National Film Collection: Motion Pictures at
5965 the Library of Congress,</quote> <citetitle>Film Library Quarterly</citetitle> 13 nos. 2&ndash;3
5966 (1980): 5; Anthony Slide, <citetitle>Nitrate Won't Wait: A History of Film
5967 Preservation in the United States</citetitle> ( Jefferson, N.C.: McFarland &amp;
5968 Co., 1992), 36.
5969 </para></footnote>
5970 </para>
5971 <para>
5972 The same is generally true about television. Television broadcasts
5973 were originally not copyrighted&mdash;there was no way to capture the
5974 broadcasts, so there was no fear of <quote>theft.</quote> But as technology enabled
5975 capturing, broadcasters relied increasingly upon the law. The law
5976 required they make a copy of each broadcast for the work to be
5977 <quote>copyrighted.</quote> But those copies were simply kept by the
5978 broadcasters. No library had any right to them; the government didn't
5979 demand them. The content of this part of American culture is
5980 practically invisible to anyone who would look.
5981 </para>
5982 <indexterm><primary>September 11, 2001, terrorist attacks of</primary></indexterm>
5983 <para>
5984 Kahle was eager to correct this. Before September 11, 2001, he and
5985 <!-- PAGE BREAK 123 -->
5986 his allies had started capturing television. They selected twenty
5987 stations from around the world and hit the Record button. After
5988 September 11, Kahle, working with dozens of others, selected twenty
5989 stations from around the world and, beginning October 11, 2001, made
5990 their coverage during the week of September 11 available free on-line.
5991 Anyone could see how news reports from around the world covered the
5992 events of that day.
5993 </para>
5994 <indexterm><primary>Movie Archive</primary></indexterm>
5995 <indexterm><primary>archive.org</primary><seealso>Internet Archive</seealso></indexterm>
5996 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage2' class='endofrange'/>
5997 <indexterm><primary>films</primary><secondary>archive of</secondary></indexterm>
5998 <indexterm><primary>Internet Archive</primary></indexterm>
5999 <indexterm><primary>Duck and Cover film</primary></indexterm>
6000 <indexterm><primary>ephemeral films</primary></indexterm>
6001 <indexterm><primary>Prelinger, Rick</primary></indexterm>
6002 <para>
6003 Kahle had the same idea with film. Working with Rick Prelinger, whose
6004 archive of film includes close to 45,000 <quote>ephemeral films</quote> (meaning
6005 films other than Hollywood movies, films that were never copyrighted),
6006 Kahle established the Movie Archive. Prelinger let Kahle digitize
6007 1,300 films in this archive and post those films on the Internet to be
6008 downloaded for free. Prelinger's is a for-profit company. It sells
6009 copies of these films as stock footage. What he has discovered is that
6010 after he made a significant chunk available for free, his stock
6011 footage sales went up dramatically. People could easily find the
6012 material they wanted to use. Some downloaded that material and made
6013 films on their own. Others purchased copies to enable other films to
6014 be made. Either way, the archive enabled access to this important
6015 part of our culture. Want to see a copy of the <quote>Duck and Cover</quote> film
6016 that instructed children how to save themselves in the middle of
6017 nuclear attack? Go to archive.org, and you can download the film in a
6018 few minutes&mdash;for free.
6019 </para>
6020 <para>
6021 Here again, Kahle is providing access to a part of our culture that we
6022 otherwise could not get easily, if at all. It is yet another part of
6023 what defines the twentieth century that we have lost to history. The
6024 law doesn't require these copies to be kept by anyone, or to be
6025 deposited in an archive by anyone. Therefore, there is no simple way
6026 to find them.
6027 </para>
6028 <para>
6029 The key here is access, not price. Kahle wants to enable free access
6030 to this content, but he also wants to enable others to sell access to
6031 it. His aim is to ensure competition in access to this important part
6032 of our culture. Not during the commercial life of a bit of creative
6033 property, but during a second life that all creative property
6034 has&mdash;a noncommercial life.
6035 </para>
6036 <para>
6037 For here is an idea that we should more clearly recognize. Every bit
6038 of creative property goes through different <quote>lives.</quote> In its first
6039 life, if the
6040
6041 <!-- PAGE BREAK 124 -->
6042 creator is lucky, the content is sold. In such cases the commercial
6043 market is successful for the creator. The vast majority of creative
6044 property doesn't enjoy such success, but some clearly does. For that
6045 content, commercial life is extremely important. Without this
6046 commercial market, there would be, many argue, much less creativity.
6047 </para>
6048 <para>
6049 After the commercial life of creative property has ended, our
6050 tradition has always supported a second life as well. A newspaper
6051 delivers the news every day to the doorsteps of America. The very next
6052 day, it is used to wrap fish or to fill boxes with fragile gifts or to
6053 build an archive of knowledge about our history. In this second life,
6054 the content can continue to inform even if that information is no
6055 longer sold.
6056 </para>
6057 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>out of print</secondary></indexterm>
6058 <para>
6059 The same has always been true about books. A book goes out of print
6060 very quickly (the average today is after about a year<footnote><para>
6061 <!-- f3 -->
6062 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>out of print</secondary></indexterm>
6063 Dave Barns, <quote>Fledgling Career in Antique Books: Woodstock Landlord,
6064 Bar Owner Starts a New Chapter by Adopting Business,</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune</citetitle>,
6065 5 September 1997, at Metro Lake 1L. Of books published between 1927
6066 and 1946, only 2.2 percent were in print in 2002. R. Anthony Reese,
6067 <quote>The First Sale Doctrine in the Era of Digital Networks,</quote> <citetitle>Boston
6068 College Law Review</citetitle> 44 (2003): 593 n. 51.
6069 </para></footnote>). After
6070 it is out of print, it can be sold in used book stores without the
6071 copyright owner getting anything and stored in libraries, where many
6072 get to read the book, also for free. Used book stores and libraries
6073 are thus the second life of a book. That second life is extremely
6074 important to the spread and stability of culture.
6075 </para>
6076 <para>
6077 Yet increasingly, any assumption about a stable second life for
6078 creative property does not hold true with the most important
6079 components of popular culture in the twentieth and twenty-first
6080 centuries. For these&mdash;television, movies, music, radio, the
6081 Internet&mdash;there is no guarantee of a second life. For these sorts
6082 of culture, it is as if we've replaced libraries with Barnes &amp;
6083 Noble superstores. With this culture, what's accessible is nothing but
6084 what a certain limited market demands. Beyond that, culture
6085 disappears.
6086 </para>
6087 <para>
6088 <emphasis role='strong'>For most of</emphasis> the twentieth century,
6089 it was economics that made this so. It would have been insanely
6090 expensive to collect and make accessible all television and film and
6091 music: The cost of analog copies is extraordinarily high. So even
6092 though the law in principle would have restricted the ability of a
6093 Brewster Kahle to copy culture generally, the
6094 <!-- PAGE BREAK 125 -->
6095 real restriction was economics. The market made it impossibly
6096 difficult to do anything about this ephemeral culture; the law had
6097 little practical effect.
6098 </para>
6099 <para>
6100 Perhaps the single most important feature of the digital revolution is
6101 that for the first time since the Library of Alexandria, it is
6102 feasible to imagine constructing archives that hold all culture
6103 produced or distributed publicly. Technology makes it possible to
6104 imagine an archive of all books published, and increasingly makes it
6105 possible to imagine an archive of all moving images and sound.
6106 </para>
6107 <para>
6108 The scale of this potential archive is something we've never imagined
6109 before. The Brewster Kahles of our history have dreamed about it; but
6110 we are for the first time at a point where that dream is possible. As
6111 Kahle describes,
6112 </para>
6113 <blockquote>
6114 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>total number of</secondary></indexterm>
6115 <para>
6116 It looks like there's about two to three million recordings of music.
6117 Ever. There are about a hundred thousand theatrical releases of
6118 movies, &hellip; and about one to two million movies [distributed] during
6119 the twentieth century. There are about twenty-six million different
6120 titles of books. All of these would fit on computers that would fit in
6121 this room and be able to be afforded by a small company. So we're at
6122 a turning point in our history. Universal access is the goal. And the
6123 opportunity of leading a different life, based on this, is
6124 &hellip; thrilling. It could be one of the things humankind would be most
6125 proud of. Up there with the Library of Alexandria, putting a man on
6126 the moon, and the invention of the printing press.
6127 </para>
6128 </blockquote>
6129 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
6130 <para>
6131 Kahle is not the only librarian. The Internet Archive is not the only
6132 archive. But Kahle and the Internet Archive suggest what the future of
6133 libraries or archives could be. <emphasis>When</emphasis> the
6134 commercial life of creative property ends, I don't know. But it
6135 does. And whenever it does, Kahle and his archive hint at a world
6136 where this knowledge, and culture, remains perpetually available. Some
6137 will draw upon it to understand it;
6138 <!-- PAGE BREAK 126 -->
6139 some to criticize it. Some will use it, as Walt Disney did, to
6140 re-create the past for the future. These technologies promise
6141 something that had become unimaginable for much of our past&mdash;a
6142 future <emphasis>for</emphasis> our past. The technology of digital
6143 arts could make the dream of the Library of Alexandria real again.
6144 </para>
6145 <para>
6146 Technologists have thus removed the economic costs of building such an
6147 archive. But lawyers' costs remain. For as much as we might like to
6148 call these <quote>archives,</quote> as warm as the idea of a <quote>library</quote> might seem,
6149 the <quote>content</quote> that is collected in these digital spaces is also
6150 someone's <quote>property.</quote> And the law of property restricts the freedoms
6151 that Kahle and others would exercise.
6152 </para>
6153 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital1' class='endofrange'/>
6154 <!-- PAGE BREAK 127 -->
6155 </chapter>
6156 <chapter label="10" id="property-i">
6157 <title>CHAPTER TEN: <quote>Property</quote></title>
6158 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Lyndon</primary></indexterm>
6159 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.</primary></indexterm>
6160 <para>
6161 <emphasis role='strong'>Jack Valenti</emphasis> has been the president
6162 of the Motion Picture Association of America since 1966. He first came
6163 to Washington, D.C., with Lyndon Johnson's
6164 administration&mdash;literally. The famous picture of Johnson's
6165 swearing-in on Air Force One after the assassination of President
6166 Kennedy has Valenti in the background. In his almost forty years of
6167 running the MPAA, Valenti has established himself as perhaps the most
6168 prominent and effective lobbyist in Washington.
6169 </para>
6170 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Inc.</primary></indexterm>
6171 <indexterm><primary>Sony Pictures Entertainment</primary></indexterm>
6172 <indexterm><primary>MGM</primary></indexterm>
6173 <indexterm><primary>Paramount Pictures</primary></indexterm>
6174 <indexterm><primary>Twentieth Century Fox</primary></indexterm>
6175 <indexterm><primary>Universal Pictures</primary></indexterm>
6176 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers</primary></indexterm>
6177 <para>
6178 The MPAA is the American branch of the international Motion Picture
6179 Association. It was formed in 1922 as a trade association whose goal
6180 was to defend American movies against increasing domestic criticism.
6181 The organization now represents not only filmmakers but producers and
6182 distributors of entertainment for television, video, and cable. Its
6183 board is made up of the chairmen and presidents of the seven major
6184 producers and distributors of motion picture and television programs
6185 in the United States: Walt Disney, Sony Pictures Entertainment, MGM,
6186 Paramount Pictures, Twentieth Century Fox, Universal Studios, and
6187 Warner Brothers.
6188 </para>
6189 <para>
6190 <!-- PAGE BREAK 128 -->
6191 Valenti is only the third president of the MPAA. No president before
6192 him has had as much influence over that organization, or over
6193 Washington. As a Texan, Valenti has mastered the single most important
6194 political skill of a Southerner&mdash;the ability to appear simple and
6195 slow while hiding a lightning-fast intellect. To this day, Valenti
6196 plays the simple, humble man. But this Harvard MBA, and author of four
6197 books, who finished high school at the age of fifteen and flew more
6198 than fifty combat missions in World War II, is no Mr. Smith. When
6199 Valenti went to Washington, he mastered the city in a quintessentially
6200 Washingtonian way.
6201 </para>
6202 <para>
6203 In defending artistic liberty and the freedom of speech that our
6204 culture depends upon, the MPAA has done important good. In crafting
6205 the MPAA rating system, it has probably avoided a great deal of
6206 speech-regulating harm. But there is an aspect to the organization's
6207 mission that is both the most radical and the most important. This is
6208 the organization's effort, epitomized in Valenti's every act, to
6209 redefine the meaning of <quote>creative property.</quote>
6210 </para>
6211 <para>
6212 In 1982, Valenti's testimony to Congress captured the strategy
6213 perfectly:
6214 </para>
6215 <blockquote>
6216 <para>
6217 No matter the lengthy arguments made, no matter the charges and the
6218 counter-charges, no matter the tumult and the shouting, reasonable men
6219 and women will keep returning to the fundamental issue, the central
6220 theme which animates this entire debate: <emphasis>Creative property
6221 owners must be accorded the same rights and protection resident in all
6222 other property owners in the nation</emphasis>. That is the issue.
6223 That is the question. And that is the rostrum on which this entire
6224 hearing and the debates to follow must rest.<footnote><para>
6225 <!-- f1 -->
6226 Home Recording of Copyrighted Works: Hearings on H.R. 4783, H.R.
6227 4794, H.R. 4808, H.R. 5250, H.R. 5488, and H.R. 5705 Before the
6228 Subcommittee on Courts, Civil Liberties, and the Administration of
6229 Justice of the Committee on the Judiciary of the House of
6230 Representatives, 97th Cong., 2nd sess. (1982): 65 (testimony of Jack
6231 Valenti).
6232 </para></footnote>
6233 </para>
6234 </blockquote>
6235 <para>
6236 The strategy of this rhetoric, like the strategy of most of Valenti's
6237 rhetoric, is brilliant and simple and brilliant because simple. The
6238 <quote>central theme</quote> to which <quote>reasonable men and women</quote> will return is
6239 this:
6240 <!-- PAGE BREAK 129 -->
6241 <quote>Creative property owners must be accorded the same rights and
6242 protections resident in all other property owners in the nation.</quote>
6243 There are no second-class citizens, Valenti might have
6244 continued. There should be no second-class property owners.
6245 </para>
6246 <para>
6247 This claim has an obvious and powerful intuitive pull. It is stated
6248 with such clarity as to make the idea as obvious as the notion that we
6249 use elections to pick presidents. But in fact, there is no more
6250 extreme a claim made by <emphasis>anyone</emphasis> who is serious in
6251 this debate than this claim of Valenti's. Jack Valenti, however sweet
6252 and however brilliant, is perhaps the nation's foremost extremist when
6253 it comes to the nature and scope of <quote>creative property.</quote> His views
6254 have <emphasis>no</emphasis> reasonable connection to our actual legal
6255 tradition, even if the subtle pull of his Texan charm has slowly
6256 redefined that tradition, at least in Washington.
6257 </para>
6258 <para>
6259 While <quote>creative property</quote> is certainly <quote>property</quote> in a nerdy and
6260 precise sense that lawyers are trained to understand,<footnote><para>
6261 <!-- f2 -->
6262 Lawyers speak of <quote>property</quote> not as an absolute thing, but as a bundle
6263 of rights that are sometimes associated with a particular
6264 object. Thus, my <quote>property right</quote> to my car gives me the right to
6265 exclusive use, but not the right to drive at 150 miles an hour. For
6266 the best effort to connect the ordinary meaning of <quote>property</quote> to
6267 <quote>lawyer talk,</quote> see Bruce Ackerman, <citetitle>Private Property and the
6268 Constitution</citetitle> (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1977), 26&ndash;27.
6269 </para></footnote> it has never been the case, nor should it be, that
6270 <quote>creative property owners</quote> have been <quote>accorded the same rights and
6271 protection resident in all other property owners.</quote> Indeed, if creative
6272 property owners were given the same rights as all other property
6273 owners, that would effect a radical, and radically undesirable, change
6274 in our tradition.
6275 </para>
6276 <para>
6277 Valenti knows this. But he speaks for an industry that cares squat for
6278 our tradition and the values it represents. He speaks for an industry
6279 that is instead fighting to restore the tradition that the British
6280 overturned in 1710. In the world that Valenti's changes would create,
6281 a powerful few would exercise powerful control over how our creative
6282 culture would develop.
6283 </para>
6284 <para>
6285 I have two purposes in this chapter. The first is to convince you
6286 that, historically, Valenti's claim is absolutely wrong. The second is
6287 to convince you that it would be terribly wrong for us to reject our
6288 history. We have always treated rights in creative property
6289 differently from the rights resident in all other property
6290 owners. They have never been the same. And they should never be the
6291 same, because, however counterintuitive this may seem, to make them
6292 the same would be to
6293
6294 <!-- PAGE BREAK 130 -->
6295 fundamentally weaken the opportunity for new creators to create.
6296 Creativity depends upon the owners of creativity having less than
6297 perfect control.
6298 </para>
6299 <para>
6300 Organizations such as the MPAA, whose board includes the most powerful
6301 of the old guard, have little interest, their rhetoric
6302 notwithstanding, in assuring that the new can displace them. No
6303 organization does. No person does. (Ask me about tenure, for example.)
6304 But what's good for the MPAA is not necessarily good for America. A
6305 society that defends the ideals of free culture must preserve
6306 precisely the opportunity for new creativity to threaten the old.
6307 </para>
6308 <para>
6309 <emphasis role='strong'>To get</emphasis> just a hint that there is
6310 something fundamentally wrong in Valenti's argument, we need look no
6311 further than the United States Constitution itself.
6312 </para>
6313 <para>
6314 The framers of our Constitution loved <quote>property.</quote> Indeed, so strongly
6315 did they love property that they built into the Constitution an
6316 important requirement. If the government takes your property&mdash;if
6317 it condemns your house, or acquires a slice of land from your
6318 farm&mdash;it is required, under the Fifth Amendment's <quote>Takings
6319 Clause,</quote> to pay you <quote>just compensation</quote> for that taking. The
6320 Constitution thus guarantees that property is, in a certain sense,
6321 sacred. It cannot <emphasis>ever</emphasis> be taken from the property
6322 owner unless the government pays for the privilege.
6323 </para>
6324 <para>
6325 Yet the very same Constitution speaks very differently about what
6326 Valenti calls <quote>creative property.</quote> In the clause granting Congress the
6327 power to create <quote>creative property,</quote> the Constitution
6328 <emphasis>requires</emphasis> that after a <quote>limited time,</quote> Congress
6329 take back the rights that it has granted and set the <quote>creative
6330 property</quote> free to the public domain. Yet when Congress does this, when
6331 the expiration of a copyright term <quote>takes</quote> your copyright and turns it
6332 over to the public domain, Congress does not have any obligation to
6333 pay <quote>just compensation</quote> for this <quote>taking.</quote> Instead, the same
6334 Constitution that requires compensation for your land
6335 <!-- PAGE BREAK 131 -->
6336 requires that you lose your <quote>creative property</quote> right without any
6337 compensation at all.
6338 </para>
6339 <para>
6340 The Constitution thus on its face states that these two forms of
6341 property are not to be accorded the same rights. They are plainly to
6342 be treated differently. Valenti is therefore not just asking for a
6343 change in our tradition when he argues that creative-property owners
6344 should be accorded the same rights as every other property-right
6345 owner. He is effectively arguing for a change in our Constitution
6346 itself.
6347 </para>
6348 <indexterm id='idxjeffersonthomas' class='startofrange'><primary>Jefferson, Thomas</primary></indexterm>
6349 <para>
6350 Arguing for a change in our Constitution is not necessarily wrong.
6351 There was much in our original Constitution that was plainly wrong.
6352 The Constitution of 1789 entrenched slavery; it left senators to be
6353 appointed rather than elected; it made it possible for the electoral
6354 college to produce a tie between the president and his own vice
6355 president (as it did in 1800). The framers were no doubt
6356 extraordinary, but I would be the first to admit that they made big
6357 mistakes. We have since rejected some of those mistakes; no doubt
6358 there could be others that we should reject as well. So my argument is
6359 not simply that because Jefferson did it, we should, too.
6360 </para>
6361 <para>
6362 Instead, my argument is that because Jefferson did it, we should at
6363 least try to understand <emphasis>why</emphasis>. Why did the framers,
6364 fanatical property types that they were, reject the claim that
6365 creative property be given the same rights as all other property? Why
6366 did they require that for creative property there must be a public
6367 domain?
6368 </para>
6369 <indexterm startref='idxjeffersonthomas' class='endofrange'/>
6370
6371 <para>
6372 To answer this question, we need to get some perspective on the
6373 history of these <quote>creative property</quote> rights, and the control that they
6374 enabled. Once we see clearly how differently these rights have been
6375 defined, we will be in a better position to ask the question that
6376 should be at the core of this war: Not <emphasis>whether</emphasis>
6377 creative property should be protected, but how. Not
6378 <emphasis>whether</emphasis> we will enforce the rights the law gives
6379 to creative-property owners, but what the particular mix of rights
6380 ought to be. Not <emphasis>whether</emphasis> artists should be paid,
6381 but whether institutions designed to assure that artists get paid need
6382 also control how culture develops.
6383 </para>
6384 <para>
6385
6386 <!-- PAGE BREAK 132 -->
6387 To answer these questions, we need a more general way to talk about
6388 how property is protected. More precisely, we need a more general way
6389 than the narrow language of the law allows. In <citetitle>Code and Other Laws of
6390 Cyberspace</citetitle>, I used a simple model to capture this more general
6391 perspective. For any particular right or regulation, this model asks
6392 how four different modalities of regulation interact to support or
6393 weaken the right or regulation. I represented it with this diagram:
6394 </para>
6395 <figure id="fig-1331">
6396 <title>How four different modalities of regulation interact to support or weaken the right or regulation.</title>
6397 <graphic fileref="images/1331.png"></graphic>
6398 </figure>
6399 <para>
6400 At the center of this picture is a regulated dot: the individual or
6401 group that is the target of regulation, or the holder of a right. (In
6402 each case throughout, we can describe this either as regulation or as
6403 a right. For simplicity's sake, I will speak only of regulations.)
6404 The ovals represent four ways in which the individual or group might
6405 be regulated&mdash; either constrained or, alternatively, enabled. Law
6406 is the most obvious constraint (to lawyers, at least). It constrains
6407 by threatening punishments after the fact if the rules set in advance
6408 are violated. So if, for example, you willfully infringe Madonna's
6409 copyright by copying a song from her latest CD and posting it on the
6410 Web, you can be punished
6411 <!-- PAGE BREAK 133 -->
6412 with a $150,000 fine. The fine is an ex post punishment for violating
6413 an ex ante rule. It is imposed by the state.
6414 <indexterm><primary>Madonna</primary></indexterm>
6415 </para>
6416 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of</primary></indexterm>
6417 <para>
6418 Norms are a different kind of constraint. They, too, punish an
6419 individual for violating a rule. But the punishment of a norm is
6420 imposed by a community, not (or not only) by the state. There may be
6421 no law against spitting, but that doesn't mean you won't be punished
6422 if you spit on the ground while standing in line at a movie. The
6423 punishment might not be harsh, though depending upon the community, it
6424 could easily be more harsh than many of the punishments imposed by the
6425 state. The mark of the difference is not the severity of the rule, but
6426 the source of the enforcement.
6427 </para>
6428 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
6429 <para>
6430 The market is a third type of constraint. Its constraint is effected
6431 through conditions: You can do X if you pay Y; you'll be paid M if you
6432 do N. These constraints are obviously not independent of law or
6433 norms&mdash;it is property law that defines what must be bought if it
6434 is to be taken legally; it is norms that say what is appropriately
6435 sold. But given a set of norms, and a background of property and
6436 contract law, the market imposes a simultaneous constraint upon how an
6437 individual or group might behave.
6438 </para>
6439 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through</primary></indexterm>
6440 <para>
6441 Finally, and for the moment, perhaps, most mysteriously,
6442 <quote>architecture</quote>&mdash;the physical world as one finds it&mdash;is a
6443 constraint on behavior. A fallen bridge might constrain your ability
6444 to get across a river. Railroad tracks might constrain the ability of
6445 a community to integrate its social life. As with the market,
6446 architecture does not effect its constraint through ex post
6447 punishments. Instead, also as with the market, architecture effects
6448 its constraint through simultaneous conditions. These conditions are
6449 imposed not by courts enforcing contracts, or by police punishing
6450 theft, but by nature, by <quote>architecture.</quote> If a 500-pound boulder
6451 blocks your way, it is the law of gravity that enforces this
6452 constraint. If a $500 airplane ticket stands between you and a flight
6453 to New York, it is the market that enforces this constraint.
6454 </para>
6455 <para>
6456
6457 <!-- PAGE BREAK 134 -->
6458 So the first point about these four modalities of regulation is
6459 obvious: They interact. Restrictions imposed by one might be
6460 reinforced by another. Or restrictions imposed by one might be
6461 undermined by another.
6462 </para>
6463 <para>
6464 The second point follows directly: If we want to understand the
6465 effective freedom that anyone has at a given moment to do any
6466 particular thing, we have to consider how these four modalities
6467 interact. Whether or not there are other constraints (there may well
6468 be; my claim is not about comprehensiveness), these four are among the
6469 most significant, and any regulator (whether controlling or freeing)
6470 must consider how these four in particular interact.
6471 </para>
6472 <indexterm id="idxdrivespeed" class='startofrange'><primary>driving speed, constraints on</primary></indexterm>
6473 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through</primary></indexterm>
6474 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
6475 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of</primary></indexterm>
6476 <para>
6477 So, for example, consider the <quote>freedom</quote> to drive a car at a high
6478 speed. That freedom is in part restricted by laws: speed limits that
6479 say how fast you can drive in particular places at particular
6480 times. It is in part restricted by architecture: speed bumps, for
6481 example, slow most rational drivers; governors in buses, as another
6482 example, set the maximum rate at which the driver can drive. The
6483 freedom is in part restricted by the market: Fuel efficiency drops as
6484 speed increases, thus the price of gasoline indirectly constrains
6485 speed. And finally, the norms of a community may or may not constrain
6486 the freedom to speed. Drive at 50 mph by a school in your own
6487 neighborhood and you're likely to be punished by the neighbors. The
6488 same norm wouldn't be as effective in a different town, or at night.
6489 </para>
6490 <para>
6491 The final point about this simple model should also be fairly clear:
6492 While these four modalities are analytically independent, law has a
6493 special role in affecting the three.<footnote><para>
6494 <!-- f3 -->
6495 By describing the way law affects the other three modalities, I don't
6496 mean to suggest that the other three don't affect law. Obviously, they
6497 do. Law's only distinction is that it alone speaks as if it has a
6498 right self-consciously to change the other three. The right of the
6499 other three is more timidly expressed. See Lawrence Lessig, <citetitle>Code: And
6500 Other Laws of Cyberspace</citetitle> (New York: Basic Books, 1999): 90&ndash;95;
6501 Lawrence Lessig, <quote>The New Chicago School,</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Legal Studies</citetitle>,
6502 June 1998.
6503 </para></footnote>
6504 The law, in other words, sometimes operates to increase or decrease
6505 the constraint of a particular modality. Thus, the law might be used
6506 to increase taxes on gasoline, so as to increase the incentives to
6507 drive more slowly. The law might be used to mandate more speed bumps,
6508 so as to increase the difficulty of driving rapidly. The law might be
6509 used to fund ads that stigmatize reckless driving. Or the law might be
6510 used to require that other laws be more
6511 <!-- PAGE BREAK 135 -->
6512 strict&mdash;a federal requirement that states decrease the speed
6513 limit, for example&mdash;so as to decrease the attractiveness of fast
6514 driving.
6515 </para>
6516 <indexterm startref="idxdrivespeed" class='endofrange'/>
6517
6518 <figure id="fig-1361">
6519 <title>Law has a special role in affecting the three.</title>
6520 <graphic fileref="images/1361.png"></graphic>
6521 </figure>
6522 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through</primary></indexterm>
6523 <para>
6524 These constraints can thus change, and they can be changed. To
6525 understand the effective protection of liberty or protection of
6526 property at any particular moment, we must track these changes over
6527 time. A restriction imposed by one modality might be erased by
6528 another. A freedom enabled by one modality might be displaced by
6529 another.<footnote>
6530 <para>
6531 <!-- f4 -->
6532 Some people object to this way of talking about <quote>liberty.</quote> They object
6533 because their focus when considering the constraints that exist at any
6534 particular moment are constraints imposed exclusively by the
6535 government. For instance, if a storm destroys a bridge, these people
6536 think it is meaningless to say that one's liberty has been
6537 restrained. A bridge has washed out, and it's harder to get from one
6538 place to another. To talk about this as a loss of freedom, they say,
6539 is to confuse the stuff of politics with the vagaries of ordinary
6540 life. I don't mean to deny the value in this narrower view, which
6541 depends upon the context of the inquiry. I do, however, mean to argue
6542 against any insistence that this narrower view is the only proper view
6543 of liberty. As I argued in <citetitle>Code</citetitle>, we come from a
6544 long tradition of political thought with a broader focus than the
6545 narrow question of what the government did when. John Stuart Mill
6546 defended freedom of speech, for example, from the tyranny of narrow
6547 minds, not from the fear of government prosecution; John Stuart Mill,
6548 <citetitle>On Liberty</citetitle> (Indiana: Hackett Publishing Co.,
6549 1978), 19. John R. Commons famously defended the economic freedom of
6550 labor from constraints imposed by the market; John R. Commons, <quote>The
6551 Right to Work,</quote> in Malcom Rutherford and Warren J. Samuels, eds.,
6552 <citetitle>John R. Commons: Selected Essays</citetitle> (London:
6553 Routledge: 1997), 62. The Americans with Disabilities Act increases
6554 the liberty of people with physical disabilities by changing the
6555 architecture of certain public places, thereby making access to those
6556 places easier; 42 <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>, section
6557 12101 (2000). Each of these interventions to change existing
6558 conditions changes the liberty of a particular group. The effect of
6559 those interventions should be accounted for in order to understand the
6560 effective liberty that each of these groups might face.
6561 <indexterm><primary>Americans with Disabilities Act (1990)</primary></indexterm>
6562 <indexterm><primary>Commons, John R.</primary></indexterm>
6563 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through</primary></indexterm>
6564 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
6565 </para></footnote>
6566 </para>
6567 <section id="hollywood">
6568 <title>Why Hollywood Is Right</title>
6569 <para>
6570 The most obvious point that this model reveals is just why, or just
6571 how, Hollywood is right. The copyright warriors have rallied Congress
6572 and the courts to defend copyright. This model helps us see why that
6573 rallying makes sense.
6574 </para>
6575 <para>
6576 Let's say this is the picture of copyright's regulation before the
6577 Internet:
6578 </para>
6579 <figure id="fig-1371">
6580 <title>Copyright's regulation before the Internet.</title>
6581 <graphic fileref="images/1331.png"></graphic>
6582 </figure>
6583 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
6584 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of</primary></indexterm>
6585 <para>
6586 <!-- PAGE BREAK 136 -->
6587 There is balance between law, norms, market, and architecture. The law
6588 limits the ability to copy and share content, by imposing penalties on
6589 those who copy and share content. Those penalties are reinforced by
6590 technologies that make it hard to copy and share content
6591 (architecture) and expensive to copy and share content
6592 (market). Finally, those penalties are mitigated by norms we all
6593 recognize&mdash;kids, for example, taping other kids' records. These
6594 uses of copyrighted material may well be infringement, but the norms
6595 of our society (before the Internet, at least) had no problem with
6596 this form of infringement.
6597 </para>
6598 <para>
6599 Enter the Internet, or, more precisely, technologies such as MP3s and
6600 p2p sharing. Now the constraint of architecture changes dramatically,
6601 as does the constraint of the market. And as both the market and
6602 architecture relax the regulation of copyright, norms pile on. The
6603 happy balance (for the warriors, at least) of life before the Internet
6604 becomes an effective state of anarchy after the Internet.
6605 </para>
6606 <para>
6607 Thus the sense of, and justification for, the warriors' response.
6608 Technology has changed, the warriors say, and the effect of this
6609 change, when ramified through the market and norms, is that a balance
6610 of protection for the copyright owners' rights has been lost. This is
6611 Iraq
6612 <!-- PAGE BREAK 137 -->
6613 after the fall of Saddam, but this time no government is justifying the
6614 looting that results.
6615 </para>
6616 <figure id="fig-1381">
6617 <title>effective state of anarchy after the Internet.</title>
6618 <graphic fileref="images/1381.png"></graphic>
6619 </figure>
6620 <para>
6621 Neither this analysis nor the conclusions that follow are new to the
6622 warriors. Indeed, in a <quote>White Paper</quote> prepared by the Commerce
6623 Department (one heavily influenced by the copyright warriors) in 1995,
6624 this mix of regulatory modalities had already been identified and the
6625 strategy to respond already mapped. In response to the changes the
6626 Internet had effected, the White Paper argued (1) Congress should
6627 strengthen intellectual property law, (2) businesses should adopt
6628 innovative marketing techniques, (3) technologists should push to
6629 develop code to protect copyrighted material, and (4) educators should
6630 educate kids to better protect copyright.
6631 </para>
6632 <indexterm><primary>steel industry</primary></indexterm>
6633 <para>
6634 This mixed strategy is just what copyright needed&mdash;if it was to
6635 preserve the particular balance that existed before the change induced
6636 by the Internet. And it's just what we should expect the content
6637 industry to push for. It is as American as apple pie to consider the
6638 happy life you have as an entitlement, and to look to the law to
6639 protect it if something comes along to change that happy
6640 life. Homeowners living in a
6641
6642 <!-- PAGE BREAK 138 -->
6643 flood plain have no hesitation appealing to the government to rebuild
6644 (and rebuild again) when a flood (architecture) wipes away their
6645 property (law). Farmers have no hesitation appealing to the government
6646 to bail them out when a virus (architecture) devastates their
6647 crop. Unions have no hesitation appealing to the government to bail
6648 them out when imports (market) wipe out the U.S. steel industry.
6649 </para>
6650 <para>
6651 Thus, there's nothing wrong or surprising in the content industry's
6652 campaign to protect itself from the harmful consequences of a
6653 technological innovation. And I would be the last person to argue that
6654 the changing technology of the Internet has not had a profound effect
6655 on the content industry's way of doing business, or as John Seely
6656 Brown describes it, its <quote>architecture of revenue.</quote>
6657 </para>
6658 <indexterm><primary>railroad industry</primary></indexterm>
6659 <indexterm><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
6660 <indexterm><primary>camera technology</primary></indexterm>
6661 <para>
6662 But just because a particular interest asks for government support, it
6663 doesn't follow that support should be granted. And just because
6664 technology has weakened a particular way of doing business, it doesn't
6665 follow that the government should intervene to support that old way of
6666 doing business. Kodak, for example, has lost perhaps as much as 20
6667 percent of their traditional film market to the emerging technologies
6668 of digital cameras.<footnote><para>
6669 <!-- f5 -->
6670 See Geoffrey Smith, <quote>Film vs. Digital: Can Kodak Build a Bridge?</quote>
6671 BusinessWeek online, 2 August 1999, available at
6672 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #23</ulink>. For a more
6673 recent analysis of Kodak's place in the market, see Chana
6674 R. Schoenberger, <quote>Can Kodak Make Up for Lost Moments?</quote> Forbes.com, 6
6675 October 2003, available at
6676 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #24</ulink>.
6677 </para></footnote>
6678
6679 Does anyone believe the government should ban digital cameras just to
6680 support Kodak? Highways have weakened the freight business for
6681 railroads. Does anyone think we should ban trucks from roads
6682 <emphasis>for the purpose of</emphasis> protecting the railroads?
6683 Closer to the subject of this book, remote channel changers have
6684 weakened the <quote>stickiness</quote> of television advertising (if a boring
6685 commercial comes on the TV, the remote makes it easy to surf ), and it
6686 may well be that this change has weakened the television advertising
6687 market. But does anyone believe we should regulate remotes to
6688 reinforce commercial television? (Maybe by limiting them to function
6689 only once a second, or to switch to only ten channels within an hour?)
6690 </para>
6691 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid</primary></indexterm>
6692 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill</primary></indexterm>
6693 <para>
6694 The obvious answer to these obviously rhetorical questions is no.
6695 In a free society, with a free market, supported by free enterprise and
6696 free trade, the government's role is not to support one way of doing
6697 <!-- PAGE BREAK 139 -->
6698 business against others. Its role is not to pick winners and protect
6699 them against loss. If the government did this generally, then we would
6700 never have any progress. As Microsoft chairman Bill Gates wrote in
6701 1991, in a memo criticizing software patents, <quote>established companies
6702 have an interest in excluding future competitors.</quote><footnote><para>
6703 <!-- f6 -->
6704 Fred Warshofsky, <citetitle>The Patent Wars</citetitle> (New York: Wiley, 1994), 170&ndash;71.
6705 </para></footnote>
6706 And relative to a
6707 startup, established companies also have the means. (Think RCA and
6708 FM radio.) A world in which competitors with new ideas must fight
6709 not only the market but also the government is a world in which
6710 competitors with new ideas will not succeed. It is a world of stasis and
6711 increasingly concentrated stagnation. It is the Soviet Union under
6712 Brezhnev.
6713 </para>
6714 <para>
6715 Thus, while it is understandable for industries threatened with new
6716 technologies that change the way they do business to look to the
6717 government for protection, it is the special duty of policy makers to
6718 guarantee that that protection not become a deterrent to progress. It
6719 is the duty of policy makers, in other words, to assure that the
6720 changes they create, in response to the request of those hurt by
6721 changing technology, are changes that preserve the incentives and
6722 opportunities for innovation and change.
6723 </para>
6724 <para>
6725 In the context of laws regulating speech&mdash;which include,
6726 obviously, copyright law&mdash;that duty is even stronger. When the
6727 industry complaining about changing technologies is asking Congress to
6728 respond in a way that burdens speech and creativity, policy makers
6729 should be especially wary of the request. It is always a bad deal for
6730 the government to get into the business of regulating speech
6731 markets. The risks and dangers of that game are precisely why our
6732 framers created the First Amendment to our Constitution: <quote>Congress
6733 shall make no law &hellip; abridging the freedom of speech.</quote> So when
6734 Congress is being asked to pass laws that would <quote>abridge</quote> the freedom
6735 of speech, it should ask&mdash; carefully&mdash;whether such
6736 regulation is justified.
6737 </para>
6738 <para>
6739 My argument just now, however, has nothing to do with whether
6740 <!-- PAGE BREAK 140 -->
6741 the changes that are being pushed by the copyright warriors are
6742 <quote>justified.</quote> My argument is about their effect. For before we get to
6743 the question of justification, a hard question that depends a great
6744 deal upon your values, we should first ask whether we understand the
6745 effect of the changes the content industry wants.
6746 </para>
6747 <para>
6748 Here's the metaphor that will capture the argument to follow.
6749 </para>
6750 <indexterm id="idxddt" class='startofrange'><primary>DDT</primary></indexterm>
6751 <indexterm><primary>Müller, Paul Hermann</primary></indexterm>
6752 <para>
6753 In 1873, the chemical DDT was first synthesized. In 1948, Swiss
6754 chemist Paul Hermann Müller won the Nobel Prize for his work
6755 demonstrating the insecticidal properties of DDT. By the 1950s, the
6756 insecticide was widely used around the world to kill disease-carrying
6757 pests. It was also used to increase farm production.
6758 </para>
6759 <para>
6760 No one doubts that killing disease-carrying pests or increasing crop
6761 production is a good thing. No one doubts that the work of Müller was
6762 important and valuable and probably saved lives, possibly millions.
6763 </para>
6764 <indexterm><primary>Carson, Rachel</primary></indexterm>
6765 <indexterm><primary>Silent Sprint (Carson)</primary></indexterm>
6766 <para>
6767 But in 1962, Rachel Carson published <citetitle>Silent Spring</citetitle>, which argued that
6768 DDT, whatever its primary benefits, was also having unintended
6769 environmental consequences. Birds were losing the ability to
6770 reproduce. Whole chains of the ecology were being destroyed.
6771 </para>
6772 <para>
6773 No one set out to destroy the environment. Paul Müller certainly did
6774 not aim to harm any birds. But the effort to solve one set of problems
6775 produced another set which, in the view of some, was far worse than
6776 the problems that were originally attacked. Or more accurately, the
6777 problems DDT caused were worse than the problems it solved, at least
6778 when considering the other, more environmentally friendly ways to
6779 solve the problems that DDT was meant to solve.
6780 </para>
6781 <indexterm><primary>Boyle, James</primary></indexterm>
6782 <para>
6783 It is to this image precisely that Duke University law professor James
6784 Boyle appeals when he argues that we need an <quote>environmentalism</quote> for
6785 culture.<footnote><para>
6786 <!-- f7 -->
6787 See, for example, James Boyle, <quote>A Politics of Intellectual Property:
6788 Environmentalism for the Net?</quote> <citetitle>Duke Law Journal</citetitle> 47 (1997): 87.
6789 </para></footnote>
6790 His point, and the point I want to develop in the balance of this
6791 chapter, is not that the aims of copyright are flawed. Or that authors
6792 should not be paid for their work. Or that music should be given away
6793 <quote>for free.</quote> The point is that some of the ways in which we might
6794 protect authors will have unintended consequences for the cultural
6795 environment, much like DDT had for the natural environment. And just
6796 <!-- PAGE BREAK 141 -->
6797 as criticism of DDT is not an endorsement of malaria or an attack on
6798 farmers, so, too, is criticism of one particular set of regulations
6799 protecting copyright not an endorsement of anarchy or an attack on
6800 authors. It is an environment of creativity that we seek, and we
6801 should be aware of our actions' effects on the environment.
6802 </para>
6803 <para>
6804 My argument, in the balance of this chapter, tries to map exactly
6805 this effect. No doubt the technology of the Internet has had a dramatic
6806 effect on the ability of copyright owners to protect their content. But
6807 there should also be little doubt that when you add together the
6808 changes in copyright law over time, plus the change in technology that
6809 the Internet is undergoing just now, the net effect of these changes will
6810 not be only that copyrighted work is effectively protected. Also, and
6811 generally missed, the net effect of this massive increase in protection
6812 will be devastating to the environment for creativity.
6813 </para>
6814 <para>
6815 In a line: To kill a gnat, we are spraying DDT with consequences
6816 for free culture that will be far more devastating than that this gnat will
6817 be lost.
6818 </para>
6819 <indexterm startref="idxddt" class='endofrange'/>
6820 </section>
6821 <section id="beginnings">
6822 <title>Beginnings</title>
6823 <para>
6824 America copied English copyright law. Actually, we copied and improved
6825 English copyright law. Our Constitution makes the purpose of <quote>creative
6826 property</quote> rights clear; its express limitations reinforce the English
6827 aim to avoid overly powerful publishers.
6828 </para>
6829 <para>
6830 The power to establish <quote>creative property</quote> rights is granted to
6831 Congress in a way that, for our Constitution, at least, is very
6832 odd. Article I, section 8, clause 8 of our Constitution states that:
6833 </para>
6834 <para>
6835 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science and
6836 useful Arts, by securing for limited Times to Authors and Inventors
6837 the exclusive Right to their respective Writings and Discoveries.
6838
6839 <!-- PAGE BREAK 142 -->
6840 We can call this the <quote>Progress Clause,</quote> for notice what this clause
6841 does not say. It does not say Congress has the power to grant
6842 <quote>creative property rights.</quote> It says that Congress has the power
6843 <emphasis>to promote progress</emphasis>. The grant of power is its
6844 purpose, and its purpose is a public one, not the purpose of enriching
6845 publishers, nor even primarily the purpose of rewarding authors.
6846 </para>
6847 <para>
6848 The Progress Clause expressly limits the term of copyrights. As we saw
6849 in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="founders"/>,
6850 the English limited the term of copyright so as to assure that a few
6851 would not exercise disproportionate control over culture by exercising
6852 disproportionate control over publishing. We can assume the framers
6853 followed the English for a similar purpose. Indeed, unlike the
6854 English, the framers reinforced that objective, by requiring that
6855 copyrights extend <quote>to Authors</quote> only.
6856 </para>
6857 <para>
6858 The design of the Progress Clause reflects something about the
6859 Constitution's design in general. To avoid a problem, the framers
6860 built structure. To prevent the concentrated power of publishers, they
6861 built a structure that kept copyrights away from publishers and kept
6862 them short. To prevent the concentrated power of a church, they banned
6863 the federal government from establishing a church. To prevent
6864 concentrating power in the federal government, they built structures
6865 to reinforce the power of the states&mdash;including the Senate, whose
6866 members were at the time selected by the states, and an electoral
6867 college, also selected by the states, to select the president. In each
6868 case, a <emphasis>structure</emphasis> built checks and balances into
6869 the constitutional frame, structured to prevent otherwise inevitable
6870 concentrations of power.
6871 </para>
6872 <para>
6873 I doubt the framers would recognize the regulation we call <quote>copyright</quote>
6874 today. The scope of that regulation is far beyond anything they ever
6875 considered. To begin to understand what they did, we need to put our
6876 <quote>copyright</quote> in context: We need to see how it has changed in the 210
6877 years since they first struck its design.
6878 </para>
6879 <para>
6880 Some of these changes come from the law: some in light of changes
6881 in technology, and some in light of changes in technology given a
6882 <!-- PAGE BREAK 143 -->
6883 particular concentration of market power. In terms of our model, we
6884 started here:
6885 </para>
6886 <figure id="fig-1441">
6887 <title>Copyright's regulation before the Internet.</title>
6888 <graphic fileref="images/1331.png"></graphic>
6889 </figure>
6890 <para>
6891 We will end here:
6892 </para>
6893 <figure id="fig-1442">
6894 <title><quote>Copyright</quote> today.</title>
6895 <graphic fileref="images/1442.png"></graphic>
6896 </figure>
6897 <para>
6898 Let me explain how.
6899 <!-- PAGE BREAK 144 -->
6900 </para>
6901 </section>
6902 <section id="lawduration">
6903 <title>Law: Duration</title>
6904 <para>
6905 When the first Congress enacted laws to protect creative property, it
6906 faced the same uncertainty about the status of creative property that
6907 the English had confronted in 1774. Many states had passed laws
6908 protecting creative property, and some believed that these laws simply
6909 supplemented common law rights that already protected creative
6910 authorship.<footnote>
6911 <para>
6912 <!-- f8 -->
6913 William W. Crosskey, <citetitle>Politics and the Constitution in the History of
6914 the United States</citetitle> (London: Cambridge University Press, 1953), vol. 1,
6915 485&ndash;86: <quote>extinguish[ing], by plain implication of `the supreme
6916 Law of the Land,' <emphasis>the perpetual rights which authors had, or
6917 were supposed by some to have, under the Common Law</emphasis></quote>
6918 (emphasis added).
6919 <indexterm><primary>Crosskey, William W.</primary></indexterm>
6920 </para></footnote>
6921 This meant that there was no guaranteed public domain in the United
6922 States in 1790. If copyrights were protected by the common law, then
6923 there was no simple way to know whether a work published in the United
6924 States was controlled or free. Just as in England, this lingering
6925 uncertainty would make it hard for publishers to rely upon a public
6926 domain to reprint and distribute works.
6927 </para>
6928 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (1710)</primary></indexterm>
6929 <para>
6930 That uncertainty ended after Congress passed legislation granting
6931 copyrights. Because federal law overrides any contrary state law,
6932 federal protections for copyrighted works displaced any state law
6933 protections. Just as in England the Statute of Anne eventually meant
6934 that the copyrights for all English works expired, a federal statute
6935 meant that any state copyrights expired as well.
6936 </para>
6937 <para>
6938 In 1790, Congress enacted the first copyright law. It created a
6939 federal copyright and secured that copyright for fourteen years. If
6940 the author was alive at the end of that fourteen years, then he could
6941 opt to renew the copyright for another fourteen years. If he did not
6942 renew the copyright, his work passed into the public domain.
6943 </para>
6944 <para>
6945 While there were many works created in the United States in the first
6946 ten years of the Republic, only 5 percent of the works were actually
6947 registered under the federal copyright regime. Of all the work created
6948 in the United States both before 1790 and from 1790 through 1800, 95
6949 percent immediately passed into the public domain; the balance would
6950 pass into the pubic domain within twenty-eight years at most, and more
6951 likely within fourteen years.<footnote><para>
6952 <!-- f9 -->
6953 Although 13,000 titles were published in the United States from 1790
6954 to 1799, only 556 copyright registrations were filed; John Tebbel, <citetitle>A
6955 History of Book Publishing in the United States</citetitle>, vol. 1, <citetitle>The Creation
6956 of an Industry, 1630&ndash;1865</citetitle> (New York: Bowker, 1972), 141. Of the 21,000
6957 imprints recorded before 1790, only twelve were copyrighted under the
6958 1790 act; William J. Maher, <citetitle>Copyright Term, Retrospective Extension
6959 and the Copyright Law of 1790 in Historical Context</citetitle>, 7&ndash;10 (2002),
6960 available at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
6961 #25</ulink>. Thus, the overwhelming majority of works fell
6962 immediately into the public domain. Even those works that were
6963 copyrighted fell into the public domain quickly, because the term of
6964 copyright was short. The initial term of copyright was fourteen years,
6965 with the option of renewal for an additional fourteen years. Copyright
6966 Act of May 31, 1790, §1, 1 stat. 124. </para></footnote>
6967 </para>
6968 <para>
6969 This system of renewal was a crucial part of the American system
6970 of copyright. It assured that the maximum terms of copyright would be
6971 <!-- PAGE BREAK 145 -->
6972 granted only for works where they were wanted. After the initial term
6973 of fourteen years, if it wasn't worth it to an author to renew his
6974 copyright, then it wasn't worth it to society to insist on the
6975 copyright, either.
6976 </para>
6977 <para>
6978 Fourteen years may not seem long to us, but for the vast majority of
6979 copyright owners at that time, it was long enough: Only a small
6980 minority of them renewed their copyright after fourteen years; the
6981 balance allowed their work to pass into the public
6982 domain.<footnote><para>
6983 <!-- f10 -->
6984 Few copyright holders ever chose to renew their copyrights. For
6985 instance, of the 25,006 copyrights registered in 1883, only 894 were
6986 renewed in 1910. For a year-by-year analysis of copyright renewal
6987 rates, see Barbara A. Ringer, <quote>Study No. 31: Renewal of Copyright,</quote>
6988 <citetitle>Studies on Copyright</citetitle>, vol. 1 (New York: Practicing Law Institute,
6989 1963), 618. For a more recent and comprehensive analysis, see William
6990 M. Landes and Richard A. Posner, <quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,</quote>
6991 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review</citetitle> 70 (2003): 471, 498&ndash;501, and
6992 accompanying figures. </para></footnote>
6993 </para>
6994 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>out of print</secondary></indexterm>
6995 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>resales of</secondary></indexterm>
6996 <para>
6997 Even today, this structure would make sense. Most creative work
6998 has an actual commercial life of just a couple of years. Most books fall
6999 out of print after one year.<footnote><para>
7000 <!-- f11 -->
7001 See Ringer, ch. 9, n. 2. </para></footnote> When that happens, the
7002 used books are traded free of copyright regulation. Thus the books are
7003 no longer <emphasis>effectively</emphasis> controlled by
7004 copyright. The only practical commercial use of the books at that time
7005 is to sell the books as used books; that use&mdash;because it does not
7006 involve publication&mdash;is effectively free.
7007 </para>
7008 <para>
7009 In the first hundred years of the Republic, the term of copyright was
7010 changed once. In 1831, the term was increased from a maximum of 28
7011 years to a maximum of 42 by increasing the initial term of copyright
7012 from 14 years to 28 years. In the next fifty years of the Republic,
7013 the term increased once again. In 1909, Congress extended the renewal
7014 term of 14 years to 28 years, setting a maximum term of 56 years.
7015 </para>
7016 <para>
7017 Then, beginning in 1962, Congress started a practice that has defined
7018 copyright law since. Eleven times in the last forty years, Congress
7019 has extended the terms of existing copyrights; twice in those forty
7020 years, Congress extended the term of future copyrights. Initially, the
7021 extensions of existing copyrights were short, a mere one to two years.
7022 In 1976, Congress extended all existing copyrights by nineteen years.
7023 And in 1998, in the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act, Congress
7024 extended the term of existing and future copyrights by twenty years.
7025 </para>
7026 <para>
7027 The effect of these extensions is simply to toll, or delay, the passing
7028 of works into the public domain. This latest extension means that the
7029 public domain will have been tolled for thirty-nine out of fifty-five
7030 years, or 70 percent of the time since 1962. Thus, in the twenty years
7031
7032 <!-- PAGE BREAK 146 -->
7033 after the Sonny Bono Act, while one million patents will pass into the
7034 public domain, zero copyrights will pass into the public domain by virtue
7035 of the expiration of a copyright term.
7036 </para>
7037 <para>
7038 The effect of these extensions has been exacerbated by another,
7039 little-noticed change in the copyright law. Remember I said that the
7040 framers established a two-part copyright regime, requiring a copyright
7041 owner to renew his copyright after an initial term. The requirement of
7042 renewal meant that works that no longer needed copyright protection
7043 would pass more quickly into the public domain. The works remaining
7044 under protection would be those that had some continuing commercial
7045 value.
7046 </para>
7047 <para>
7048 The United States abandoned this sensible system in 1976. For
7049 all works created after 1978, there was only one copyright term&mdash;the
7050 maximum term. For <quote>natural</quote> authors, that term was life plus fifty
7051 years. For corporations, the term was seventy-five years. Then, in 1992,
7052 Congress abandoned the renewal requirement for all works created
7053 before 1978. All works still under copyright would be accorded the
7054 maximum term then available. After the Sonny Bono Act, that term
7055 was ninety-five years.
7056 </para>
7057 <para>
7058 This change meant that American law no longer had an automatic way to
7059 assure that works that were no longer exploited passed into the public
7060 domain. And indeed, after these changes, it is unclear whether it is
7061 even possible to put works into the public domain. The public domain
7062 is orphaned by these changes in copyright law. Despite the requirement
7063 that terms be <quote>limited,</quote> we have no evidence that anything will limit
7064 them.
7065 </para>
7066 <para>
7067 The effect of these changes on the average duration of copyright is
7068 dramatic. In 1973, more than 85 percent of copyright owners failed to
7069 renew their copyright. That meant that the average term of copyright
7070 in 1973 was just 32.2 years. Because of the elimination of the renewal
7071 requirement, the average term of copyright is now the maximum term.
7072 In thirty years, then, the average term has tripled, from 32.2 years to 95
7073 years.<footnote><para>
7074 <!-- f12 -->
7075 These statistics are understated. Between the years 1910 and 1962 (the
7076 first year the renewal term was extended), the average term was never
7077 more than thirty-two years, and averaged thirty years. See Landes and
7078 Posner, <quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,</quote> loc. cit.
7079 </para></footnote>
7080 </para>
7081 <!-- PAGE BREAK 147 -->
7082 </section>
7083 <section id="lawscope">
7084 <title>Law: Scope</title>
7085 <para>
7086 The <quote>scope</quote> of a copyright is the range of rights granted by the law.
7087 The scope of American copyright has changed dramatically. Those
7088 changes are not necessarily bad. But we should understand the extent
7089 of the changes if we're to keep this debate in context.
7090 </para>
7091 <para>
7092 In 1790, that scope was very narrow. Copyright covered only <quote>maps,
7093 charts, and books.</quote> That means it didn't cover, for example, music or
7094 architecture. More significantly, the right granted by a copyright gave
7095 the author the exclusive right to <quote>publish</quote> copyrighted works. That
7096 means someone else violated the copyright only if he republished the
7097 work without the copyright owner's permission. Finally, the right granted
7098 by a copyright was an exclusive right to that particular book. The right
7099 did not extend to what lawyers call <quote>derivative works.</quote> It would not,
7100 therefore, interfere with the right of someone other than the author to
7101 translate a copyrighted book, or to adapt the story to a different form
7102 (such as a drama based on a published book).
7103 </para>
7104 <para>
7105 This, too, has changed dramatically. While the contours of copyright
7106 today are extremely hard to describe simply, in general terms, the
7107 right covers practically any creative work that is reduced to a
7108 tangible form. It covers music as well as architecture, drama as well
7109 as computer programs. It gives the copyright owner of that creative
7110 work not only the exclusive right to <quote>publish</quote> the work, but also the
7111 exclusive right of control over any <quote>copies</quote> of that work. And most
7112 significant for our purposes here, the right gives the copyright owner
7113 control over not only his or her particular work, but also any
7114 <quote>derivative work</quote> that might grow out of the original work. In this
7115 way, the right covers more creative work, protects the creative work
7116 more broadly, and protects works that are based in a significant way
7117 on the initial creative work.
7118 </para>
7119 <para>
7120 At the same time that the scope of copyright has expanded, procedural
7121 limitations on the right have been relaxed. I've already described the
7122 complete removal of the renewal requirement in 1992. In addition
7123 <!-- PAGE BREAK 148 -->
7124 to the renewal requirement, for most of the history of American
7125 copyright law, there was a requirement that a work be registered
7126 before it could receive the protection of a copyright. There was also
7127 a requirement that any copyrighted work be marked either with that
7128 famous &copy; or the word <emphasis>copyright</emphasis>. And for most
7129 of the history of American copyright law, there was a requirement that
7130 works be deposited with the government before a copyright could be
7131 secured.
7132 </para>
7133 <para>
7134 The reason for the registration requirement was the sensible
7135 understanding that for most works, no copyright was required. Again,
7136 in the first ten years of the Republic, 95 percent of works eligible
7137 for copyright were never copyrighted. Thus, the rule reflected the
7138 norm: Most works apparently didn't need copyright, so registration
7139 narrowed the regulation of the law to the few that did. The same
7140 reasoning justified the requirement that a work be marked as
7141 copyrighted&mdash;that way it was easy to know whether a copyright was
7142 being claimed. The requirement that works be deposited was to assure
7143 that after the copyright expired, there would be a copy of the work
7144 somewhere so that it could be copied by others without locating the
7145 original author.
7146 </para>
7147 <para>
7148 All of these <quote>formalities</quote> were abolished in the American system when
7149 we decided to follow European copyright law. There is no requirement
7150 that you register a work to get a copyright; the copyright now is
7151 automatic; the copyright exists whether or not you mark your work with
7152 a &copy;; and the copyright exists whether or not you actually make a
7153 copy available for others to copy.
7154 </para>
7155 <para>
7156 Consider a practical example to understand the scope of these
7157 differences.
7158 </para>
7159 <para>
7160 If, in 1790, you wrote a book and you were one of the 5 percent who
7161 actually copyrighted that book, then the copyright law protected you
7162 against another publisher's taking your book and republishing it
7163 without your permission. The aim of the act was to regulate publishers
7164 so as to prevent that kind of unfair competition. In 1790, there were
7165 174 publishers in the United States.<footnote><para>
7166 <!-- f13 -->
7167 See Thomas Bender and David Sampliner, <quote>Poets, Pirates, and the
7168 Creation of American Literature,</quote> 29 <citetitle>New York University Journal of
7169 International Law and Politics</citetitle> 255 (1997), and James Gilraeth, ed.,
7170 Federal Copyright Records, 1790&ndash;1800 (U.S. G.P.O., 1987).
7171
7172 </para></footnote>
7173 The Copyright Act was thus a tiny
7174 regulation of a tiny proportion of a tiny part of the creative market in
7175 the United States&mdash;publishers.
7176 </para>
7177 <para>
7178 <!-- PAGE BREAK 149 -->
7179 The act left other creators totally unregulated. If I copied your poem
7180 by hand, over and over again, as a way to learn it by heart, my act
7181 was totally unregulated by the 1790 act. If I took your novel and made
7182 a play based upon it, or if I translated it or abridged it, none of
7183 those activities were regulated by the original copyright act. These
7184 creative activities remained free, while the activities of publishers
7185 were restrained.
7186 </para>
7187 <para>
7188 Today the story is very different: If you write a book, your book is
7189 automatically protected. Indeed, not just your book. Every e-mail,
7190 every note to your spouse, every doodle, <emphasis>every</emphasis>
7191 creative act that's reduced to a tangible form&mdash;all of this is
7192 automatically copyrighted. There is no need to register or mark your
7193 work. The protection follows the creation, not the steps you take to
7194 protect it.
7195 </para>
7196 <para>
7197 That protection gives you the right (subject to a narrow range of
7198 fair use exceptions) to control how others copy the work, whether they
7199 copy it to republish it or to share an excerpt.
7200 </para>
7201 <para>
7202 That much is the obvious part. Any system of copyright would
7203 control
7204 competing publishing. But there's a second part to the copyright of
7205 today that is not at all obvious. This is the protection of <quote>derivative
7206 rights.</quote> If you write a book, no one can make a movie out of your
7207 book without permission. No one can translate it without permission.
7208 CliffsNotes can't make an abridgment unless permission is granted. All
7209 of these derivative uses of your original work are controlled by the
7210 copyright holder. The copyright, in other words, is now not just an
7211 exclusive
7212 right to your writings, but an exclusive right to your writings
7213 and a large proportion of the writings inspired by them.
7214 </para>
7215 <para>
7216 It is this derivative right that would seem most bizarre to our
7217 framers, though it has become second nature to us. Initially, this
7218 expansion
7219 was created to deal with obvious evasions of a narrower
7220 copyright.
7221 If I write a book, can you change one word and then claim a
7222 copyright in a new and different book? Obviously that would make a
7223 joke of the copyright, so the law was properly expanded to include
7224 those slight modifications as well as the verbatim original work.
7225 </para>
7226 <para>
7227 <!-- PAGE BREAK 150 -->
7228 In preventing that joke, the law created an astonishing power
7229 within a free culture&mdash;at least, it's astonishing when you
7230 understand that the law applies not just to the commercial publisher
7231 but to anyone with a computer. I understand the wrong in duplicating
7232 and selling someone else's work. But whatever
7233 <emphasis>that</emphasis> wrong is, transforming someone else's work
7234 is a different wrong. Some view transformation as no wrong at
7235 all&mdash;they believe that our law, as the framers penned it, should
7236 not protect derivative rights at all.<footnote><para>
7237 <!-- f14 -->
7238 Jonathan Zittrain, <quote>The Copyright Cage,</quote> <citetitle>Legal
7239 Affairs</citetitle>, July/August 2003, available at
7240 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #26</ulink>.
7241 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan</primary></indexterm>
7242 </para></footnote>
7243 Whether or not you go that far, it seems
7244 plain that whatever wrong is involved is fundamentally different from
7245 the wrong of direct piracy.
7246 </para>
7247 <para>
7248 Yet copyright law treats these two different wrongs in the same way. I
7249 can go to court and get an injunction against your pirating my book. I
7250 can go to court and get an injunction against your transformative use
7251 of my book.<footnote><para>
7252 <!-- f15 -->
7253 Professor Rubenfeld has presented a powerful constitutional argument
7254 about the difference that copyright law should draw (from the
7255 perspective of the First Amendment) between mere <quote>copies</quote> and
7256 derivative works. See Jed Rubenfeld, <quote>The Freedom of Imagination:
7257 Copyright's Constitutionality,</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
7258 Journal</citetitle> 112 (2002): 1&ndash;60 (see especially
7259 pp. 53&ndash;59).
7260 <indexterm><primary>Rubenfeld, Jeb</primary></indexterm>
7261 </para></footnote>
7262 These two different uses of my creative work are treated the same.
7263 </para>
7264 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
7265 <indexterm><primary>Mickey Mouse</primary></indexterm>
7266 <para>
7267 This again may seem right to you. If I wrote a book, then why should
7268 you be able to write a movie that takes my story and makes money from
7269 it without paying me or crediting me? Or if Disney creates a creature
7270 called <quote>Mickey Mouse,</quote> why should you be able to make Mickey Mouse
7271 toys and be the one to trade on the value that Disney originally
7272 created?
7273 </para>
7274 <para>
7275 These are good arguments, and, in general, my point is not that the
7276 derivative right is unjustified. My aim just now is much narrower:
7277 simply to make clear that this expansion is a significant change from
7278 the rights originally granted.
7279 </para>
7280 </section>
7281 <section id="lawreach">
7282 <title>Law and Architecture: Reach</title>
7283 <para>
7284 Whereas originally the law regulated only publishers, the change in
7285 copyright's scope means that the law today regulates publishers, users,
7286 and authors. It regulates them because all three are capable of making
7287 copies, and the core of the regulation of copyright law is copies.<footnote><para>
7288 <!-- f16 -->
7289 This is a simplification of the law, but not much of one. The law
7290 certainly regulates more than <quote>copies</quote>&mdash;a public performance of a
7291 copyrighted song, for example, is regulated even though performance
7292 per se doesn't make a copy; 17 <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>, section
7293 106(4). And it certainly sometimes doesn't regulate a <quote>copy</quote>; 17
7294 <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>, section 112(a). But the presumption under the
7295 existing law (which regulates <quote>copies;</quote> 17 <citetitle>United States Code</citetitle>, section
7296 102) is that if there is a copy, there is a right.
7297 </para></footnote>
7298 </para>
7299 <para>
7300 <!-- PAGE BREAK 151 -->
7301 <quote>Copies.</quote> That certainly sounds like the obvious thing for
7302 <emphasis>copy</emphasis>right law to regulate. But as with Jack
7303 Valenti's argument at the start of this chapter, that <quote>creative
7304 property</quote> deserves the <quote>same rights</quote> as all other property, it is the
7305 <emphasis>obvious</emphasis> that we need to be most careful
7306 about. For while it may be obvious that in the world before the
7307 Internet, copies were the obvious trigger for copyright law, upon
7308 reflection, it should be obvious that in the world with the Internet,
7309 copies should <emphasis>not</emphasis> be the trigger for copyright
7310 law. More precisely, they should not <emphasis>always</emphasis> be
7311 the trigger for copyright law.
7312 </para>
7313 <para>
7314 This is perhaps the central claim of this book, so let me take this
7315 very slowly so that the point is not easily missed. My claim is that the
7316 Internet should at least force us to rethink the conditions under which
7317 the law of copyright automatically applies,<footnote><para>
7318 <!-- f17 -->
7319 Thus, my argument is not that in each place that copyright law
7320 extends, we should repeal it. It is instead that we should have a good
7321 argument for its extending where it does, and should not determine its
7322 reach on the basis of arbitrary and automatic changes caused by
7323 technology.
7324 </para></footnote>
7325 because it is clear that the
7326 current reach of copyright was never contemplated, much less chosen,
7327 by the legislators who enacted copyright law.
7328 </para>
7329 <para>
7330 We can see this point abstractly by beginning with this largely
7331 empty circle.
7332 </para>
7333 <figure id="fig-1521">
7334 <title>All potential uses of a book.</title>
7335 <graphic fileref="images/1521.png"></graphic>
7336 </figure>
7337 <indexterm id='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='startofrange'><primary>books</primary><secondary>three types of uses of</secondary></indexterm>
7338 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of</secondary></indexterm>
7339 <indexterm id='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='startofrange'><primary>Internet</primary><secondary>copyright applicability altered by technology of</secondary></indexterm>
7340 <indexterm id='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='startofrange'><primary>technology</primary><secondary>copyright intent altered by</secondary></indexterm>
7341 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='startofrange'><primary>derivative works</primary><secondary>piracy vs.</secondary></indexterm>
7342 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='startofrange'><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.</secondary></indexterm>
7343 <para>
7344 <!-- PAGE BREAK 152 -->
7345 Think about a book in real space, and imagine this circle to represent
7346 all its potential <emphasis>uses</emphasis>. Most of these uses are
7347 unregulated by copyright law, because the uses don't create a copy. If
7348 you read a book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If you
7349 give someone the book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If
7350 you resell a book, that act is not regulated (copyright law expressly
7351 states that after the first sale of a book, the copyright owner can
7352 impose no further conditions on the disposition of the book). If you
7353 sleep on the book or use it to hold up a lamp or let your puppy chew
7354 it up, those acts are not regulated by copyright law, because those
7355 acts do not make a copy.
7356 </para>
7357 <figure id="fig-1531">
7358 <title>Examples of unregulated uses of a book.</title>
7359 <graphic fileref="images/1531.png"></graphic>
7360 </figure>
7361 <para>
7362 Obviously, however, some uses of a copyrighted book are regulated
7363 by copyright law. Republishing the book, for example, makes a copy. It
7364 is therefore regulated by copyright law. Indeed, this particular use stands
7365 at the core of this circle of possible uses of a copyrighted work. It is the
7366 paradigmatic use properly regulated by copyright regulation (see first
7367 diagram on next page).
7368 </para>
7369 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='endofrange'/>
7370 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='endofrange'/>
7371 <para>
7372 Finally, there is a tiny sliver of otherwise regulated copying uses
7373 that remain unregulated because the law considers these <quote>fair uses.</quote>
7374 </para>
7375 <!-- PAGE BREAK 153 -->
7376 <figure id="fig-1541">
7377 <title>Republishing stands at the core of this circle of possible uses of a copyrighted work.</title>
7378 <graphic fileref="images/1541.png"></graphic>
7379 </figure>
7380 <para>
7381 These are uses that themselves involve copying, but which the law
7382 treats as unregulated because public policy demands that they remain
7383 unregulated. You are free to quote from this book, even in a review
7384 that is quite negative, without my permission, even though that
7385 quoting makes a copy. That copy would ordinarily give the copyright
7386 owner the exclusive right to say whether the copy is allowed or not,
7387 but the law denies the owner any exclusive right over such <quote>fair uses</quote>
7388 for public policy (and possibly First Amendment) reasons.
7389 </para>
7390 <figure id="fig-1542">
7391 <title>Unregulated copying considered <quote>fair uses.</quote></title>
7392 <graphic fileref="images/1542.png"></graphic>
7393 </figure>
7394 <para> </para>
7395 <figure id="fig-1551">
7396 <title>Uses that before were presumptively unregulated are now presumptively regulated.</title>
7397 <graphic fileref="images/1551.png"></graphic>
7398 </figure>
7399 <para>
7400 <!-- PAGE BREAK 154 -->
7401 In real space, then, the possible uses of a book are divided into three
7402 sorts: (1) unregulated uses, (2) regulated uses, and (3) regulated uses that
7403 are nonetheless deemed <quote>fair</quote> regardless of the copyright owner's views.
7404 </para>
7405 <indexterm startref='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='endofrange'/>
7406 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>on Internet</secondary></indexterm>
7407 <para>
7408 Enter the Internet&mdash;a distributed, digital network where every use
7409 of a copyrighted work produces a copy.<footnote><para>
7410 <!-- f18 -->
7411 I don't mean <quote>nature</quote> in the sense that it couldn't be different, but
7412 rather that its present instantiation entails a copy. Optical networks
7413 need not make copies of content they transmit, and a digital network
7414 could be designed to delete anything it copies so that the same number
7415 of copies remain.
7416 </para></footnote>
7417 And because of this single, arbitrary feature of the design of a
7418 digital network, the scope of category 1 changes dramatically. Uses
7419 that before were presumptively unregulated are now presumptively
7420 regulated. No longer is there a set of presumptively unregulated uses
7421 that define a freedom associated with a copyrighted work. Instead,
7422 each use is now subject to the copyright, because each use also makes
7423 a copy&mdash;category 1 gets sucked into category 2. And those who
7424 would defend the unregulated uses of copyrighted work must look
7425 exclusively to category 3, fair uses, to bear the burden of this
7426 shift.
7427 </para>
7428 <para>
7429 So let's be very specific to make this general point clear. Before the
7430 Internet, if you purchased a book and read it ten times, there would
7431 be no plausible <emphasis>copyright</emphasis>-related argument that
7432 the copyright owner could make to control that use of her
7433 book. Copyright law would have nothing to say about whether you read
7434 the book once, ten times, or every
7435 <!-- PAGE BREAK 155 -->
7436 night before you went to bed. None of those instances of
7437 use&mdash;reading&mdash; could be regulated by copyright law because
7438 none of those uses produced a copy.
7439 </para>
7440 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>on Internet</secondary></indexterm>
7441 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='startofrange'><primary>derivative works</primary><secondary>technological developments and</secondary></indexterm>
7442 <para>
7443 But the same book as an e-book is effectively governed by a different
7444 set of rules. Now if the copyright owner says you may read the book
7445 only once or only once a month, then <emphasis>copyright
7446 law</emphasis> would aid the copyright owner in exercising this degree
7447 of control, because of the accidental feature of copyright law that
7448 triggers its application upon there being a copy. Now if you read the
7449 book ten times and the license says you may read it only five times,
7450 then whenever you read the book (or any portion of it) beyond the
7451 fifth time, you are making a copy of the book contrary to the
7452 copyright owner's wish.
7453 </para>
7454 <para>
7455 There are some people who think this makes perfect sense. My aim
7456 just now is not to argue about whether it makes sense or not. My aim
7457 is only to make clear the change. Once you see this point, a few other
7458 points also become clear:
7459 </para>
7460 <para>
7461 First, making category 1 disappear is not anything any policy maker
7462 ever intended. Congress did not think through the collapse of the
7463 presumptively unregulated uses of copyrighted works. There is no
7464 evidence at all that policy makers had this idea in mind when they
7465 allowed our policy here to shift. Unregulated uses were an important
7466 part of free culture before the Internet.
7467 </para>
7468 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='startofrange'><primary>copyright law</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work</secondary></indexterm>
7469 <para>
7470 Second, this shift is especially troubling in the context of
7471 transformative uses of creative content. Again, we can all understand
7472 the wrong in commercial piracy. But the law now purports to regulate
7473 <emphasis>any</emphasis> transformation you make of creative work
7474 using a machine. <quote>Copy and paste</quote> and <quote>cut and paste</quote> become
7475 crimes. Tinkering with a story and releasing it to others exposes the
7476 tinkerer to at least a requirement of justification. However
7477 troubling the expansion with respect to copying a particular work, it
7478 is extraordinarily troubling with respect to transformative uses of
7479 creative work.
7480 </para>
7481 <para>
7482 Third, this shift from category 1 to category 2 puts an extraordinary
7483
7484 <!-- PAGE BREAK 156 -->
7485 burden on category 3 (<quote>fair use</quote>) that fair use never before had to
7486 bear. If a copyright owner now tried to control how many times I
7487 could read a book on-line, the natural response would be to argue that
7488 this is a violation of my fair use rights. But there has never been
7489 any litigation about whether I have a fair use right to read, because
7490 before the Internet, reading did not trigger the application of
7491 copyright law and hence the need for a fair use defense. The right to
7492 read was effectively protected before because reading was not
7493 regulated.
7494 </para>
7495 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='endofrange'/>
7496 <indexterm startref='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='endofrange'/>
7497 <indexterm startref='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='endofrange'/>
7498 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='endofrange'/>
7499 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='endofrange'/>
7500 <para>
7501 This point about fair use is totally ignored, even by advocates for
7502 free culture. We have been cornered into arguing that our rights
7503 depend upon fair use&mdash;never even addressing the earlier question
7504 about the expansion in effective regulation. A thin protection
7505 grounded in fair use makes sense when the vast majority of uses are
7506 <emphasis>unregulated</emphasis>. But when everything becomes
7507 presumptively regulated, then the protections of fair use are not
7508 enough.
7509 </para>
7510 <indexterm id='idxadvertising2' class='startofrange'><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
7511 <para>
7512 The case of Video Pipeline is a good example. Video Pipeline was
7513 in the business of making <quote>trailer</quote> advertisements for movies available
7514 to video stores. The video stores displayed the trailers as a way to sell
7515 videos. Video Pipeline got the trailers from the film distributors, put
7516 the trailers on tape, and sold the tapes to the retail stores.
7517 </para>
7518 <indexterm><primary>browsing</primary></indexterm>
7519 <para>
7520 The company did this for about fifteen years. Then, in 1997, it began
7521 to think about the Internet as another way to distribute these
7522 previews. The idea was to expand their <quote>selling by sampling</quote>
7523 technique by giving on-line stores the same ability to enable
7524 <quote>browsing.</quote> Just as in a bookstore you can read a few pages of a book
7525 before you buy the book, so, too, you would be able to sample a bit
7526 from the movie on-line before you bought it.
7527 </para>
7528 <para>
7529 In 1998, Video Pipeline informed Disney and other film distributors
7530 that it intended to distribute the trailers through the Internet
7531 (rather than sending the tapes) to distributors of their videos. Two
7532 years later, Disney told Video Pipeline to stop. The owner of Video
7533 <!-- PAGE BREAK 157 -->
7534 Pipeline asked Disney to talk about the matter&mdash;he had built a
7535 business on distributing this content as a way to help sell Disney
7536 films; he had customers who depended upon his delivering this
7537 content. Disney would agree to talk only if Video Pipeline stopped the
7538 distribution immediately. Video Pipeline thought it was within their
7539 <quote>fair use</quote> rights to distribute the clips as they had. So they filed a
7540 lawsuit to ask the court to declare that these rights were in fact
7541 their rights.
7542 </para>
7543 <para>
7544 Disney countersued&mdash;for $100 million in damages. Those damages
7545 were predicated upon a claim that Video Pipeline had <quote>willfully
7546 infringed</quote> on Disney's copyright. When a court makes a finding of
7547 willful infringement, it can award damages not on the basis of the
7548 actual harm to the copyright owner, but on the basis of an amount set
7549 in the statute. Because Video Pipeline had distributed seven hundred
7550 clips of Disney movies to enable video stores to sell copies of those
7551 movies, Disney was now suing Video Pipeline for $100 million.
7552 </para>
7553 <para>
7554 Disney has the right to control its property, of course. But the video
7555 stores that were selling Disney's films also had some sort of right to be
7556 able to sell the films that they had bought from Disney. Disney's claim
7557 in court was that the stores were allowed to sell the films and they were
7558 permitted to list the titles of the films they were selling, but they were
7559 not allowed to show clips of the films as a way of selling them without
7560 Disney's permission.
7561 </para>
7562 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising2' class='endofrange'/>
7563 <para>
7564 Now, you might think this is a close case, and I think the courts
7565 would consider it a close case. My point here is to map the change
7566 that gives Disney this power. Before the Internet, Disney couldn't
7567 really control how people got access to their content. Once a video
7568 was in the marketplace, the <quote>first-sale doctrine</quote> would free the
7569 seller to use the video as he wished, including showing portions of it
7570 in order to engender sales of the entire movie video. But with the
7571 Internet, it becomes possible for Disney to centralize control over
7572 access to this content. Because each use of the Internet produces a
7573 copy, use on the Internet becomes subject to the copyright owner's
7574 control. The technology expands the scope of effective control,
7575 because the technology builds a copy into every transaction.
7576 </para>
7577 <indexterm><primary>Barnes &amp; Noble</primary></indexterm>
7578 <indexterm><primary>browsing</primary></indexterm>
7579 <para>
7580 <!-- PAGE BREAK 158 -->
7581 No doubt, a potential is not yet an abuse, and so the potential for
7582 control is not yet the abuse of control. Barnes &amp; Noble has the
7583 right to say you can't touch a book in their store; property law gives
7584 them that right. But the market effectively protects against that
7585 abuse. If Barnes &amp; Noble banned browsing, then consumers would
7586 choose other bookstores. Competition protects against the
7587 extremes. And it may well be (my argument so far does not even
7588 question this) that competition would prevent any similar danger when
7589 it comes to copyright. Sure, publishers exercising the rights that
7590 authors have assigned to them might try to regulate how many times you
7591 read a book, or try to stop you from sharing the book with anyone. But
7592 in a competitive market such as the book market, the dangers of this
7593 happening are quite slight.
7594 </para>
7595 <para>
7596 Again, my aim so far is simply to map the changes that this changed
7597 architecture enables. Enabling technology to enforce the control of
7598 copyright means that the control of copyright is no longer defined by
7599 balanced policy. The control of copyright is simply what private
7600 owners choose. In some contexts, at least, that fact is harmless. But
7601 in some contexts it is a recipe for disaster.
7602 </para>
7603 </section>
7604 <section id="lawforce">
7605 <title>Architecture and Law: Force</title>
7606 <para>
7607 The disappearance of unregulated uses would be change enough, but a
7608 second important change brought about by the Internet magnifies its
7609 significance. This second change does not affect the reach of copyright
7610 regulation; it affects how such regulation is enforced.
7611 </para>
7612 <para>
7613 In the world before digital technology, it was generally the law that
7614 controlled whether and how someone was regulated by copyright law.
7615 The law, meaning a court, meaning a judge: In the end, it was a human,
7616 trained in the tradition of the law and cognizant of the balances that
7617 tradition embraced, who said whether and how the law would restrict
7618 your freedom.
7619 </para>
7620 <indexterm><primary>Casablanca</primary></indexterm>
7621 <indexterm id="idxmarxbrothers" class='startofrange'><primary>Marx Brothers</primary></indexterm>
7622 <indexterm id="idxwarnerbrothers" class='startofrange'><primary>Warner Brothers</primary></indexterm>
7623 <para>
7624 There's a famous story about a battle between the Marx Brothers
7625 and Warner Brothers. The Marxes intended to make a parody of
7626 <!-- PAGE BREAK 159 -->
7627 <citetitle>Casablanca</citetitle>. Warner Brothers objected. They
7628 wrote a nasty letter to the Marxes, warning them that there would be
7629 serious legal consequences if they went forward with their
7630 plan.<footnote><para>
7631 <!-- f19 -->
7632 See David Lange, <quote>Recognizing the Public Domain,</quote> <citetitle>Law and
7633 Contemporary Problems</citetitle> 44 (1981): 172&ndash;73.
7634 </para></footnote>
7635 </para>
7636 <para>
7637 This led the Marx Brothers to respond in kind. They warned
7638 Warner Brothers that the Marx Brothers <quote>were brothers long before
7639 you were.</quote><footnote><para>
7640 <!-- f20 -->
7641 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
7642 Ibid. See also Vaidhyanathan, <citetitle>Copyrights and
7643 Copywrongs</citetitle>, 1&ndash;3.
7644 </para></footnote>
7645 The Marx Brothers therefore owned the word
7646 <citetitle>brothers</citetitle>, and if Warner Brothers insisted on
7647 trying to control <citetitle>Casablanca</citetitle>, then the Marx
7648 Brothers would insist on control over <citetitle>brothers</citetitle>.
7649 </para>
7650 <para>
7651 An absurd and hollow threat, of course, because Warner Brothers,
7652 like the Marx Brothers, knew that no court would ever enforce such a
7653 silly claim. This extremism was irrelevant to the real freedoms anyone
7654 (including Warner Brothers) enjoyed.
7655 </para>
7656 <indexterm id='idxbooksoninternet' class='startofrange'><primary>books</primary><secondary>on Internet</secondary></indexterm>
7657 <para>
7658 On the Internet, however, there is no check on silly rules, because on
7659 the Internet, increasingly, rules are enforced not by a human but by a
7660 machine: Increasingly, the rules of copyright law, as interpreted by
7661 the copyright owner, get built into the technology that delivers
7662 copyrighted content. It is code, rather than law, that rules. And the
7663 problem with code regulations is that, unlike law, code has no
7664 shame. Code would not get the humor of the Marx Brothers. The
7665 consequence of that is not at all funny.
7666 </para>
7667 <indexterm startref="idxwarnerbrothers" class='endofrange'/>
7668 <indexterm startref="idxmarxbrothers" class='endofrange'/>
7669
7670 <indexterm id="idxadobeebookreader" class='startofrange'><primary>Adobe eBook Reader</primary></indexterm>
7671 <para>
7672 Consider the life of my Adobe eBook Reader.
7673 </para>
7674 <para>
7675 An e-book is a book delivered in electronic form. An Adobe eBook is
7676 not a book that Adobe has published; Adobe simply produces the
7677 software that publishers use to deliver e-books. It provides the
7678 technology, and the publisher delivers the content by using the
7679 technology.
7680 </para>
7681 <para>
7682 On the next page is a picture of an old version of my Adobe eBook
7683 Reader.
7684 </para>
7685 <para>
7686 As you can see, I have a small collection of e-books within this
7687 e-book library. Some of these books reproduce content that is in the
7688 public domain: <citetitle>Middlemarch</citetitle>, for example, is in
7689 the public domain. Some of them reproduce content that is not in the
7690 public domain: My own book <citetitle>The Future of Ideas</citetitle>
7691 is not yet within the public domain. Consider
7692 <citetitle>Middlemarch</citetitle> first. If you click on my e-book
7693 copy of
7694 <!-- PAGE BREAK 160 -->
7695 <citetitle>Middlemarch</citetitle>, you'll see a fancy cover, and then
7696 a button at the bottom called Permissions.
7697 </para>
7698 <figure id="fig-1611">
7699 <title>Picture of an old version of Adobe eBook Reader</title>
7700 <graphic fileref="images/1611.png"></graphic>
7701 </figure>
7702 <para>
7703 If you click on the Permissions button, you'll see a list of the
7704 permissions that the publisher purports to grant with this book.
7705 </para>
7706 <figure id="fig-1612">
7707 <title>List of the permissions that the publisher purports to grant.</title>
7708 <graphic fileref="images/1612.png"></graphic>
7709 </figure>
7710 <para>
7711 <!-- PAGE BREAK 161 -->
7712 According to my eBook Reader, I have the permission to copy to the
7713 clipboard of the computer ten text selections every ten days. (So far,
7714 I've copied no text to the clipboard.) I also have the permission to
7715 print ten pages from the book every ten days. Lastly, I have the
7716 permission to use the Read Aloud button to hear <citetitle>Middlemarch</citetitle>
7717 read aloud through the computer.
7718 </para>
7719 <indexterm><primary>Aristotle</primary></indexterm>
7720 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Politics</citetitle>, (Aristotle)</primary></indexterm>
7721 <para>
7722 Here's the e-book for another work in the public domain (including the
7723 translation): Aristotle's <citetitle>Politics</citetitle>.
7724 </para>
7725 <figure id="fig-1621">
7726 <title>E-book of Aristotle;s <quote>Politics</quote></title>
7727 <graphic fileref="images/1621.png"></graphic>
7728 </figure>
7729 <para>
7730 According to its permissions, no printing or copying is permitted
7731 at all. But fortunately, you can use the Read Aloud button to hear
7732 the book.
7733 </para>
7734 <figure id="fig-1622">
7735 <title>List of the permissions for Aristotle;s <quote>Politics</quote>.</title>
7736 <graphic fileref="images/1622.png"></graphic>
7737 </figure>
7738 <indexterm><primary>Future of Ideas, The (Lessig)</primary></indexterm>
7739 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence</primary></indexterm>
7740 <para>
7741 Finally (and most embarrassingly), here are the permissions for the
7742 original e-book version of my last book, <citetitle>The Future of
7743 Ideas</citetitle>:
7744 </para>
7745 <!-- PAGE BREAK 162 -->
7746 <figure id="fig-1631">
7747 <title>List of the permissions for <quote>The Future of Ideas</quote>.</title>
7748 <graphic fileref="images/1631.png"></graphic>
7749 </figure>
7750 <para>
7751 No copying, no printing, and don't you dare try to listen to this book!
7752 </para>
7753 <para>
7754 Now, the Adobe eBook Reader calls these controls
7755 <quote>permissions</quote>&mdash; as if the publisher has the power to control how
7756 you use these works. For works under copyright, the copyright owner
7757 certainly does have the power&mdash;up to the limits of the copyright
7758 law. But for work not under copyright, there is no such copyright
7759 power.<footnote><para>
7760 <!-- f21 -->
7761 In principle, a contract might impose a requirement on me. I might,
7762 for example, buy a book from you that includes a contract that says I
7763 will read it only three times, or that I promise to read it three
7764 times. But that obligation (and the limits for creating that
7765 obligation) would come from the contract, not from copyright law, and
7766 the obligations of contract would not necessarily pass to anyone who
7767 subsequently acquired the book.
7768 </para></footnote>
7769 When my e-book of <citetitle>Middlemarch</citetitle> says I have the
7770 permission to copy only ten text selections into the memory every ten
7771 days, what that really means is that the eBook Reader has enabled the
7772 publisher to control how I use the book on my computer, far beyond the
7773 control that the law would enable.
7774 </para>
7775 <para>
7776 The control comes instead from the code&mdash;from the technology
7777 within which the e-book <quote>lives.</quote> Though the e-book says that these are
7778 permissions, they are not the sort of <quote>permissions</quote> that most of us
7779 deal with. When a teenager gets <quote>permission</quote> to stay out till
7780 midnight, she knows (unless she's Cinderella) that she can stay out
7781 till 2 A.M., but will suffer a punishment if she's caught. But when
7782 the Adobe eBook Reader says I have the permission to make ten copies
7783 of the text into the computer's memory, that means that after I've
7784 made ten copies, the computer will not make any more. The same with
7785 the printing restrictions: After ten pages, the eBook Reader will not
7786 print any more pages. It's the same with the silly restriction that
7787 says that you can't use the Read Aloud button to read my book
7788 aloud&mdash;it's not that the company will sue you if you do; instead,
7789 if you push the Read Aloud button with my book, the machine simply
7790 won't read aloud.
7791 </para>
7792 <indexterm><primary>Marx Brothers</primary></indexterm>
7793 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers</primary></indexterm>
7794 <para>
7795 <!-- PAGE BREAK 163 -->
7796 These are <emphasis>controls</emphasis>, not permissions. Imagine a
7797 world where the Marx Brothers sold word processing software that, when
7798 you tried to type <quote>Warner Brothers,</quote> erased <quote>Brothers</quote> from the
7799 sentence.
7800 </para>
7801 <para>
7802 This is the future of copyright law: not so much copyright
7803 <emphasis>law</emphasis> as copyright <emphasis>code</emphasis>. The
7804 controls over access to content will not be controls that are ratified
7805 by courts; the controls over access to content will be controls that
7806 are coded by programmers. And whereas the controls that are built into
7807 the law are always to be checked by a judge, the controls that are
7808 built into the technology have no similar built-in check.
7809 </para>
7810 <para>
7811 How significant is this? Isn't it always possible to get around the
7812 controls built into the technology? Software used to be sold with
7813 technologies that limited the ability of users to copy the software,
7814 but those were trivial protections to defeat. Why won't it be trivial
7815 to defeat these protections as well?
7816 </para>
7817 <para>
7818 We've only scratched the surface of this story. Return to the Adobe
7819 eBook Reader.
7820 </para>
7821 <indexterm id='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='startofrange'><primary>Alice's Adventures in Wonderland (Carroll)</primary></indexterm>
7822 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='startofrange'><primary>public domain</primary><secondary>e-book restrictions on</secondary></indexterm>
7823 <para>
7824 Early in the life of the Adobe eBook Reader, Adobe suffered a public
7825 relations nightmare. Among the books that you could download for free
7826 on the Adobe site was a copy of <citetitle>Alice's Adventures in
7827 Wonderland</citetitle>. This wonderful book is in the public
7828 domain. Yet when you clicked on Permissions for that book, you got the
7829 following report:
7830 </para>
7831 <figure id="fig-1641">
7832 <title>List of the permissions for <quote>Alice's Adventures in
7833 Wonderland</quote>.</title>
7834 <graphic fileref="images/1641.png"></graphic>
7835 </figure>
7836 <beginpage pagenum="164"/>
7837 <para>
7838 Here was a public domain children's book that you were not allowed to
7839 copy, not allowed to lend, not allowed to give, and, as the
7840 <quote>permissions</quote> indicated, not allowed to <quote>read aloud</quote>!
7841 </para>
7842 <para>
7843 The public relations nightmare attached to that final permission.
7844 For the text did not say that you were not permitted to use the Read
7845 Aloud button; it said you did not have the permission to read the book
7846 aloud. That led some people to think that Adobe was restricting the
7847 right of parents, for example, to read the book to their children, which
7848 seemed, to say the least, absurd.
7849 </para>
7850 <para>
7851 Adobe responded quickly that it was absurd to think that it was trying
7852 to restrict the right to read a book aloud. Obviously it was only
7853 restricting the ability to use the Read Aloud button to have the book
7854 read aloud. But the question Adobe never did answer is this: Would
7855 Adobe thus agree that a consumer was free to use software to hack
7856 around the restrictions built into the eBook Reader? If some company
7857 (call it Elcomsoft) developed a program to disable the technological
7858 protection built into an Adobe eBook so that a blind person, say,
7859 could use a computer to read the book aloud, would Adobe agree that
7860 such a use of an eBook Reader was fair? Adobe didn't answer because
7861 the answer, however absurd it might seem, is no.
7862 </para>
7863 <indexterm startref='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='endofrange'/>
7864 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='endofrange'/>
7865 <para>
7866 The point is not to blame Adobe. Indeed, Adobe is among the most
7867 innovative companies developing strategies to balance open access to
7868 content with incentives for companies to innovate. But Adobe's
7869 technology enables control, and Adobe has an incentive to defend this
7870 control. That incentive is understandable, yet what it creates is
7871 often crazy.
7872 </para>
7873 <indexterm startref="idxadobeebookreader" class='endofrange'/>
7874 <indexterm startref='idxbooksoninternet' class='endofrange'/>
7875 <para>
7876 To see the point in a particularly absurd context, consider a favorite
7877 story of mine that makes the same point.
7878 </para>
7879 <indexterm id="idxaibo1" class='startofrange'><primary>Aibo robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
7880 <indexterm id="idxroboticdog1" class='startofrange'><primary>robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
7881 <indexterm id="idxsonyaibo1" class='startofrange'><primary>Sony</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by</secondary></indexterm>
7882 <para>
7883 Consider the robotic dog made by Sony named <quote>Aibo.</quote> The Aibo
7884 learns tricks, cuddles, and follows you around. It eats only electricity
7885 and that doesn't leave that much of a mess (at least in your house).
7886 </para>
7887 <para>
7888 The Aibo is expensive and popular. Fans from around the world
7889 have set up clubs to trade stories. One fan in particular set up a Web
7890 site to enable information about the Aibo dog to be shared. This fan set
7891 <!-- PAGE BREAK 165-->
7892 up aibopet.com (and aibohack.com, but that resolves to the same site),
7893 and on that site he provided information about how to teach an Aibo
7894 to do tricks in addition to the ones Sony had taught it.
7895 </para>
7896 <para>
7897 <quote>Teach</quote> here has a special meaning. Aibos are just cute computers.
7898 You teach a computer how to do something by programming it
7899 differently. So to say that aibopet.com was giving information about
7900 how to teach the dog to do new tricks is just to say that aibopet.com
7901 was giving information to users of the Aibo pet about how to hack
7902 their computer <quote>dog</quote> to make it do new tricks (thus, aibohack.com).
7903 </para>
7904 <indexterm><primary>hacks</primary></indexterm>
7905 <para>
7906 If you're not a programmer or don't know many programmers, the word
7907 <citetitle>hack</citetitle> has a particularly unfriendly
7908 connotation. Nonprogrammers hack bushes or weeds. Nonprogrammers in
7909 horror movies do even worse. But to programmers, or coders, as I call
7910 them, <citetitle>hack</citetitle> is a much more positive
7911 term. <citetitle>Hack</citetitle> just means code that enables the
7912 program to do something it wasn't originally intended or enabled to
7913 do. If you buy a new printer for an old computer, you might find the
7914 old computer doesn't run, or <quote>drive,</quote> the printer. If you discovered
7915 that, you'd later be happy to discover a hack on the Net by someone
7916 who has written a driver to enable the computer to drive the printer
7917 you just bought.
7918 </para>
7919 <para>
7920 Some hacks are easy. Some are unbelievably hard. Hackers as a
7921 community like to challenge themselves and others with increasingly
7922 difficult tasks. There's a certain respect that goes with the talent to hack
7923 well. There's a well-deserved respect that goes with the talent to hack
7924 ethically.
7925 </para>
7926 <para>
7927 The Aibo fan was displaying a bit of both when he hacked the program
7928 and offered to the world a bit of code that would enable the Aibo to
7929 dance jazz. The dog wasn't programmed to dance jazz. It was a clever
7930 bit of tinkering that turned the dog into a more talented creature
7931 than Sony had built.
7932 </para>
7933 <indexterm startref="idxsonyaibo1" class='endofrange'/>
7934 <indexterm startref="idxroboticdog1" class='endofrange'/>
7935 <indexterm startref="idxaibo1" class='endofrange'/>
7936 <para>
7937 I've told this story in many contexts, both inside and outside the
7938 United States. Once I was asked by a puzzled member of the audience,
7939 is it permissible for a dog to dance jazz in the United States? We
7940 forget that stories about the backcountry still flow across much of
7941 the
7942
7943 <!-- PAGE BREAK 166 -->
7944 world. So let's just be clear before we continue: It's not a crime
7945 anywhere (anymore) to dance jazz. Nor is it a crime to teach your dog
7946 to dance jazz. Nor should it be a crime (though we don't have a lot to
7947 go on here) to teach your robot dog to dance jazz. Dancing jazz is a
7948 completely legal activity. One imagines that the owner of aibopet.com
7949 thought, <emphasis>What possible problem could there be with teaching
7950 a robot dog to dance?</emphasis>
7951 </para>
7952 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>government case against</secondary></indexterm>
7953 <para>
7954 Let's put the dog to sleep for a minute, and turn to a pony show&mdash;
7955 not literally a pony show, but rather a paper that a Princeton academic
7956 named Ed Felten prepared for a conference. This Princeton academic
7957 is well known and respected. He was hired by the government in the
7958 Microsoft case to test Microsoft's claims about what could and could
7959 not be done with its own code. In that trial, he demonstrated both his
7960 brilliance and his coolness. Under heavy badgering by Microsoft
7961 lawyers, Ed Felten stood his ground. He was not about to be bullied
7962 into being silent about something he knew very well.
7963 </para>
7964 <para>
7965 But Felten's bravery was really tested in April 2001.<footnote><para>
7966 <!-- f22 -->
7967 See Pamela Samuelson, <quote>Anticircumvention Rules: Threat to Science,</quote>
7968 <citetitle>Science</citetitle> 293 (2001): 2028; Brendan I. Koerner, <quote>Play Dead: Sony Muzzles
7969 the Techies Who Teach a Robot Dog New Tricks,</quote> <citetitle>American Prospect</citetitle>,
7970 January 2002; <quote>Court Dismisses Computer Scientists' Challenge to
7971 DMCA,</quote> <citetitle>Intellectual Property Litigation Reporter</citetitle>, 11 December 2001; Bill
7972 Holland, <quote>Copyright Act Raising Free-Speech Concerns,</quote> <citetitle>Billboard</citetitle>,
7973 May 2001; Janelle Brown, <quote>Is the RIAA Running Scared?</quote> Salon.com,
7974 April 2001; Electronic Frontier Foundation, <quote>Frequently Asked
7975 Questions about <citetitle>Felten and USENIX</citetitle> v. <citetitle>RIAA</citetitle> Legal Case,</quote> available at
7976 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #27</ulink>.
7977 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation</primary></indexterm>
7978 </para></footnote>
7979 He and a group of colleagues were working on a paper to be submitted
7980 at conference. The paper was intended to describe the weakness in an
7981 encryption system being developed by the Secure Digital Music
7982 Initiative as a technique to control the distribution of music.
7983 </para>
7984 <para>
7985 The SDMI coalition had as its goal a technology to enable content
7986 owners to exercise much better control over their content than the
7987 Internet, as it originally stood, granted them. Using encryption, SDMI
7988 hoped to develop a standard that would allow the content owner to say
7989 <quote>this music cannot be copied,</quote> and have a computer respect that
7990 command. The technology was to be part of a <quote>trusted system</quote> of
7991 control that would get content owners to trust the system of the
7992 Internet much more.
7993 </para>
7994 <para>
7995 When SDMI thought it was close to a standard, it set up a competition.
7996 In exchange for providing contestants with the code to an
7997 SDMI-encrypted bit of content, contestants were to try to crack it
7998 and, if they did, report the problems to the consortium.
7999 </para>
8000 <para>
8001 <!-- PAGE BREAK 167 -->
8002 Felten and his team figured out the encryption system quickly. He and
8003 the team saw the weakness of this system as a type: Many encryption
8004 systems would suffer the same weakness, and Felten and his team
8005 thought it worthwhile to point this out to those who study encryption.
8006 </para>
8007 <para>
8008 Let's review just what Felten was doing. Again, this is the United
8009 States. We have a principle of free speech. We have this principle not
8010 just because it is the law, but also because it is a really great
8011 idea. A strongly protected tradition of free speech is likely to
8012 encourage a wide range of criticism. That criticism is likely, in
8013 turn, to improve the systems or people or ideas criticized.
8014 </para>
8015 <para>
8016 What Felten and his colleagues were doing was publishing a paper
8017 describing the weakness in a technology. They were not spreading free
8018 music, or building and deploying this technology. The paper was an
8019 academic essay, unintelligible to most people. But it clearly showed the
8020 weakness in the SDMI system, and why SDMI would not, as presently
8021 constituted, succeed.
8022 </para>
8023 <indexterm id="idxaibo2" class='startofrange'><primary>Aibo robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8024 <indexterm id="idxroboticdog2" class='startofrange'><primary>robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8025 <indexterm id="idxsonyaibo2" class='startofrange'><primary>Sony</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by</secondary></indexterm>
8026 <para>
8027 What links these two, aibopet.com and Felten, is the letters they
8028 then received. Aibopet.com received a letter from Sony about the
8029 aibopet.com hack. Though a jazz-dancing dog is perfectly legal, Sony
8030 wrote:
8031 </para>
8032 <blockquote>
8033 <para>
8034 Your site contains information providing the means to circumvent
8035 AIBO-ware's copy protection protocol constituting a violation of the
8036 anti-circumvention provisions of the Digital Millennium Copyright Act.
8037 </para>
8038 </blockquote>
8039 <indexterm startref="idxsonyaibo2" class='endofrange'/>
8040 <indexterm startref="idxroboticdog2" class='endofrange'/>
8041 <indexterm startref="idxaibo2" class='endofrange'/>
8042 <para>
8043 And though an academic paper describing the weakness in a system
8044 of encryption should also be perfectly legal, Felten received a letter
8045 from an RIAA lawyer that read:
8046 </para>
8047 <blockquote>
8048 <para>
8049 Any disclosure of information gained from participating in the
8050 <!-- PAGE BREAK 168 -->
8051 Public Challenge would be outside the scope of activities permitted by
8052 the Agreement and could subject you and your research team to actions
8053 under the Digital Millennium Copyright Act (<quote>DMCA</quote>).
8054 </para>
8055 </blockquote>
8056 <para>
8057 In both cases, this weirdly Orwellian law was invoked to control the
8058 spread of information. The Digital Millennium Copyright Act made
8059 spreading such information an offense.
8060 </para>
8061 <para>
8062 The DMCA was enacted as a response to copyright owners' first fear
8063 about cyberspace. The fear was that copyright control was effectively
8064 dead; the response was to find technologies that might compensate.
8065 These new technologies would be copyright protection
8066 technologies&mdash; technologies to control the replication and
8067 distribution of copyrighted material. They were designed as
8068 <emphasis>code</emphasis> to modify the original
8069 <emphasis>code</emphasis> of the Internet, to reestablish some
8070 protection for copyright owners.
8071 </para>
8072 <para>
8073 The DMCA was a bit of law intended to back up the protection of this
8074 code designed to protect copyrighted material. It was, we could say,
8075 <emphasis>legal code</emphasis> intended to buttress
8076 <emphasis>software code</emphasis> which itself was intended to
8077 support the <emphasis>legal code of copyright</emphasis>.
8078 </para>
8079 <para>
8080 But the DMCA was not designed merely to protect copyrighted works to
8081 the extent copyright law protected them. Its protection, that is, did
8082 not end at the line that copyright law drew. The DMCA regulated
8083 devices that were designed to circumvent copyright protection
8084 measures. It was designed to ban those devices, whether or not the use
8085 of the copyrighted material made possible by that circumvention would
8086 have been a copyright violation.
8087 </para>
8088 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8089 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8090 <indexterm><primary>Sony</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by</secondary></indexterm>
8091 <para>
8092 Aibopet.com and Felten make the point. The Aibo hack circumvented a
8093 copyright protection system for the purpose of enabling the dog to
8094 dance jazz. That enablement no doubt involved the use of copyrighted
8095 material. But as aibopet.com's site was noncommercial, and the use did
8096 not enable subsequent copyright infringements, there's no doubt that
8097 aibopet.com's hack was fair use of Sony's copyrighted material. Yet
8098 fair use is not a defense to the DMCA. The question is not whether the
8099 <!-- PAGE BREAK 169 -->
8100 use of the copyrighted material was a copyright violation. The question
8101 is whether a copyright protection system was circumvented.
8102 </para>
8103 <para>
8104 The threat against Felten was more attenuated, but it followed the
8105 same line of reasoning. By publishing a paper describing how a
8106 copyright protection system could be circumvented, the RIAA lawyer
8107 suggested, Felten himself was distributing a circumvention technology.
8108 Thus, even though he was not himself infringing anyone's copyright,
8109 his academic paper was enabling others to infringe others' copyright.
8110 </para>
8111 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred</primary></indexterm>
8112 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs2' class='startofrange'><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
8113 <para>
8114 The bizarreness of these arguments is captured in a cartoon drawn in
8115 1981 by Paul Conrad. At that time, a court in California had held that
8116 the VCR could be banned because it was a copyright-infringing
8117 technology: It enabled consumers to copy films without the permission
8118 of the copyright owner. No doubt there were uses of the technology
8119 that were legal: Fred Rogers, aka <quote><citetitle>Mr. Rogers</citetitle>,</quote>
8120 for example, had testified in that case that he wanted people to feel
8121 free to tape Mr. Rogers' Neighborhood.
8122 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul</primary></indexterm>
8123 </para>
8124 <blockquote>
8125 <para>
8126 Some public stations, as well as commercial stations, program the
8127 <quote>Neighborhood</quote> at hours when some children cannot use it. I think that
8128 it's a real service to families to be able to record such programs and
8129 show them at appropriate times. I have always felt that with the
8130 advent of all of this new technology that allows people to tape the
8131 <quote>Neighborhood</quote> off-the-air, and I'm speaking for the <quote>Neighborhood</quote>
8132 because that's what I produce, that they then become much more active
8133 in the programming of their family's television life. Very frankly, I
8134 am opposed to people being programmed by others. My whole approach in
8135 broadcasting has always been <quote>You are an important person just the way
8136 you are. You can make healthy decisions.</quote> Maybe I'm going on too long,
8137 but I just feel that anything that allows a person to be more active
8138 in the control of his or her life, in a healthy way, is
8139 important.<footnote><para>
8140 <!-- f23 -->
8141 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
8142 <citetitle>Sony Corporation of America</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc</citetitle>., 464 U.S. 417,
8143 455 fn. 27 (1984). Rogers never changed his view about the VCR. See
8144 James Lardner, <citetitle>Fast Forward: Hollywood, the Japanese, and the Onslaught of
8145 the VCR</citetitle> (New York: W. W. Norton, 1987), 270&ndash;71.
8146 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred</primary></indexterm>
8147 </para></footnote>
8148 </para>
8149 </blockquote>
8150 <para>
8151 <!-- PAGE BREAK 170 -->
8152 Even though there were uses that were legal, because there were
8153 some uses that were illegal, the court held the companies producing
8154 the VCR responsible.
8155 </para>
8156 <para>
8157 This led Conrad to draw the cartoon below, which we can adopt to
8158 the DMCA.
8159 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul</primary></indexterm>
8160 </para>
8161 <para>
8162 No argument I have can top this picture, but let me try to get close.
8163 </para>
8164 <para>
8165 The anticircumvention provisions of the DMCA target copyright
8166 circumvention technologies. Circumvention technologies can be used for
8167 different ends. They can be used, for example, to enable massive
8168 pirating of copyrighted material&mdash;a bad end. Or they can be used
8169 to enable the use of particular copyrighted materials in ways that
8170 would be considered fair use&mdash;a good end.
8171 </para>
8172 <indexterm id='idxhandguns' class='startofrange'><primary>handguns</primary></indexterm>
8173 <para>
8174 A handgun can be used to shoot a police officer or a child. Most
8175 <!-- PAGE BREAK 171 -->
8176 would agree such a use is bad. Or a handgun can be used for target
8177 practice or to protect against an intruder. At least some would say that
8178 such a use would be good. It, too, is a technology that has both good
8179 and bad uses.
8180 </para>
8181 <figure id="fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig">
8182 <title>VCR/handgun cartoon.</title>
8183 <graphic fileref="images/1711.png"></graphic>
8184 </figure>
8185 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul</primary></indexterm>
8186 <para>
8187 The obvious point of Conrad's cartoon is the weirdness of a world
8188 where guns are legal, despite the harm they can do, while VCRs (and
8189 circumvention technologies) are illegal. Flash: <emphasis>No one ever
8190 died from copyright circumvention</emphasis>. Yet the law bans circumvention
8191 technologies absolutely, despite the potential that they might do some
8192 good, but permits guns, despite the obvious and tragic harm they do.
8193 </para>
8194 <indexterm startref='idxhandguns' class='endofrange'/>
8195 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs2' class='endofrange'/>
8196 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8197 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog</primary></indexterm>
8198 <indexterm><primary>Sony</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by</secondary></indexterm>
8199 <para>
8200 The Aibo and RIAA examples demonstrate how copyright owners are
8201 changing the balance that copyright law grants. Using code, copyright
8202 owners restrict fair use; using the DMCA, they punish those who would
8203 attempt to evade the restrictions on fair use that they impose through
8204 code. Technology becomes a means by which fair use can be erased; the
8205 law of the DMCA backs up that erasing.
8206 </para>
8207 <para>
8208 This is how <emphasis>code</emphasis> becomes
8209 <emphasis>law</emphasis>. The controls built into the technology of
8210 copy and access protection become rules the violation of which is also
8211 a violation of the law. In this way, the code extends the
8212 law&mdash;increasing its regulation, even if the subject it regulates
8213 (activities that would otherwise plainly constitute fair use) is
8214 beyond the reach of the law. Code becomes law; code extends the law;
8215 code thus extends the control that copyright owners effect&mdash;at
8216 least for those copyright holders with the lawyers who can write the
8217 nasty letters that Felten and aibopet.com received.
8218 </para>
8219 <para>
8220 There is one final aspect of the interaction between architecture and
8221 law that contributes to the force of copyright's regulation. This is
8222 the ease with which infringements of the law can be detected. For
8223 contrary to the rhetoric common at the birth of cyberspace that on the
8224 Internet, no one knows you're a dog, increasingly, given changing
8225 technologies deployed on the Internet, it is easy to find the dog who
8226 committed a legal wrong. The technologies of the Internet are open to
8227 snoops as well as sharers, and the snoops are increasingly good at
8228 tracking down the identity of those who violate the rules.
8229 </para>
8230 <para>
8231
8232 <!-- PAGE BREAK 172 -->
8233 For example, imagine you were part of a <citetitle>Star Trek</citetitle> fan club. You
8234 gathered every month to share trivia, and maybe to enact a kind of fan
8235 fiction about the show. One person would play Spock, another, Captain
8236 Kirk. The characters would begin with a plot from a real story, then
8237 simply continue it.<footnote><para>
8238 <!-- f24 -->
8239 For an early and prescient analysis, see Rebecca Tushnet, <quote>Legal Fictions,
8240 Copyright, Fan Fiction, and a New Common Law,</quote> <citetitle>Loyola of Los Angeles
8241 Entertainment Law Journal</citetitle> 17 (1997): 651.
8242 </para></footnote>
8243 </para>
8244 <para>
8245 Before the Internet, this was, in effect, a totally unregulated
8246 activity. No matter what happened inside your club room, you would
8247 never be interfered with by the copyright police. You were free in
8248 that space to do as you wished with this part of our culture. You were
8249 allowed to build on it as you wished without fear of legal control.
8250 </para>
8251 <indexterm><primary>bots</primary></indexterm>
8252 <para>
8253 But if you moved your club onto the Internet, and made it generally
8254 available for others to join, the story would be very different. Bots
8255 scouring the Net for trademark and copyright infringement would
8256 quickly find your site. Your posting of fan fiction, depending upon
8257 the ownership of the series that you're depicting, could well inspire
8258 a lawyer's threat. And ignoring the lawyer's threat would be extremely
8259 costly indeed. The law of copyright is extremely efficient. The
8260 penalties are severe, and the process is quick.
8261 </para>
8262 <para>
8263 This change in the effective force of the law is caused by a change
8264 in the ease with which the law can be enforced. That change too shifts
8265 the law's balance radically. It is as if your car transmitted the speed at
8266 which you traveled at every moment that you drove; that would be just
8267 one step before the state started issuing tickets based upon the data you
8268 transmitted. That is, in effect, what is happening here.
8269 </para>
8270 </section>
8271 <section id="marketconcentration">
8272 <title>Market: Concentration</title>
8273 <para>
8274 So copyright's duration has increased dramatically&mdash;tripled in
8275 the past thirty years. And copyright's scope has increased as
8276 well&mdash;from regulating only publishers to now regulating just
8277 about everyone. And copyright's reach has changed, as every action
8278 becomes a copy and hence presumptively regulated. And as technologists
8279 find better ways
8280 <!-- PAGE BREAK 173 -->
8281 to control the use of content, and as copyright is increasingly
8282 enforced through technology, copyright's force changes, too. Misuse is
8283 easier to find and easier to control. This regulation of the creative
8284 process, which began as a tiny regulation governing a tiny part of the
8285 market for creative work, has become the single most important
8286 regulator of creativity there is. It is a massive expansion in the
8287 scope of the government's control over innovation and creativity; it
8288 would be totally unrecognizable to those who gave birth to copyright's
8289 control.
8290 </para>
8291 <para>
8292 Still, in my view, all of these changes would not matter much if it
8293 weren't for one more change that we must also consider. This is a
8294 change that is in some sense the most familiar, though its significance
8295 and scope are not well understood. It is the one that creates precisely the
8296 reason to be concerned about all the other changes I have described.
8297 </para>
8298 <para>
8299 This is the change in the concentration and integration of the media.
8300 In the past twenty years, the nature of media ownership has undergone
8301 a radical alteration, caused by changes in legal rules governing the
8302 media. Before this change happened, the different forms of media were
8303 owned by separate media companies. Now, the media is increasingly
8304 owned by only a few companies. Indeed, after the changes that the FCC
8305 announced in June 2003, most expect that within a few years, we will
8306 live in a world where just three companies control more than percent
8307 of the media.
8308 </para>
8309 <para>
8310 These changes are of two sorts: the scope of concentration, and its
8311 nature.
8312 </para>
8313 <indexterm><primary>cable television</primary></indexterm>
8314 <indexterm><primary>BMG</primary></indexterm>
8315 <indexterm><primary>EMI</primary></indexterm>
8316 <indexterm><primary>McCain, John</primary></indexterm>
8317 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group</primary></indexterm>
8318 <indexterm><primary>Warner Music Group</primary></indexterm>
8319 <para>
8320 Changes in scope are the easier ones to describe. As Senator John
8321 McCain summarized the data produced in the FCC's review of media
8322 ownership, <quote>five companies control 85 percent of our media sources.</quote><footnote><para>
8323 <!-- f25 -->
8324 FCC Oversight: Hearing Before the Senate Commerce, Science and
8325 Transportation Committee, 108th Cong., 1st sess. (22 May 2003)
8326 (statement of Senator John McCain). </para></footnote>
8327 The five recording labels of Universal Music Group, BMG, Sony Music
8328 Entertainment, Warner Music Group, and EMI control 84.8 percent of the
8329 U.S. music market.<footnote><para>
8330 <!-- f26 -->
8331 Lynette Holloway, <quote>Despite a Marketing Blitz, CD Sales Continue to
8332 Slide,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 23 December 2002.
8333 </para></footnote>
8334 The <quote>five largest cable companies pipe
8335 programming to 74 percent of the cable subscribers nationwide.</quote><footnote><para>
8336 <!-- f27 -->
8337 Molly Ivins, <quote>Media Consolidation Must Be Stopped,</quote> <citetitle>Charleston Gazette</citetitle>,
8338 31 May 2003.
8339 </para></footnote>
8340 </para>
8341 <para>
8342 The story with radio is even more dramatic. Before deregulation,
8343 the nation's largest radio broadcasting conglomerate owned fewer than
8344 <!-- PAGE BREAK 174 -->
8345 seventy-five stations. Today <emphasis>one</emphasis> company owns
8346 more than 1,200 stations. During that period of consolidation, the
8347 total number of radio owners dropped by 34 percent. Today, in most
8348 markets, the two largest broadcasters control 74 percent of that
8349 market's revenues. Overall, just four companies control 90 percent of
8350 the nation's radio advertising revenues.
8351 </para>
8352 <indexterm><primary>cable television</primary></indexterm>
8353 <para>
8354 Newspaper ownership is becoming more concentrated as well. Today,
8355 there are six hundred fewer daily newspapers in the United States than
8356 there were eighty years ago, and ten companies control half of the
8357 nation's circulation. There are twenty major newspaper publishers in
8358 the United States. The top ten film studios receive 99 percent of all
8359 film revenue. The ten largest cable companies account for 85 percent
8360 of all cable revenue. This is a market far from the free press the
8361 framers sought to protect. Indeed, it is a market that is quite well
8362 protected&mdash; by the market.
8363 </para>
8364 <para>
8365 Concentration in size alone is one thing. The more invidious
8366 change is in the nature of that concentration. As author James Fallows
8367 put it in a recent article about Rupert Murdoch,
8368 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James</primary></indexterm>
8369 </para>
8370 <blockquote>
8371 <para>
8372 Murdoch's companies now constitute a production system
8373 unmatched in its integration. They supply content&mdash;Fox movies
8374 &hellip; Fox TV shows &hellip; Fox-controlled sports broadcasts, plus
8375 newspapers and books. They sell the content to the public and to
8376 advertisers&mdash;in newspapers, on the broadcast network, on the
8377 cable channels. And they operate the physical distribution system
8378 through which the content reaches the customers. Murdoch's satellite
8379 systems now distribute News Corp. content in Europe and Asia; if
8380 Murdoch becomes DirecTV's largest single owner, that system will serve
8381 the same function in the United States.<footnote><para>
8382 <!-- f28 -->
8383 James Fallows, <quote>The Age of Murdoch,</quote> <citetitle>Atlantic Monthly</citetitle> (September
8384 2003): 89.
8385 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James</primary></indexterm>
8386 </para></footnote>
8387 </para>
8388 </blockquote>
8389 <para>
8390 The pattern with Murdoch is the pattern of modern media. Not
8391 just large companies owning many radio stations, but a few companies
8392 owning as many outlets of media as possible. A picture describes this
8393 pattern better than a thousand words could do:
8394 </para>
8395 <figure id="fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership">
8396 <title>Pattern of modern media ownership.</title>
8397 <graphic fileref="images/1761.png"></graphic>
8398 </figure>
8399 <para>
8400 <!-- PAGE BREAK 175 -->
8401 Does this concentration matter? Will it affect what is made, or
8402 what is distributed? Or is it merely a more efficient way to produce and
8403 distribute content?
8404 </para>
8405 <para>
8406 My view was that concentration wouldn't matter. I thought it was
8407 nothing more than a more efficient financial structure. But now, after
8408 reading and listening to a barrage of creators try to convince me to the
8409 contrary, I am beginning to change my mind.
8410 </para>
8411 <para>
8412 Here's a representative story that begins to suggest how this
8413 integration may matter.
8414 </para>
8415 <indexterm><primary>Lear, Norman</primary></indexterm>
8416 <indexterm><primary>ABC</primary></indexterm>
8417 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family</primary></indexterm>
8418 <para>
8419 In 1969, Norman Lear created a pilot for <citetitle>All in the Family</citetitle>. He took
8420 the pilot to ABC. The network didn't like it. It was too edgy, they told
8421 Lear. Make it again. Lear made a second pilot, more edgy than the
8422 first. ABC was exasperated. You're missing the point, they told Lear.
8423 We wanted less edgy, not more.
8424 </para>
8425 <para>
8426 Rather than comply, Lear simply took the show elsewhere. CBS
8427 was happy to have the series; ABC could not stop Lear from walking.
8428 The copyrights that Lear held assured an independence from network
8429 control.<footnote><para>
8430 <!-- f29 -->
8431 Leonard Hill, <quote>The Axis of Access,</quote> remarks before Weidenbaum Center
8432 Forum, <quote>Entertainment Economics: The Movie Industry,</quote> St. Louis,
8433 Missouri, 3 April 2003 (transcript of prepared remarks available at
8434 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #28</ulink>;
8435 for the Lear story, not included in the prepared remarks, see
8436 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #29</ulink>).
8437 </para></footnote>
8438 </para>
8439 <para>
8440
8441 <!-- PAGE BREAK 176 -->
8442 The network did not control those copyrights because the law forbade
8443 the networks from controlling the content they syndicated. The law
8444 required a separation between the networks and the content producers;
8445 that separation would guarantee Lear freedom. And as late as 1992,
8446 because of these rules, the vast majority of prime time
8447 television&mdash;75 percent of it&mdash;was <quote>independent</quote> of the
8448 networks.
8449 </para>
8450 <para>
8451 In 1994, the FCC abandoned the rules that required this independence.
8452 After that change, the networks quickly changed the balance. In 1985,
8453 there were twenty-five independent television production studios; in
8454 2002, only five independent television studios remained. <quote>In 1992,
8455 only 15 percent of new series were produced for a network by a company
8456 it controlled. Last year, the percentage of shows produced by
8457 controlled companies more than quintupled to 77 percent.</quote> <quote>In 1992, 16
8458 new series were produced independently of conglomerate control, last
8459 year there was one.</quote><footnote><para>
8460 <!-- f30 -->
8461 NewsCorp./DirecTV Merger and Media Consolidation: Hearings on Media
8462 Ownership Before the Senate Commerce Committee, 108th Cong., 1st
8463 sess. (2003) (testimony of Gene Kimmelman on behalf of Consumers Union
8464 and the Consumer Federation of America), available at
8465 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #30</ulink>. Kimmelman
8466 quotes Victoria Riskin, president of Writers Guild of America, West,
8467 in her Remarks at FCC En Banc Hearing, Richmond, Virginia, 27 February
8468 2003.
8469 </para></footnote>
8470 In 2002, 75 percent of prime time television was owned by the networks
8471 that ran it. <quote>In the ten-year period between 1992 and 2002, the number
8472 of prime time television hours per week produced by network studios
8473 increased over 200%, whereas the number of prime time television hours
8474 per week produced by independent studios decreased
8475 63%.</quote><footnote><para>
8476 <!-- f31 -->
8477 Ibid.
8478 </para></footnote>
8479 </para>
8480 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family</primary></indexterm>
8481 <para>
8482 Today, another Norman Lear with another <citetitle>All in the Family</citetitle> would
8483 find that he had the choice either to make the show less edgy or to be
8484 fired: The content of any show developed for a network is increasingly
8485 owned by the network.
8486 </para>
8487 <indexterm><primary>Diller, Barry</primary></indexterm>
8488 <indexterm><primary>Moyers, Bill</primary></indexterm>
8489 <para>
8490 While the number of channels has increased dramatically, the ownership
8491 of those channels has narrowed to an ever smaller and smaller few. As
8492 Barry Diller said to Bill Moyers,
8493 </para>
8494 <blockquote>
8495 <para>
8496 Well, if you have companies that produce, that finance, that air on
8497 their channel and then distribute worldwide everything that goes
8498 through their controlled distribution system, then what you get is
8499 fewer and fewer actual voices participating in the process. [We
8500 <!-- PAGE BREAK 177 -->
8501 u]sed to have dozens and dozens of thriving independent production
8502 companies producing television programs. Now you have less than a
8503 handful.<footnote><para>
8504 <!-- f32 -->
8505 <quote>Barry Diller Takes on Media Deregulation,</quote> <citetitle>Now with Bill Moyers</citetitle>, Bill
8506 Moyers, 25 April 2003, edited transcript available at
8507 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #31</ulink>.
8508 </para></footnote>
8509 </para>
8510 </blockquote>
8511 <para>
8512 This narrowing has an effect on what is produced. The product of such
8513 large and concentrated networks is increasingly homogenous.
8514 Increasingly safe. Increasingly sterile. The product of news shows
8515 from networks like this is increasingly tailored to the message the
8516 network wants to convey. This is not the communist party, though from
8517 the inside, it must feel a bit like the communist party. No one can
8518 question without risk of consequence&mdash;not necessarily banishment
8519 to Siberia, but punishment nonetheless. Independent, critical,
8520 different views are quashed. This is not the environment for a
8521 democracy.
8522 </para>
8523 <indexterm><primary>Clark, Kim B.</primary></indexterm>
8524 <para>
8525 Economics itself offers a parallel that explains why this integration
8526 affects creativity. Clay Christensen has written about the <quote>Innovator's
8527 Dilemma</quote>: the fact that large traditional firms find it rational to ignore
8528 new, breakthrough technologies that compete with their core business.
8529 The same analysis could help explain why large, traditional media
8530 companies would find it rational to ignore new cultural trends.<footnote><para>
8531 <!-- f33 -->
8532 Clayton M. Christensen, <citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The
8533 Revolutionary National Bestseller that Changed the Way We Do Business</citetitle>
8534 (Cambridge: Harvard Business School Press, 1997). Christensen
8535 acknowledges that the idea was first suggested by Dean Kim Clark. See
8536 Kim B. Clark, <quote>The Interaction of Design Hierarchies and Market
8537 Concepts in Technological Evolution,</quote> <citetitle>Research Policy</citetitle> 14 (1985):
8538 235&ndash;51. For a more recent study, see Richard Foster and Sarah
8539 Kaplan, <citetitle>Creative Destruction: Why Companies That Are Built to Last
8540 Underperform the Market&mdash;and How to Successfully Transform Them</citetitle>
8541 (New York: Currency/Doubleday, 2001). </para></footnote>
8542
8543 Lumbering giants not only don't, but should not, sprint. Yet if the
8544 field is only open to the giants, there will be far too little
8545 sprinting.
8546 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.</primary></indexterm>
8547 </para>
8548 <para>
8549 I don't think we know enough about the economics of the media
8550 market to say with certainty what concentration and integration will
8551 do. The efficiencies are important, and the effect on culture is hard to
8552 measure.
8553 </para>
8554 <para>
8555 But there is a quintessentially obvious example that does strongly
8556 suggest the concern.
8557 </para>
8558 <para>
8559 In addition to the copyright wars, we're in the middle of the drug
8560 wars. Government policy is strongly directed against the drug cartels;
8561 criminal and civil courts are filled with the consequences of this battle.
8562 </para>
8563 <para>
8564 Let me hereby disqualify myself from any possible appointment to
8565 any position in government by saying I believe this war is a profound
8566 mistake. I am not pro drugs. Indeed, I come from a family once
8567
8568 <!-- PAGE BREAK 178 -->
8569 wrecked by drugs&mdash;though the drugs that wrecked my family were
8570 all quite legal. I believe this war is a profound mistake because the
8571 collateral damage from it is so great as to make waging the war
8572 insane. When you add together the burdens on the criminal justice
8573 system, the desperation of generations of kids whose only real
8574 economic opportunities are as drug warriors, the queering of
8575 constitutional protections because of the constant surveillance this
8576 war requires, and, most profoundly, the total destruction of the legal
8577 systems of many South American nations because of the power of the
8578 local drug cartels, I find it impossible to believe that the marginal
8579 benefit in reduced drug consumption by Americans could possibly
8580 outweigh these costs.
8581 </para>
8582 <para>
8583 You may not be convinced. That's fine. We live in a democracy, and it
8584 is through votes that we are to choose policy. But to do that, we
8585 depend fundamentally upon the press to help inform Americans about
8586 these issues.
8587 </para>
8588 <indexterm id='idxadvertising3' class='startofrange'><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
8589 <para>
8590 Beginning in 1998, the Office of National Drug Control Policy launched
8591 a media campaign as part of the <quote>war on drugs.</quote> The campaign produced
8592 scores of short film clips about issues related to illegal drugs. In
8593 one series (the Nick and Norm series) two men are in a bar, discussing
8594 the idea of legalizing drugs as a way to avoid some of the collateral
8595 damage from the war. One advances an argument in favor of drug
8596 legalization. The other responds in a powerful and effective way
8597 against the argument of the first. In the end, the first guy changes
8598 his mind (hey, it's television). The plug at the end is a damning
8599 attack on the pro-legalization campaign.
8600 </para>
8601 <para>
8602 Fair enough. It's a good ad. Not terribly misleading. It delivers its
8603 message well. It's a fair and reasonable message.
8604 </para>
8605 <para>
8606 But let's say you think it is a wrong message, and you'd like to run a
8607 countercommercial. Say you want to run a series of ads that try to
8608 demonstrate the extraordinary collateral harm that comes from the drug
8609 war. Can you do it?
8610 </para>
8611 <para>
8612 Well, obviously, these ads cost lots of money. Assume you raise the
8613 <!-- PAGE BREAK 179 -->
8614 money. Assume a group of concerned citizens donates all the money in
8615 the world to help you get your message out. Can you be sure your
8616 message will be heard then?
8617 </para>
8618 <para>
8619 No. You cannot. Television stations have a general policy of avoiding
8620 <quote>controversial</quote> ads. Ads sponsored by the government are deemed
8621 uncontroversial; ads disagreeing with the government are
8622 controversial. This selectivity might be thought inconsistent with
8623 the First Amendment, but the Supreme Court has held that stations have
8624 the right to choose what they run. Thus, the major channels of
8625 commercial media will refuse one side of a crucial debate the
8626 opportunity to present its case. And the courts will defend the
8627 rights of the stations to be this biased.<footnote><para>
8628 <!-- f34 -->
8629 The Marijuana Policy Project, in February 2003, sought to place ads
8630 that directly responded to the Nick and Norm series on stations within
8631 the Washington, D.C., area. Comcast rejected the ads as <quote>against
8632 [their] policy.</quote> The local NBC affiliate, WRC, rejected the ads
8633 without reviewing them. The local ABC affiliate, WJOA, originally
8634 agreed to run the ads and accepted payment to do so, but later decided
8635 not to run the ads and returned the collected fees. Interview with
8636 Neal Levine, 15 October 2003. These restrictions are, of course, not
8637 limited to drug policy. See, for example, Nat Ives, <quote>On the Issue of
8638 an Iraq War, Advocacy Ads Meet with Rejection from TV Networks,</quote> <citetitle>New
8639 York Times</citetitle>, 13 March 2003, C4. Outside of election-related air time
8640 there is very little that the FCC or the courts are willing to do to
8641 even the playing field. For a general overview, see Rhonda Brown, <quote>Ad
8642 Hoc Access: The Regulation of Editorial Advertising on Television and
8643 Radio,</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law and Policy Review</citetitle> 6 (1988): 449&ndash;79, and for a
8644 more recent summary of the stance of the FCC and the courts, see
8645 <citetitle>Radio-Television News Directors Association</citetitle> v. <citetitle>FCC</citetitle>, 184 F. 3d 872
8646 (D.C. Cir. 1999). Municipal authorities exercise the same authority as
8647 the networks. In a recent example from San Francisco, the San
8648 Francisco transit authority rejected an ad that criticized its Muni
8649 diesel buses. Phillip Matier and Andrew Ross, <quote>Antidiesel Group Fuming
8650 After Muni Rejects Ad,</quote> SFGate.com, 16 June 2003, available at
8651 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #32</ulink>. The ground
8652 was that the criticism was <quote>too controversial.</quote>
8653 <indexterm><primary>ABC</primary></indexterm>
8654 <indexterm><primary>Comcast</primary></indexterm>
8655 <indexterm><primary>Marijuana Policy Project</primary></indexterm>
8656 <indexterm><primary>NBC</primary></indexterm>
8657 <indexterm><primary>WJOA</primary></indexterm>
8658 <indexterm><primary>WRC</primary></indexterm>
8659 <indexterm><primary>advertising</primary></indexterm>
8660 </para></footnote>
8661 </para>
8662 <para>
8663 I'd be happy to defend the networks' rights, as well&mdash;if we lived
8664 in a media market that was truly diverse. But concentration in the
8665 media throws that condition into doubt. If a handful of companies
8666 control access to the media, and that handful of companies gets to
8667 decide which political positions it will allow to be promoted on its
8668 channels, then in an obvious and important way, concentration
8669 matters. You might like the positions the handful of companies
8670 selects. But you should not like a world in which a mere few get to
8671 decide which issues the rest of us get to know about.
8672 </para>
8673 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising3' class='endofrange'/>
8674 </section>
8675 <section id="together">
8676 <title>Together</title>
8677 <para>
8678 There is something innocent and obvious about the claim of the
8679 copyright warriors that the government should <quote>protect my property.</quote>
8680 In the abstract, it is obviously true and, ordinarily, totally
8681 harmless. No sane sort who is not an anarchist could disagree.
8682 </para>
8683 <para>
8684 But when we see how dramatically this <quote>property</quote> has changed&mdash;
8685 when we recognize how it might now interact with both technology and
8686 markets to mean that the effective constraint on the liberty to
8687 cultivate our culture is dramatically different&mdash;the claim begins
8688 to seem
8689
8690 <!-- PAGE BREAK 180 -->
8691 less innocent and obvious. Given (1) the power of technology to
8692 supplement the law's control, and (2) the power of concentrated
8693 markets to weaken the opportunity for dissent, if strictly enforcing
8694 the massively expanded <quote>property</quote> rights granted by copyright
8695 fundamentally changes the freedom within this culture to cultivate and
8696 build upon our past, then we have to ask whether this property should
8697 be redefined.
8698 </para>
8699 <para>
8700 Not starkly. Or absolutely. My point is not that we should abolish
8701 copyright or go back to the eighteenth century. That would be a total
8702 mistake, disastrous for the most important creative enterprises within
8703 our culture today.
8704 </para>
8705 <para>
8706 But there is a space between zero and one, Internet culture
8707 notwithstanding. And these massive shifts in the effective power of
8708 copyright regulation, tied to increased concentration of the content
8709 industry and resting in the hands of technology that will increasingly
8710 enable control over the use of culture, should drive us to consider
8711 whether another adjustment is called for. Not an adjustment that
8712 increases copyright's power. Not an adjustment that increases its
8713 term. Rather, an adjustment to restore the balance that has
8714 traditionally defined copyright's regulation&mdash;a weakening of that
8715 regulation, to strengthen creativity.
8716 </para>
8717 <para>
8718 Copyright law has not been a rock of Gibraltar. It's not a set of
8719 constant commitments that, for some mysterious reason, teenagers and
8720 geeks now flout. Instead, copyright power has grown dramatically in a
8721 short period of time, as the technologies of distribution and creation
8722 have changed and as lobbyists have pushed for more control by
8723 copyright holders. Changes in the past in response to changes in
8724 technology suggest that we may well need similar changes in the
8725 future. And these changes have to be <emphasis>reductions</emphasis>
8726 in the scope of copyright, in response to the extraordinary increase
8727 in control that technology and the market enable.
8728 </para>
8729 <para>
8730 For the single point that is lost in this war on pirates is a point that
8731 we see only after surveying the range of these changes. When you add
8732 <!-- PAGE BREAK 181 -->
8733 together the effect of changing law, concentrated markets, and
8734 changing technology, together they produce an astonishing conclusion:
8735 <emphasis>Never in our history have fewer had a legal right to control
8736 more of the development of our culture than now</emphasis>.
8737 </para>
8738 <para>
8739 Not when copyrights were perpetual, for when copyrights were
8740 perpetual, they affected only that precise creative work. Not when
8741 only publishers had the tools to publish, for the market then was much
8742 more diverse. Not when there were only three television networks, for
8743 even then, newspapers, film studios, radio stations, and publishers
8744 were independent of the networks. <emphasis>Never</emphasis> has
8745 copyright protected such a wide range of rights, against as broad a
8746 range of actors, for a term that was remotely as long. This form of
8747 regulation&mdash;a tiny regulation of a tiny part of the creative
8748 energy of a nation at the founding&mdash;is now a massive regulation
8749 of the overall creative process. Law plus technology plus the market
8750 now interact to turn this historically benign regulation into the most
8751 significant regulation of culture that our free society has
8752 known.<footnote><para>
8753 <!-- f35 -->
8754 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva</primary></indexterm>
8755 Siva Vaidhyanathan captures a similar point in his <quote>four surrenders</quote> of
8756 copyright law in the digital age. See Vaidhyanathan, 159&ndash;60.
8757 </para></footnote>
8758 </para>
8759 <para>
8760 <emphasis role='strong'>This has been</emphasis> a long chapter. Its
8761 point can now be briefly stated.
8762 </para>
8763 <para>
8764 At the start of this book, I distinguished between commercial and
8765 noncommercial culture. In the course of this chapter, I have
8766 distinguished between copying a work and transforming it. We can now
8767 combine these two distinctions and draw a clear map of the changes
8768 that copyright law has undergone. In 1790, the law looked like this:
8769 </para>
8770
8771 <informaltable id="t2">
8772 <tgroup cols="3" align="left">
8773 <thead>
8774 <row>
8775 <entry></entry>
8776 <entry>PUBLISH</entry>
8777 <entry>TRANSFORM</entry>
8778 </row>
8779 </thead>
8780 <tbody>
8781 <row>
8782 <entry>Commercial</entry>
8783 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8784 <entry>Free</entry>
8785 </row>
8786 <row>
8787 <entry>Noncommercial</entry>
8788 <entry>Free</entry>
8789 <entry>Free</entry>
8790 </row>
8791 </tbody>
8792 </tgroup>
8793 </informaltable>
8794
8795 <para>
8796 The act of publishing a map, chart, and book was regulated by
8797 copyright law. Nothing else was. Transformations were free. And as
8798 copyright attached only with registration, and only those who intended
8799
8800 <!-- PAGE BREAK 182 -->
8801 to benefit commercially would register, copying through publishing of
8802 noncommercial work was also free.
8803 </para>
8804 <para>
8805 By the end of the nineteenth century, the law had changed to this:
8806 </para>
8807
8808 <informaltable id="t3">
8809 <tgroup cols="3" align="left">
8810 <thead>
8811 <row>
8812 <entry></entry>
8813 <entry>PUBLISH</entry>
8814 <entry>TRANSFORM</entry>
8815 </row>
8816 </thead>
8817 <tbody>
8818 <row>
8819 <entry>Commercial</entry>
8820 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8821 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8822 </row>
8823 <row>
8824 <entry>Noncommercial</entry>
8825 <entry>Free</entry>
8826 <entry>Free</entry>
8827 </row>
8828 </tbody>
8829 </tgroup>
8830 </informaltable>
8831
8832 <para>
8833 Derivative works were now regulated by copyright law&mdash;if
8834 published, which again, given the economics of publishing at the time,
8835 means if offered commercially. But noncommercial publishing and
8836 transformation were still essentially free.
8837 </para>
8838 <para>
8839 In 1909 the law changed to regulate copies, not publishing, and after
8840 this change, the scope of the law was tied to technology. As the
8841 technology of copying became more prevalent, the reach of the law
8842 expanded. Thus by 1975, as photocopying machines became more common,
8843 we could say the law began to look like this:
8844 </para>
8845
8846 <informaltable id="t4">
8847 <tgroup cols="3" align="left">
8848 <thead>
8849 <row>
8850 <entry></entry>
8851 <entry>COPY</entry>
8852 <entry>TRANSFORM</entry>
8853 </row>
8854 </thead>
8855 <tbody>
8856 <row>
8857 <entry>Commercial</entry>
8858 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8859 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8860 </row>
8861 <row>
8862 <entry>Noncommercial</entry>
8863 <entry>&copy;/Free</entry>
8864 <entry>Free</entry>
8865 </row>
8866 </tbody>
8867 </tgroup>
8868 </informaltable>
8869
8870 <para>
8871 The law was interpreted to reach noncommercial copying through, say,
8872 copy machines, but still much of copying outside of the commercial
8873 market remained free. But the consequence of the emergence of digital
8874 technologies, especially in the context of a digital network, means
8875 that the law now looks like this:
8876 </para>
8877
8878 <informaltable id="t5">
8879 <tgroup cols="3" align="left">
8880 <thead>
8881 <row>
8882 <entry></entry>
8883 <entry>COPY</entry>
8884 <entry>TRANSFORM</entry>
8885 </row>
8886 </thead>
8887 <tbody>
8888 <row>
8889 <entry>Commercial</entry>
8890 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8891 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8892 </row>
8893 <row>
8894 <entry>Noncommercial</entry>
8895 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8896 <entry>&copy;</entry>
8897 </row>
8898 </tbody>
8899 </tgroup>
8900 </informaltable>
8901
8902 <para>
8903 Every realm is governed by copyright law, whereas before most
8904 creativity was not. The law now regulates the full range of
8905 creativity&mdash;
8906 <!-- PAGE BREAK 183 -->
8907 commercial or not, transformative or not&mdash;with the same rules
8908 designed to regulate commercial publishers.
8909 </para>
8910 <para>
8911 Obviously, copyright law is not the enemy. The enemy is regulation
8912 that does no good. So the question that we should be asking just now
8913 is whether extending the regulations of copyright law into each of
8914 these domains actually does any good.
8915 </para>
8916 <para>
8917 I have no doubt that it does good in regulating commercial copying.
8918 But I also have no doubt that it does more harm than good when
8919 regulating (as it regulates just now) noncommercial copying and,
8920 especially, noncommercial transformation. And increasingly, for the
8921 reasons sketched especially in chapters
8922 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="recorders"/> and
8923 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="transformers"/>, one
8924 might well wonder whether it does more harm than good for commercial
8925 transformation. More commercial transformative work would be created
8926 if derivative rights were more sharply restricted.
8927 </para>
8928 <para>
8929 The issue is therefore not simply whether copyright is property. Of
8930 course copyright is a kind of <quote>property,</quote> and of course, as with any
8931 property, the state ought to protect it. But first impressions
8932 notwithstanding, historically, this property right (as with all
8933 property rights<footnote><para>
8934 <!-- f36 -->
8935 It was the single most important contribution of the legal realist
8936 movement to demonstrate that all property rights are always crafted to
8937 balance public and private interests. See Thomas C. Grey, <quote>The
8938 Disintegration of Property,</quote> in <citetitle>Nomos XXII: Property</citetitle>, J. Roland
8939 Pennock and John W. Chapman, eds. (New York: New York University
8940 Press, 1980).
8941 <indexterm><primary>legal realist movement</primary></indexterm>
8942 </para></footnote>)
8943 has been crafted to balance the important need to give authors and
8944 artists incentives with the equally important need to assure access to
8945 creative work. This balance has always been struck in light of new
8946 technologies. And for almost half of our tradition, the <quote>copyright</quote>
8947 did not control <emphasis>at all</emphasis> the freedom of others to
8948 build upon or transform a creative work. American culture was born
8949 free, and for almost 180 years our country consistently protected a
8950 vibrant and rich free culture.
8951 </para>
8952 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital</primary></indexterm>
8953 <para>
8954 We achieved that free culture because our law respected important
8955 limits on the scope of the interests protected by <quote>property.</quote> The very
8956 birth of <quote>copyright</quote> as a statutory right recognized those limits, by
8957 granting copyright owners protection for a limited time only (the
8958 story of chapter 6). The tradition of <quote>fair use</quote> is animated by a
8959 similar concern that is increasingly under strain as the costs of
8960 exercising any fair use right become unavoidably high (the story of
8961 chapter 7). Adding
8962 <!-- PAGE BREAK 184 -->
8963 statutory rights where markets might stifle innovation is another
8964 familiar limit on the property right that copyright is (chapter
8965 8). And granting archives and libraries a broad freedom to collect,
8966 claims of property notwithstanding, is a crucial part of guaranteeing
8967 the soul of a culture (chapter 9). Free cultures, like free markets,
8968 are built with property. But the nature of the property that builds a
8969 free culture is very different from the extremist vision that
8970 dominates the debate today.
8971 </para>
8972 <para>
8973 Free culture is increasingly the casualty in this war on piracy. In
8974 response to a real, if not yet quantified, threat that the
8975 technologies of the Internet present to twentieth-century business
8976 models for producing and distributing culture, the law and technology
8977 are being transformed in a way that will undermine our tradition of
8978 free culture. The property right that is copyright is no longer the
8979 balanced right that it was, or was intended to be. The property right
8980 that is copyright has become unbalanced, tilted toward an extreme. The
8981 opportunity to create and transform becomes weakened in a world in
8982 which creation requires permission and creativity must check with a
8983 lawyer.
8984 </para>
8985 <!-- PAGE BREAK 185 -->
8986 </section>
8987 </chapter>
8988 </part>
8989 <part id="c-puzzles">
8990 <title>PUZZLES</title>
8991
8992 <!-- PAGE BREAK 186 -->
8993 <chapter label="11" id="chimera">
8994 <title>CHAPTER ELEVEN: Chimera</title>
8995 <indexterm id="idxchimera" class='startofrange'><primary>chimeras</primary></indexterm>
8996 <indexterm id="idxwells" class='startofrange'><primary>Wells, H. G.</primary></indexterm>
8997 <indexterm id="idxtcotb" class='startofrange'><primary><quote>Country of the Blind, The</quote> (Wells)</primary></indexterm>
8998
8999 <para>
9000 <emphasis role='strong'>In a well-known</emphasis> short story by
9001 H. G. Wells, a mountain climber named Nunez trips (literally, down an
9002 ice slope) into an unknown and isolated valley in the Peruvian
9003 Andes.<footnote><para>
9004 <!-- f1. -->
9005 H. G. Wells, <quote>The Country of the Blind</quote> (1904, 1911). See H. G. Wells,
9006 <citetitle>The Country of the Blind and Other Stories</citetitle>, Michael Sherborne, ed. (New
9007 York: Oxford University Press, 1996).
9008 </para></footnote>
9009 The valley is extraordinarily beautiful, with <quote>sweet water, pasture,
9010 an even climate, slopes of rich brown soil with tangles of a shrub
9011 that bore an excellent fruit.</quote> But the villagers are all blind. Nunez
9012 takes this as an opportunity. <quote>In the Country of the Blind,</quote> he tells
9013 himself, <quote>the One-Eyed Man is King.</quote> So he resolves to live with the
9014 villagers to explore life as a king.
9015 </para>
9016 <para>
9017 Things don't go quite as he planned. He tries to explain the idea of
9018 sight to the villagers. They don't understand. He tells them they are
9019 <quote>blind.</quote> They don't have the word <citetitle>blind</citetitle>. They think he's just thick.
9020 Indeed, as they increasingly notice the things he can't do (hear the
9021 sound of grass being stepped on, for example), they increasingly try
9022 to control him. He, in turn, becomes increasingly frustrated. <quote>`You
9023 don't understand,' he cried, in a voice that was meant to be great and
9024 resolute, and which broke. `You are blind and I can see. Leave me
9025 alone!'</quote>
9026 </para>
9027 <para>
9028 <!-- PAGE BREAK 187 -->
9029 The villagers don't leave him alone. Nor do they see (so to speak) the
9030 virtue of his special power. Not even the ultimate target of his
9031 affection, a young woman who to him seems <quote>the most beautiful thing in
9032 the whole of creation,</quote> understands the beauty of sight. Nunez's
9033 description of what he sees <quote>seemed to her the most poetical of
9034 fancies, and she listened to his description of the stars and the
9035 mountains and her own sweet white-lit beauty as though it was a guilty
9036 indulgence.</quote> <quote>She did not believe,</quote> Wells tells us, and <quote>she could
9037 only half understand, but she was mysteriously delighted.</quote>
9038 </para>
9039 <para>
9040 When Nunez announces his desire to marry his <quote>mysteriously delighted</quote>
9041 love, the father and the village object. <quote>You see, my dear,</quote> her
9042 father instructs, <quote>he's an idiot. He has delusions. He can't do
9043 anything right.</quote> They take Nunez to the village doctor.
9044 </para>
9045 <para>
9046 After a careful examination, the doctor gives his opinion. <quote>His brain
9047 is affected,</quote> he reports.
9048 </para>
9049 <para>
9050 <quote>What affects it?</quote> the father asks. <quote>Those queer things that are
9051 called the eyes &hellip; are diseased &hellip; in such a way as to affect
9052 his brain.</quote>
9053 </para>
9054 <para>
9055 The doctor continues: <quote>I think I may say with reasonable certainty
9056 that in order to cure him completely, all that we need to do is a
9057 simple and easy surgical operation&mdash;namely, to remove these
9058 irritant bodies [the eyes].</quote>
9059 </para>
9060 <para>
9061 <quote>Thank Heaven for science!</quote> says the father to the doctor. They inform
9062 Nunez of this condition necessary for him to be allowed his bride.
9063 (You'll have to read the original to learn what happens in the end. I
9064 believe in free culture, but never in giving away the end of a story.)
9065 </para>
9066 <para>
9067 <emphasis role='strong'>It sometimes</emphasis> happens that the eggs
9068 of twins fuse in the mother's womb. That fusion produces a
9069 <quote>chimera.</quote> A chimera is a single creature with two sets
9070 of DNA. The DNA in the blood, for example, might be different from the
9071 DNA of the skin. This possibility is an underused
9072
9073 <!-- PAGE BREAK 188 -->
9074 plot for murder mysteries. <quote>But the DNA shows with 100 percent
9075 certainty that she was not the person whose blood was at the
9076 scene. &hellip;</quote>
9077 </para>
9078 <indexterm startref="idxtcotb" class='endofrange'/>
9079 <indexterm startref="idxwells" class="endofrange"/>
9080 <para>
9081 Before I had read about chimeras, I would have said they were
9082 impossible. A single person can't have two sets of DNA. The very idea
9083 of DNA is that it is the code of an individual. Yet in fact, not only
9084 can two individuals have the same set of DNA (identical twins), but
9085 one person can have two different sets of DNA (a chimera). Our
9086 understanding of a <quote>person</quote> should reflect this reality.
9087 </para>
9088 <para>
9089 The more I work to understand the current struggle over copyright and
9090 culture, which I've sometimes called unfairly, and sometimes not
9091 unfairly enough, <quote>the copyright wars,</quote> the more I think we're dealing
9092 with a chimera. For example, in the battle over the question <quote>What is
9093 p2p file sharing?</quote> both sides have it right, and both sides have it
9094 wrong. One side says, <quote>File sharing is just like two kids taping each
9095 others' records&mdash;the sort of thing we've been doing for the last
9096 thirty years without any question at all.</quote> That's true, at least in
9097 part. When I tell my best friend to try out a new CD that I've bought,
9098 but rather than just send the CD, I point him to my p2p server, that
9099 is, in all relevant respects, just like what every executive in every
9100 recording company no doubt did as a kid: sharing music.
9101 </para>
9102 <para>
9103 But the description is also false in part. For when my p2p server is
9104 on a p2p network through which anyone can get access to my music, then
9105 sure, my friends can get access, but it stretches the meaning of
9106 <quote>friends</quote> beyond recognition to say <quote>my ten thousand best friends</quote> can
9107 get access. Whether or not sharing my music with my best friend is
9108 what <quote>we have always been allowed to do,</quote> we have not always been
9109 allowed to share music with <quote>our ten thousand best friends.</quote>
9110 </para>
9111 <para>
9112 Likewise, when the other side says, <quote>File sharing is just like walking
9113 into a Tower Records and taking a CD off the shelf and walking out
9114 with it,</quote> that's true, at least in part. If, after Lyle Lovett
9115 (finally) releases a new album, rather than buying it, I go to Kazaa
9116 and find a free copy to take, that is very much like stealing a copy
9117 from Tower.
9118 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle</primary></indexterm>
9119 </para>
9120 <para>
9121
9122 <!-- PAGE BREAK 189 -->
9123 But it is not quite stealing from Tower. After all, when I take a CD
9124 from Tower Records, Tower has one less CD to sell. And when I take a
9125 CD from Tower Records, I get a bit of plastic and a cover, and
9126 something to show on my shelves. (And, while we're at it, we could
9127 also note that when I take a CD from Tower Records, the maximum fine
9128 that might be imposed on me, under California law, at least, is
9129 $1,000. According to the RIAA, by contrast, if I download a ten-song
9130 CD, I'm liable for $1,500,000 in damages.)
9131 </para>
9132 <para>
9133 The point is not that it is as neither side describes. The point is
9134 that it is both&mdash;both as the RIAA describes it and as Kazaa
9135 describes it. It is a chimera. And rather than simply denying what the
9136 other side asserts, we need to begin to think about how we should
9137 respond to this chimera. What rules should govern it?
9138 </para>
9139 <para>
9140 We could respond by simply pretending that it is not a chimera. We
9141 could, with the RIAA, decide that every act of file sharing should be
9142 a felony. We could prosecute families for millions of dollars in
9143 damages just because file sharing occurred on a family computer. And
9144 we can get universities to monitor all computer traffic to make sure
9145 that no computer is used to commit this crime. These responses might
9146 be extreme, but each of them has either been proposed or actually
9147 implemented.<footnote><para>
9148 <!-- f2. -->
9149 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by</primary></indexterm>
9150 For an excellent summary, see the report prepared by GartnerG2 and the
9151 Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School,
9152 <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,</quote> 27 June 2003,
9153 available at
9154 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
9155 #33</ulink>. Reps. John Conyers Jr. (D-Mich.) and Howard L. Berman
9156 (D-Calif.) have introduced a bill that would treat unauthorized
9157 on-line copying as a felony offense with punishments ranging as high
9158 as five years imprisonment; see Jon Healey, <quote>House Bill Aims to Up
9159 Stakes on Piracy,</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles Times</citetitle>, 17 July 2003, available at
9160 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #34</ulink>. Civil
9161 penalties are currently set at $150,000 per copied song. For a recent
9162 (and unsuccessful) legal challenge to the RIAA's demand that an ISP
9163 reveal the identity of a user accused of sharing more than 600 songs
9164 through a family computer, see <citetitle>RIAA</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Verizon Internet Services (In
9165 re. Verizon Internet Services)</citetitle>, 240 F. Supp. 2d 24
9166 (D.D.C. 2003). Such a user could face liability ranging as high as $90
9167 million. Such astronomical figures furnish the RIAA with a powerful
9168 arsenal in its prosecution of file sharers. Settlements ranging from
9169 $12,000 to $17,500 for four students accused of heavy file sharing on
9170 university networks must have seemed a mere pittance next to the $98
9171 billion the RIAA could seek should the matter proceed to court. See
9172 Elizabeth Young, <quote>Downloading Could Lead to Fines,</quote> redandblack.com,
9173 August 2003, available at
9174 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #35</ulink>. For an
9175 example of the RIAA's targeting of student file sharing, and of the
9176 subpoenas issued to universities to reveal student file-sharer
9177 identities, see James Collins, <quote>RIAA Steps Up Bid to Force BC, MIT to
9178 Name Students,</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe</citetitle>, 8 August 2003, D3, available at
9179 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #36</ulink>.
9180 <indexterm><primary>Conyers, John, Jr.</primary></indexterm>
9181 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.</primary></indexterm>
9182 </para></footnote>
9183
9184 </para>
9185 <indexterm startref="idxchimera" class='endofrange'/>
9186 <para>
9187 Alternatively, we could respond to file sharing the way many kids act
9188 as though we've responded. We could totally legalize it. Let there be
9189 no copyright liability, either civil or criminal, for making
9190 copyrighted content available on the Net. Make file sharing like
9191 gossip: regulated, if at all, by social norms but not by law.
9192 </para>
9193 <para>
9194 Either response is possible. I think either would be a mistake.
9195 Rather than embrace one of these two extremes, we should embrace
9196 something that recognizes the truth in both. And while I end this book
9197 with a sketch of a system that does just that, my aim in the next
9198 chapter is to show just how awful it would be for us to adopt the
9199 zero-tolerance extreme. I believe <emphasis>either</emphasis> extreme
9200 would be worse than a reasonable alternative. But I believe the
9201 zero-tolerance solution would be the worse of the two extremes.
9202 </para>
9203 <para>
9204
9205 <!-- PAGE BREAK 190 -->
9206 Yet zero tolerance is increasingly our government's policy. In the
9207 middle of the chaos that the Internet has created, an extraordinary
9208 land grab is occurring. The law and technology are being shifted to
9209 give content holders a kind of control over our culture that they have
9210 never had before. And in this extremism, many an opportunity for new
9211 innovation and new creativity will be lost.
9212 </para>
9213 <para>
9214 I'm not talking about the opportunities for kids to <quote>steal</quote> music. My
9215 focus instead is the commercial and cultural innovation that this war
9216 will also kill. We have never seen the power to innovate spread so
9217 broadly among our citizens, and we have just begun to see the
9218 innovation that this power will unleash. Yet the Internet has already
9219 seen the passing of one cycle of innovation around technologies to
9220 distribute content. The law is responsible for this passing. As the
9221 vice president for global public policy at one of these new
9222 innovators, eMusic.com, put it when criticizing the DMCA's added
9223 protection for copyrighted material,
9224 </para>
9225 <blockquote>
9226 <para>
9227 eMusic opposes music piracy. We are a distributor of copyrighted
9228 material, and we want to protect those rights.
9229 </para>
9230 <para>
9231 But building a technology fortress that locks in the clout of the
9232 major labels is by no means the only way to protect copyright
9233 interests, nor is it necessarily the best. It is simply too early to
9234 answer that question. Market forces operating naturally may very well
9235 produce a totally different industry model.
9236 </para>
9237 <para>
9238 This is a critical point. The choices that industry sectors make
9239 with respect to these systems will in many ways directly shape the
9240 market for digital media and the manner in which digital media
9241 are distributed. This in turn will directly influence the options
9242 that are available to consumers, both in terms of the ease with
9243 which they will be able to access digital media and the equipment
9244 that they will require to do so. Poor choices made this early in the
9245 game will retard the growth of this market, hurting everyone's
9246 interests.<footnote><para>
9247 <!-- f3. -->
9248 WIPO and the DMCA One Year Later: Assessing Consumer Access to Digital
9249 Entertainment on the Internet and Other Media: Hearing Before the
9250 Subcommittee on Telecommunications, Trade, and Consumer Protection,
9251 House Committee on Commerce, 106th Cong. 29 (1999) (statement of Peter
9252 Harter, vice president, Global Public Policy and Standards,
9253 EMusic.com), available in LEXIS, Federal Document Clearing House
9254 Congressional Testimony File. </para></footnote>
9255 </para>
9256 </blockquote>
9257 <!-- PAGE BREAK 191 -->
9258 <para>
9259 In April 2001, eMusic.com was purchased by Vivendi Universal,
9260 one of <quote>the major labels.</quote> Its position on these matters has now
9261 changed.
9262 <indexterm><primary>Vivendi Universal</primary></indexterm>
9263 </para>
9264 <para>
9265 Reversing our tradition of tolerance now will not merely quash
9266 piracy. It will sacrifice values that are important to this culture,
9267 and will kill opportunities that could be extraordinarily valuable.
9268 </para>
9269
9270 <!-- PAGE BREAK 192 -->
9271 </chapter>
9272 <chapter label="12" id="harms">
9273 <title>CHAPTER TWELVE: Harms</title>
9274 <para>
9275 <emphasis role='strong'>To fight</emphasis> <quote>piracy,</quote> to
9276 protect <quote>property,</quote> the content industry has launched a
9277 war. Lobbying and lots of campaign contributions have now brought the
9278 government into this war. As with any war, this one will have both
9279 direct and collateral damage. As with any war of prohibition, these
9280 damages will be suffered most by our own people.
9281 </para>
9282 <para>
9283 My aim so far has been to describe the consequences of this war, in
9284 particular, the consequences for <quote>free culture.</quote> But my aim now is to
9285 extend this description of consequences into an argument. Is this war
9286 justified?
9287 </para>
9288 <para>
9289 In my view, it is not. There is no good reason why this time, for the
9290 first time, the law should defend the old against the new, just when the
9291 power of the property called <quote>intellectual property</quote> is at its greatest in
9292 our history.
9293 </para>
9294 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
9295 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
9296 <para>
9297 Yet <quote>common sense</quote> does not see it this way. Common sense is still on
9298 the side of the Causbys and the content industry. The extreme claims
9299 of control in the name of property still resonate; the uncritical
9300 rejection of <quote>piracy</quote> still has play.
9301 </para>
9302 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard</primary></indexterm>
9303 <para>
9304 <!-- PAGE BREAK 193 -->
9305 There will be many consequences of continuing this war. I want to
9306 describe just three. All three might be said to be unintended. I am quite
9307 confident the third is unintended. I'm less sure about the first two. The
9308 first two protect modern RCAs, but there is no Howard Armstrong in
9309 the wings to fight today's monopolists of culture.
9310 </para>
9311 <section id="constrain">
9312 <title>Constraining Creators</title>
9313 <para>
9314 In the next ten years we will see an explosion of digital
9315 technologies. These technologies will enable almost anyone to capture
9316 and share content. Capturing and sharing content, of course, is what
9317 humans have done since the dawn of man. It is how we learn and
9318 communicate. But capturing and sharing through digital technology is
9319 different. The fidelity and power are different. You could send an
9320 e-mail telling someone about a joke you saw on Comedy Central, or you
9321 could send the clip. You could write an essay about the
9322 inconsistencies in the arguments of the politician you most love to
9323 hate, or you could make a short film that puts statement against
9324 statement. You could write a poem to express your love, or you could
9325 weave together a string&mdash;a mash-up&mdash; of songs from your
9326 favorite artists in a collage and make it available on the Net.
9327 </para>
9328 <para>
9329 This digital <quote>capturing and sharing</quote> is in part an extension of the
9330 capturing and sharing that has always been integral to our culture,
9331 and in part it is something new. It is continuous with the Kodak, but
9332 it explodes the boundaries of Kodak-like technologies. The technology
9333 of digital <quote>capturing and sharing</quote> promises a world of extraordinarily
9334 diverse creativity that can be easily and broadly shared. And as that
9335 creativity is applied to democracy, it will enable a broad range of
9336 citizens to use technology to express and criticize and contribute to
9337 the culture all around.
9338 </para>
9339 <para>
9340 Technology has thus given us an opportunity to do something with
9341 culture that has only ever been possible for individuals in small groups,
9342
9343 <!-- PAGE BREAK 194 -->
9344
9345 isolated from others. Think about an old man telling a story to a
9346 collection of neighbors in a small town. Now imagine that same
9347 storytelling extended across the globe.
9348 </para>
9349 <para>
9350 Yet all this is possible only if the activity is presumptively legal. In
9351 the current regime of legal regulation, it is not. Forget file sharing for
9352 a moment. Think about your favorite amazing sites on the Net. Web
9353 sites that offer plot summaries from forgotten television shows; sites
9354 that catalog cartoons from the 1960s; sites that mix images and sound
9355 to criticize politicians or businesses; sites that gather newspaper articles
9356 on remote topics of science or culture. There is a vast amount of creative
9357 work spread across the Internet. But as the law is currently crafted, this
9358 work is presumptively illegal.
9359 </para>
9360 <indexterm><primary>Worldcom</primary></indexterm>
9361 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of</secondary></indexterm>
9362 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits</primary><secondary>in recording industry</secondary></indexterm>
9363 <indexterm><primary>doctors malpractice claims against</primary></indexterm>
9364 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse</primary></indexterm>
9365 <para>
9366 That presumption will increasingly chill creativity, as the
9367 examples of extreme penalties for vague infringements continue to
9368 proliferate. It is impossible to get a clear sense of what's allowed
9369 and what's not, and at the same time, the penalties for crossing the
9370 line are astonishingly harsh. The four students who were threatened
9371 by the RIAA ( Jesse Jordan of chapter 3 was just one) were threatened
9372 with a $98 billion lawsuit for building search engines that permitted
9373 songs to be copied. Yet World-Com&mdash;which defrauded investors of
9374 $11 billion, resulting in a loss to investors in market capitalization
9375 of over $200 billion&mdash;received a fine of a mere $750
9376 million.<footnote><para>
9377 <!-- f1. -->
9378 See Lynne W. Jeter, <citetitle>Disconnected: Deceit and Betrayal at WorldCom</citetitle>
9379 (Hoboken, N.J.: John Wiley &amp; Sons, 2003), 176, 204; for details of
9380 the settlement, see MCI press release, <quote>MCI Wins U.S. District Court
9381 Approval for SEC Settlement</quote> (7 July 2003), available at
9382 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #37</ulink>.
9383 <indexterm><primary>Worldcom</primary></indexterm>
9384 </para></footnote>
9385 And under legislation being pushed in Congress right now, a doctor who
9386 negligently removes the wrong leg in an operation would be liable for
9387 no more than $250,000 in damages for pain and
9388 suffering.<footnote>
9389 <para>
9390 <!-- f2. --> The bill, modeled after California's tort reform model, was passed in the
9391 House of Representatives but defeated in a Senate vote in July 2003. For
9392 an overview, see Tanya Albert, <quote>Measure Stalls in Senate: `We'll Be Back,'
9393 Say Tort Reformers,</quote> amednews.com, 28 July 2003, available at
9394 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #38</ulink>,
9395 and <quote>Senate Turns Back Malpractice Caps,</quote> CBSNews.com, 9 July 2003,
9396 available at
9397 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #39</ulink>. President Bush has continued to urge tort reform in
9398 recent months.
9399 <indexterm><primary>Bush, George W.</primary></indexterm>
9400 </para></footnote>
9401 Can common sense recognize the absurdity in a world where
9402 the maximum fine for downloading two songs off the Internet is more
9403 than the fine for a doctor's negligently butchering a patient?
9404 </para>
9405 <indexterm><primary>art, underground</primary></indexterm>
9406 <para>
9407 The consequence of this legal uncertainty, tied to these extremely
9408 high penalties, is that an extraordinary amount of creativity will
9409 either never be exercised, or never be exercised in the open. We drive
9410 this creative process underground by branding the modern-day Walt
9411 Disneys <quote>pirates.</quote> We make it impossible for businesses to rely upon a
9412 public domain, because the boundaries of the public domain are
9413 designed to
9414
9415 <!-- PAGE BREAK 195 -->
9416 be unclear. It never pays to do anything except pay for the right
9417 to create, and hence only those who can pay are allowed to create. As
9418 was the case in the Soviet Union, though for very different reasons,
9419 we will begin to see a world of underground art&mdash;not because the
9420 message is necessarily political, or because the subject is
9421 controversial, but because the very act of creating the art is legally
9422 fraught. Already, exhibits of <quote>illegal art</quote> tour the United
9423 States.<footnote><para>
9424 <!-- f3. -->
9425
9426 See Danit Lidor, <quote>Artists Just Wanna Be Free,</quote> <citetitle>Wired</citetitle>, 7 July
9427 2003, available at
9428 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #40</ulink>. For an overview of the exhibition, see
9429 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #41</ulink>.
9430 </para></footnote>
9431 In what does their <quote>illegality</quote> consist?
9432 In the act of mixing the culture around us with an expression that is
9433 critical or reflective.
9434 </para>
9435 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by</primary></indexterm>
9436 <para>
9437 Part of the reason for this fear of illegality has to do with the
9438 changing law. I described that change in detail in chapter
9439 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="property-i"/>. But an
9440 even bigger part has to do with the increasing ease with which
9441 infractions can be tracked. As users of file-sharing systems
9442 discovered in 2002, it is a trivial matter for copyright owners to get
9443 courts to order Internet service providers to reveal who has what
9444 content. It is as if your cassette tape player transmitted a list of
9445 the songs that you played in the privacy of your own home that anyone
9446 could tune into for whatever reason they chose.
9447 </para>
9448 <indexterm><primary>images, ownership of</primary></indexterm>
9449 <para>
9450 Never in our history has a painter had to worry about whether
9451 his painting infringed on someone else's work; but the modern-day
9452 painter, using the tools of Photoshop, sharing content on the Web,
9453 must worry all the time. Images are all around, but the only safe images
9454 to use in the act of creation are those purchased from Corbis or another
9455 image farm. And in purchasing, censoring happens. There is a free
9456 market in pencils; we needn't worry about its effect on creativity. But
9457 there is a highly regulated, monopolized market in cultural icons; the
9458 right to cultivate and transform them is not similarly free.
9459 </para>
9460 <para>
9461 Lawyers rarely see this because lawyers are rarely empirical. As I
9462 described in chapter
9463 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="recorders"/>, in
9464 response to the story about documentary filmmaker Jon Else, I have
9465 been lectured again and again by lawyers who insist Else's use was
9466 fair use, and hence I am wrong to say that the law regulates such a
9467 use.
9468 </para>
9469 <para>
9470
9471 <!-- PAGE BREAK 196 -->
9472 But fair use in America simply means the right to hire a lawyer to
9473 defend your right to create. And as lawyers love to forget, our system
9474 for defending rights such as fair use is astonishingly bad&mdash;in
9475 practically every context, but especially here. It costs too much, it
9476 delivers too slowly, and what it delivers often has little connection
9477 to the justice underlying the claim. The legal system may be tolerable
9478 for the very rich. For everyone else, it is an embarrassment to a
9479 tradition that prides itself on the rule of law.
9480 </para>
9481 <para>
9482 Judges and lawyers can tell themselves that fair use provides adequate
9483 <quote>breathing room</quote> between regulation by the law and the access the law
9484 should allow. But it is a measure of how out of touch our legal system
9485 has become that anyone actually believes this. The rules that
9486 publishers impose upon writers, the rules that film distributors
9487 impose upon filmmakers, the rules that newspapers impose upon
9488 journalists&mdash; these are the real laws governing creativity. And
9489 these rules have little relationship to the <quote>law</quote> with which judges
9490 comfort themselves.
9491 </para>
9492 <para>
9493 For in a world that threatens $150,000 for a single willful
9494 infringement of a copyright, and which demands tens of thousands of
9495 dollars to even defend against a copyright infringement claim, and
9496 which would never return to the wrongfully accused defendant anything
9497 of the costs she suffered to defend her right to speak&mdash;in that
9498 world, the astonishingly broad regulations that pass under the name
9499 <quote>copyright</quote> silence speech and creativity. And in that world, it takes
9500 a studied blindness for people to continue to believe they live in a
9501 culture that is free.
9502 </para>
9503 <para>
9504 As Jed Horovitz, the businessman behind Video Pipeline, said to me,
9505 </para>
9506 <blockquote>
9507 <para>
9508 We're losing [creative] opportunities right and left. Creative people
9509 are being forced not to express themselves. Thoughts are not being
9510 expressed. And while a lot of stuff may [still] be created, it still
9511 won't get distributed. Even if the stuff gets made &hellip; you're not
9512 going to get it distributed in the mainstream media unless
9513 <!-- PAGE BREAK 197 -->
9514 you've got a little note from a lawyer saying, <quote>This has been
9515 cleared.</quote> You're not even going to get it on PBS without that kind of
9516 permission. That's the point at which they control it.
9517 </para>
9518 </blockquote>
9519 </section>
9520 <section id="innovators">
9521 <title>Constraining Innovators</title>
9522 <para>
9523 The story of the last section was a crunchy-lefty
9524 story&mdash;creativity quashed, artists who can't speak, yada yada
9525 yada. Maybe that doesn't get you going. Maybe you think there's enough
9526 weird art out there, and enough expression that is critical of what
9527 seems to be just about everything. And if you think that, you might
9528 think there's little in this story to worry you.
9529 </para>
9530 <para>
9531 But there's an aspect of this story that is not lefty in any sense.
9532 Indeed, it is an aspect that could be written by the most extreme
9533 promarket ideologue. And if you're one of these sorts (and a special
9534 one at that, 188 pages into a book like this), then you can see this
9535 other aspect by substituting <quote>free market</quote> every place I've spoken of
9536 <quote>free culture.</quote> The point is the same, even if the interests
9537 affecting culture are more fundamental.
9538 </para>
9539 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
9540 <para>
9541 The charge I've been making about the regulation of culture is the
9542 same charge free marketers make about regulating markets. Everyone, of
9543 course, concedes that some regulation of markets is necessary&mdash;at
9544 a minimum, we need rules of property and contract, and courts to
9545 enforce both. Likewise, in this culture debate, everyone concedes that
9546 at least some framework of copyright is also required. But both
9547 perspectives vehemently insist that just because some regulation is
9548 good, it doesn't follow that more regulation is better. And both
9549 perspectives are constantly attuned to the ways in which regulation
9550 simply enables the powerful industries of today to protect themselves
9551 against the competitors of tomorrow.
9552 </para>
9553 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank</primary></indexterm>
9554 <para>
9555 This is the single most dramatic effect of the shift in regulatory
9556 <!-- PAGE BREAK 198 -->
9557 strategy that I described in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select:
9558 labelnumber" linkend="property-i"/>. The consequence of this massive
9559 threat of liability tied to the murky boundaries of copyright law is
9560 that innovators who want to innovate in this space can safely innovate
9561 only if they have the sign-off from last generation's dominant
9562 industries. That lesson has been taught through a series of cases
9563 that were designed and executed to teach venture capitalists a
9564 lesson. That lesson&mdash;what former Napster CEO Hank Barry calls a
9565 <quote>nuclear pall</quote> that has fallen over the Valley&mdash;has been learned.
9566 </para>
9567 <para>
9568 Consider one example to make the point, a story whose beginning
9569 I told in <citetitle>The Future of Ideas</citetitle> and which has progressed in a way that
9570 even I (pessimist extraordinaire) would never have predicted.
9571 </para>
9572 <indexterm><primary>Roberts, Michael</primary></indexterm>
9573 <para>
9574 In 1997, Michael Roberts launched a company called MP3.com. MP3.com
9575 was keen to remake the music business. Their goal was not just to
9576 facilitate new ways to get access to content. Their goal was also to
9577 facilitate new ways to create content. Unlike the major labels,
9578 MP3.com offered creators a venue to distribute their creativity,
9579 without demanding an exclusive engagement from the creators.
9580 </para>
9581 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle</primary></indexterm>
9582 <indexterm id='idxcdsprefdata' class='startofrange'><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>preference data on</secondary></indexterm>
9583 <para>
9584 To make this system work, however, MP3.com needed a reliable way to
9585 recommend music to its users. The idea behind this alternative was to
9586 leverage the revealed preferences of music listeners to recommend new
9587 artists. If you like Lyle Lovett, you're likely to enjoy Bonnie
9588 Raitt. And so on.
9589 </para>
9590 <para>
9591 This idea required a simple way to gather data about user preferences.
9592 MP3.com came up with an extraordinarily clever way to gather this
9593 preference data. In January 2000, the company launched a service
9594 called my.mp3.com. Using software provided by MP3.com, a user would
9595 sign into an account and then insert into her computer a CD. The
9596 software would identify the CD, and then give the user access to that
9597 content. So, for example, if you inserted a CD by Jill Sobule, then
9598 wherever you were&mdash;at work or at home&mdash;you could get access
9599 to that music once you signed into your account. The system was
9600 therefore a kind of music-lockbox.
9601 </para>
9602 <para>
9603 No doubt some could use this system to illegally copy content. But
9604 that opportunity existed with or without MP3.com. The aim of the
9605
9606 <!-- PAGE BREAK 199 -->
9607 my.mp3.com service was to give users access to their own content, and
9608 as a by-product, by seeing the content they already owned, to discover
9609 the kind of content the users liked.
9610 </para>
9611 <indexterm startref='idxcdsprefdata' class='endofrange'/>
9612 <para>
9613 To make this system function, however, MP3.com needed to copy 50,000
9614 CDs to a server. (In principle, it could have been the user who
9615 uploaded the music, but that would have taken a great deal of time,
9616 and would have produced a product of questionable quality.) It
9617 therefore purchased 50,000 CDs from a store, and started the process
9618 of making copies of those CDs. Again, it would not serve the content
9619 from those copies to anyone except those who authenticated that they
9620 had a copy of the CD they wanted to access. So while this was 50,000
9621 copies, it was 50,000 copies directed at giving customers something
9622 they had already bought.
9623 </para>
9624 <indexterm id="idxvivendiuniversal" class='startofrange'><primary>Vivendi Universal</primary></indexterm>
9625 <para>
9626 Nine days after MP3.com launched its service, the five major labels,
9627 headed by the RIAA, brought a lawsuit against MP3.com. MP3.com settled
9628 with four of the five. Nine months later, a federal judge found
9629 MP3.com to have been guilty of willful infringement with respect to
9630 the fifth. Applying the law as it is, the judge imposed a fine against
9631 MP3.com of $118 million. MP3.com then settled with the remaining
9632 plaintiff, Vivendi Universal, paying over $54 million. Vivendi
9633 purchased MP3.com just about a year later.
9634 </para>
9635 <para>
9636 That part of the story I have told before. Now consider its conclusion.
9637 </para>
9638 <para>
9639 After Vivendi purchased MP3.com, Vivendi turned around and filed a
9640 malpractice lawsuit against the lawyers who had advised it that they
9641 had a good faith claim that the service they wanted to offer would be
9642 considered legal under copyright law. This lawsuit alleged that it
9643 should have been obvious that the courts would find this behavior
9644 illegal; therefore, this lawsuit sought to punish any lawyer who had
9645 dared to suggest that the law was less restrictive than the labels
9646 demanded.
9647 </para>
9648 <para>
9649 The clear purpose of this lawsuit (which was settled for an
9650 unspecified amount shortly after the story was no longer covered in
9651 the press) was to send an unequivocal message to lawyers advising
9652 clients in this
9653 <!-- PAGE BREAK 200 -->
9654 space: It is not just your clients who might suffer if the content
9655 industry directs its guns against them. It is also you. So those of
9656 you who believe the law should be less restrictive should realize that
9657 such a view of the law will cost you and your firm dearly.
9658 </para>
9659 <indexterm startref="idxvivendiuniversal" class='endofrange'/>
9660 <indexterm><primary>Hummer, John</primary></indexterm>
9661 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank</primary></indexterm>
9662 <indexterm><primary>Hummer Winblad</primary></indexterm>
9663 <indexterm><primary>EMI</primary></indexterm>
9664 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group</primary></indexterm>
9665 <para>
9666 This strategy is not just limited to the lawyers. In April 2003,
9667 Universal and EMI brought a lawsuit against Hummer Winblad, the
9668 venture capital firm (VC) that had funded Napster at a certain stage of
9669 its development, its cofounder ( John Hummer), and general partner
9670 (Hank Barry).<footnote><para>
9671 <!-- f4. -->
9672 See Joseph Menn, <quote>Universal, EMI Sue Napster Investor,</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9673 Times</citetitle>, 23 April 2003. For a parallel argument about the effects on
9674 innovation in the distribution of music, see Janelle Brown, <quote>The Music
9675 Revolution Will Not Be Digitized,</quote> Salon.com, 1 June 2001, available
9676 at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #42</ulink>.
9677 See also Jon Healey, <quote>Online Music Services Besieged,</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9678 Times</citetitle>, 28 May 2001.
9679 </para></footnote>
9680 The claim here, as well, was that the VC should have recognized the
9681 right of the content industry to control how the industry should
9682 develop. They should be held personally liable for funding a company
9683 whose business turned out to be beyond the law. Here again, the aim of
9684 the lawsuit is transparent: Any VC now recognizes that if you fund a
9685 company whose business is not approved of by the dinosaurs, you are at
9686 risk not just in the marketplace, but in the courtroom as well. Your
9687 investment buys you not only a company, it also buys you a lawsuit.
9688 So extreme has the environment become that even car manufacturers are
9689 afraid of technologies that touch content. In an article in
9690 <citetitle>Business 2.0</citetitle>, Rafe Needleman describes a
9691 discussion with BMW:
9692 </para>
9693 <blockquote>
9694 <indexterm><primary>BMW</primary></indexterm>
9695 <indexterm><primary>cars, MP3 sound system in</primary></indexterm>
9696 <para>
9697 I asked why, with all the storage capacity and computer power in
9698 the car, there was no way to play MP3 files. I was told that BMW
9699 engineers in Germany had rigged a new vehicle to play MP3s via
9700 the car's built-in sound system, but that the company's marketing
9701 and legal departments weren't comfortable with pushing this
9702 forward for release stateside. Even today, no new cars are sold in the
9703 United States with bona fide MP3 players. &hellip; <footnote>
9704 <para>
9705 <!-- f5. -->
9706 Rafe Needleman, <quote>Driving in Cars with MP3s,</quote> <citetitle>Business 2.0</citetitle>, 16 June
9707 2003, available at
9708 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #43</ulink>. I am grateful
9709 to Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli for this example.
9710 <indexterm><primary>Needleman, Rafe</primary></indexterm>
9711 </para></footnote>
9712 </para>
9713 </blockquote>
9714 <para>
9715 This is the world of the mafia&mdash;filled with <quote>your money or your
9716 life</quote> offers, governed in the end not by courts but by the threats
9717 that the law empowers copyright holders to exercise. It is a system
9718 that will obviously and necessarily stifle new innovation. It is hard
9719 enough to start a company. It is impossibly hard if that company is
9720 constantly threatened by litigation.
9721 </para>
9722 <para>
9723
9724 <!-- PAGE BREAK 201 -->
9725 The point is not that businesses should have a right to start illegal
9726 enterprises. The point is the definition of <quote>illegal.</quote> The law is a
9727 mess of uncertainty. We have no good way to know how it should apply
9728 to new technologies. Yet by reversing our tradition of judicial
9729 deference, and by embracing the astonishingly high penalties that
9730 copyright law imposes, that uncertainty now yields a reality which is
9731 far more conservative than is right. If the law imposed the death
9732 penalty for parking tickets, we'd not only have fewer parking tickets,
9733 we'd also have much less driving. The same principle applies to
9734 innovation. If innovation is constantly checked by this uncertain and
9735 unlimited liability, we will have much less vibrant innovation and
9736 much less creativity.
9737 </para>
9738 <indexterm><primary>market constraints</primary></indexterm>
9739 <para>
9740 The point is directly parallel to the crunchy-lefty point about fair
9741 use. Whatever the <quote>real</quote> law is, realism about the effect of law in
9742 both contexts is the same. This wildly punitive system of regulation
9743 will systematically stifle creativity and innovation. It will protect
9744 some industries and some creators, but it will harm industry and
9745 creativity generally. Free market and free culture depend upon vibrant
9746 competition. Yet the effect of the law today is to stifle just this
9747 kind of competition. The effect is to produce an overregulated
9748 culture, just as the effect of too much control in the market is to
9749 produce an overregulatedregulated market.
9750 </para>
9751 <para>
9752 The building of a permission culture, rather than a free culture, is
9753 the first important way in which the changes I have described will
9754 burden innovation. A permission culture means a lawyer's
9755 culture&mdash;a culture in which the ability to create requires a call
9756 to your lawyer. Again, I am not antilawyer, at least when they're kept
9757 in their proper place. I am certainly not antilaw. But our profession
9758 has lost the sense of its limits. And leaders in our profession have
9759 lost an appreciation of the high costs that our profession imposes
9760 upon others. The inefficiency of the law is an embarrassment to our
9761 tradition. And while I believe our profession should therefore do
9762 everything it can to make the law more efficient, it should at least
9763 do everything it can to limit the reach of the
9764 <!-- PAGE BREAK 202 -->
9765 law where the law is not doing any good. The transaction costs buried
9766 within a permission culture are enough to bury a wide range of
9767 creativity. Someone needs to do a lot of justifying to justify that
9768 result.
9769 </para>
9770 <para>
9771 <emphasis role='strong'>The uncertainty</emphasis> of the law is one
9772 burden on innovation. There is a second burden that operates more
9773 directly. This is the effort by many in the content industry to use
9774 the law to directly regulate the technology of the Internet so that it
9775 better protects their content.
9776 </para>
9777 <para>
9778 The motivation for this response is obvious. The Internet enables the
9779 efficient spread of content. That efficiency is a feature of the
9780 Internet's design. But from the perspective of the content industry,
9781 this feature is a <quote>bug.</quote> The efficient spread of content means that
9782 content distributors have a harder time controlling the distribution
9783 of content. One obvious response to this efficiency is thus to make
9784 the Internet less efficient. If the Internet enables <quote>piracy,</quote> then,
9785 this response says, we should break the kneecaps of the Internet.
9786 </para>
9787 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag</primary></indexterm>
9788 <para>
9789 The examples of this form of legislation are many. At the urging of
9790 the content industry, some in Congress have threatened legislation that
9791 would require computers to determine whether the content they access
9792 is protected or not, and to disable the spread of protected content.<footnote><para>
9793 <!-- f6. --> <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,</quote> GartnerG2 and
9794 the Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School
9795 (2003), 33&ndash;35, available at
9796 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #44</ulink>.
9797 </para></footnote>
9798 Congress has already launched proceedings to explore a mandatory
9799 <quote>broadcast flag</quote> that would be required on any device capable of
9800 transmitting digital video (i.e., a computer), and that would disable
9801 the copying of any content that is marked with a broadcast flag. Other
9802 members of Congress have proposed immunizing content providers from
9803 liability for technology they might deploy that would hunt down
9804 copyright violators and disable their machines.<footnote><para>
9805 <!-- f7. -->
9806 GartnerG2, 26&ndash;27.
9807 </para></footnote>
9808 </para>
9809 <para>
9810 In one sense, these solutions seem sensible. If the problem is the
9811 code, why not regulate the code to remove the problem. But any
9812 regulation of technical infrastructure will always be tuned to the
9813 particular technology of the day. It will impose significant burdens
9814 and costs on
9815 <!-- PAGE BREAK 203 -->
9816 the technology, but will likely be eclipsed by advances around exactly
9817 those requirements.
9818 </para>
9819 <indexterm><primary>Intel</primary></indexterm>
9820 <para>
9821 In March 2002, a broad coalition of technology companies, led by
9822 Intel, tried to get Congress to see the harm that such legislation
9823 would impose.<footnote><para>
9824 <!-- f8. -->
9825 See David McGuire, <quote>Tech Execs Square Off Over Piracy,</quote> Newsbytes,
9826 February 2002 (Entertainment).
9827 </para></footnote>
9828 Their argument was obviously not that copyright should not be
9829 protected. Instead, they argued, any protection should not do more
9830 harm than good.
9831 </para>
9832 <para>
9833 <emphasis role='strong'>There is one</emphasis> more obvious way in
9834 which this war has harmed innovation&mdash;again, a story that will be
9835 quite familiar to the free market crowd.
9836 </para>
9837 <para>
9838 Copyright may be property, but like all property, it is also a form
9839 of regulation. It is a regulation that benefits some and harms others.
9840 When done right, it benefits creators and harms leeches. When done
9841 wrong, it is regulation the powerful use to defeat competitors.
9842 </para>
9843 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
9844 <indexterm><primary>VCRs</primary></indexterm>
9845 <para>
9846 As I described in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
9847 linkend="property-i"/>, despite this feature of copyright as
9848 regulation, and subject to important qualifications outlined by
9849 Jessica Litman in her book <citetitle>Digital
9850 Copyright</citetitle>,<footnote><para>
9851 <!-- f9. -->
9852 Jessica Litman, <citetitle>Digital Copyright</citetitle> (Amherst,
9853 N.Y.: Prometheus Books, 2001).
9854 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica</primary></indexterm>
9855 </para></footnote>
9856 overall this history of copyright is not bad. As chapter 10 details,
9857 when new technologies have come along, Congress has struck a balance
9858 to assure that the new is protected from the old. Compulsory, or
9859 statutory, licenses have been one part of that strategy. Free use (as
9860 in the case of the VCR) has been another.
9861 </para>
9862 <para>
9863 But that pattern of deference to new technologies has now changed
9864 with the rise of the Internet. Rather than striking a balance between
9865 the claims of a new technology and the legitimate rights of content
9866 creators, both the courts and Congress have imposed legal restrictions
9867 that will have the effect of smothering the new to benefit the old.
9868 </para>
9869 <para>
9870 The response by the courts has been fairly universal.<footnote><para>
9871 <!-- f10. -->
9872 <indexterm><primary>Grokster, Ltd.</primary></indexterm>
9873 The only circuit court exception is found in <citetitle>Recording Industry
9874 Association of America (RIAA)</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Diamond Multimedia Systems</citetitle>, 180 F. 3d
9875 1072 (9th Cir. 1999). There the court of appeals for the Ninth Circuit
9876 reasoned that makers of a portable MP3 player were not liable for
9877 contributory copyright infringement for a device that is unable to
9878 record or redistribute music (a device whose only copying function is
9879 to render portable a music file already stored on a user's hard
9880 drive). At the district court level, the only exception is found in
9881 <citetitle>Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer Studios, Inc</citetitle>. v. <citetitle>Grokster, Ltd</citetitle>., 259 F. Supp. 2d
9882 1029 (C.D. Cal., 2003), where the court found the link between the
9883 distributor and any given user's conduct too attenuated to make the
9884 distributor liable for contributory or vicarious infringement
9885 liability.
9886 </para></footnote>
9887 It has been mirrored in the responses threatened and actually
9888 implemented by Congress. I won't catalog all of those responses
9889 here.<footnote><para>
9890 <!-- f11. -->
9891 <indexterm><primary>Tauzin, Billy</primary></indexterm>
9892 For example, in July 2002, Representative Howard Berman introduced the
9893 Peer-to-Peer Piracy Prevention Act (H.R. 5211), which would immunize
9894 copyright holders from liability for damage done to computers when the
9895 copyright holders use technology to stop copyright infringement. In
9896 August 2002, Representative Billy Tauzin introduced a bill to mandate
9897 that technologies capable of rebroadcasting digital copies of films
9898 broadcast on TV (i.e., computers) respect a <quote>broadcast flag</quote> that
9899 would disable copying of that content. And in March of the same year,
9900 Senator Fritz Hollings introduced the Consumer Broadband and Digital
9901 Television Promotion Act, which mandated copyright protection
9902 technology in all digital media devices. See GartnerG2, <quote>Copyright and
9903 Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,</quote> 27 June 2003, 33&ndash;34,
9904 available at
9905 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #44</ulink>.
9906 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.</primary></indexterm>
9907 <indexterm><primary>Hollings, Fritz</primary></indexterm>
9908 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag</primary></indexterm>
9909 </para></footnote>
9910 But there is one example that captures the flavor of them all. This is
9911 the story of the demise of Internet radio.
9912 </para>
9913 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
9914 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.</primary></indexterm>
9915 <para>
9916
9917 <!-- PAGE BREAK 204 -->
9918 As I described in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
9919 linkend="pirates"/>, when a radio station plays a song, the recording
9920 artist doesn't get paid for that <quote>radio performance</quote> unless he or she
9921 is also the composer. So, for example if Marilyn Monroe had recorded a
9922 version of <quote>Happy Birthday</quote>&mdash;to memorialize her famous
9923 performance before President Kennedy at Madison Square Garden&mdash;
9924 then whenever that recording was played on the radio, the current
9925 copyright owners of <quote>Happy Birthday</quote> would get some money, whereas
9926 Marilyn Monroe would not.
9927 </para>
9928 <para>
9929 The reasoning behind this balance struck by Congress makes some
9930 sense. The justification was that radio was a kind of advertising. The
9931 recording artist thus benefited because by playing her music, the
9932 radio station was making it more likely that her records would be
9933 purchased. Thus, the recording artist got something, even if only
9934 indirectly. Probably this reasoning had less to do with the result
9935 than with the power of radio stations: Their lobbyists were quite good
9936 at stopping any efforts to get Congress to require compensation to the
9937 recording artists.
9938 </para>
9939 <para>
9940 Enter Internet radio. Like regular radio, Internet radio is a
9941 technology to stream content from a broadcaster to a listener. The
9942 broadcast travels across the Internet, not across the ether of radio
9943 spectrum. Thus, I can <quote>tune in</quote> to an Internet radio station in
9944 Berlin while sitting in San Francisco, even though there's no way for
9945 me to tune in to a regular radio station much beyond the San Francisco
9946 metropolitan area.
9947 </para>
9948 <para>
9949 This feature of the architecture of Internet radio means that there
9950 are potentially an unlimited number of radio stations that a user
9951 could tune in to using her computer, whereas under the existing
9952 architecture for broadcast radio, there is an obvious limit to the
9953 number of broadcasters and clear broadcast frequencies. Internet radio
9954 could therefore be more competitive than regular radio; it could
9955 provide a wider range of selections. And because the potential
9956 audience for Internet radio is the whole world, niche stations could
9957 easily develop and market their content to a relatively large number
9958 of users worldwide. According to some estimates, more than eighty
9959 million users worldwide have tuned in to this new form of radio.
9960 </para>
9961 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard</primary></indexterm>
9962 <para>
9963
9964 <!-- PAGE BREAK 205 -->
9965 Internet radio is thus to radio what FM was to AM. It is an
9966 improvement potentially vastly more significant than the FM
9967 improvement over AM, since not only is the technology better, so, too,
9968 is the competition. Indeed, there is a direct parallel between the
9969 fight to establish FM radio and the fight to protect Internet
9970 radio. As one author describes Howard Armstrong's struggle to enable
9971 FM radio,
9972 </para>
9973 <blockquote>
9974 <para>
9975 An almost unlimited number of FM stations was possible in the
9976 shortwaves, thus ending the unnatural restrictions imposed on radio in
9977 the crowded longwaves. If FM were freely developed, the number of
9978 stations would be limited only by economics and competition rather
9979 than by technical restrictions. &hellip; Armstrong likened the situation
9980 that had grown up in radio to that following the invention of the
9981 printing press, when governments and ruling interests attempted to
9982 control this new instrument of mass communications by imposing
9983 restrictive licenses on it. This tyranny was broken only when it
9984 became possible for men freely to acquire printing presses and freely
9985 to run them. FM in this sense was as great an invention as the
9986 printing presses, for it gave radio the opportunity to strike off its
9987 shackles.<footnote><para>
9988 <!-- f12. -->
9989 Lessing, 239.
9990 </para></footnote>
9991 </para>
9992 </blockquote>
9993 <para>
9994 This potential for FM radio was never realized&mdash;not
9995 because Armstrong was wrong about the technology, but because he
9996 underestimated the power of <quote>vested interests, habits, customs and
9997 legislation</quote><footnote><para>
9998 <!-- f13. -->
9999 Ibid., 229.
10000 </para></footnote>
10001 to retard the growth of this competing technology.
10002 </para>
10003 <para>
10004 Now the very same claim could be made about Internet radio. For
10005 again, there is no technical limitation that could restrict the number of
10006 Internet radio stations. The only restrictions on Internet radio are
10007 those imposed by the law. Copyright law is one such law. So the first
10008 question we should ask is, what copyright rules would govern Internet
10009 radio?
10010 </para>
10011 <indexterm id='idxartistspayments2' class='startofrange'><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
10012 <para>
10013 But here the power of the lobbyists is reversed. Internet radio is a
10014 new industry. The recording artists, on the other hand, have a very
10015
10016 <!-- PAGE BREAK 206 -->
10017 powerful lobby, the RIAA. Thus when Congress considered the phenomenon
10018 of Internet radio in 1995, the lobbyists had primed Congress to adopt
10019 a different rule for Internet radio than the rule that applies to
10020 terrestrial radio. While terrestrial radio does not have to pay our
10021 hypothetical Marilyn Monroe when it plays her hypothetical recording
10022 of <quote>Happy Birthday</quote> on the air, <emphasis>Internet radio
10023 does</emphasis>. Not only is the law not neutral toward Internet
10024 radio&mdash;the law actually burdens Internet radio more than it
10025 burdens terrestrial radio.
10026 </para>
10027 <para>
10028 This financial burden is not slight. As Harvard law professor
10029 William Fisher estimates, if an Internet radio station distributed adfree
10030 popular music to (on average) ten thousand listeners, twenty-four
10031 hours a day, the total artist fees that radio station would owe would be
10032 over $1 million a year.<footnote>
10033 <para>
10034 <!-- f14. -->
10035 This example was derived from fees set by the original Copyright
10036 Arbitration Royalty Panel (CARP) proceedings, and is drawn from an
10037 example offered by Professor William Fisher. Conference Proceedings,
10038 iLaw (Stanford), 3 July 2003, on file with author. Professors Fisher
10039 and Zittrain submitted testimony in the CARP proceeding that was
10040 ultimately rejected. See Jonathan Zittrain, Digital Performance Right
10041 in Sound Recordings and Ephemeral Recordings, Docket No. 2000-9, CARP
10042 DTRA 1 and 2, available at
10043 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #45</ulink>.
10044 For an excellent analysis making a similar point, see Randal
10045 C. Picker, <quote>Copyright as Entry Policy: The Case of Digital
10046 Distribution,</quote> <citetitle>Antitrust Bulletin</citetitle> (Summer/Fall 2002): 461: <quote>This was
10047 not confusion, these are just old-fashioned entry barriers. Analog
10048 radio stations are protected from digital entrants, reducing entry in
10049 radio and diversity. Yes, this is done in the name of getting
10050 royalties to copyright holders, but, absent the play of powerful
10051 interests, that could have been done in a media-neutral way.</quote>
10052 <indexterm><primary>CARP (Copyright Arbitration Royalty Panel)</primary></indexterm>
10053 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.</primary></indexterm>
10054 </para></footnote>
10055 A regular radio station broadcasting the same content would pay no
10056 equivalent fee.
10057 </para>
10058 <indexterm startref='idxartistspayments2' class='endofrange'/>
10059 <para>
10060 The burden is not financial only. Under the original rules that were
10061 proposed, an Internet radio station (but not a terrestrial radio
10062 station) would have to collect the following data from <emphasis>every
10063 listening transaction</emphasis>:
10064 </para>
10065 <!-- PAGE BREAK 207 -->
10066 <orderedlist numeration="arabic">
10067 <listitem><para>
10068 name of the service;
10069 </para></listitem>
10070 <listitem><para>
10071 channel of the program (AM/FM stations use station ID);
10072 </para></listitem>
10073 <listitem><para>
10074 type of program (archived/looped/live);
10075 </para></listitem>
10076 <listitem><para>
10077 date of transmission;
10078 </para></listitem>
10079 <listitem><para>
10080 time of transmission;
10081 </para></listitem>
10082 <listitem><para>
10083 time zone of origination of transmission;
10084 </para></listitem>
10085 <listitem><para>
10086 numeric designation of the place of the sound recording within the program;
10087 </para></listitem>
10088 <listitem><para>
10089 duration of transmission (to nearest second);
10090 </para></listitem>
10091 <listitem><para>
10092 sound recording title;
10093 </para></listitem>
10094 <listitem><para>
10095 ISRC code of the recording;
10096 </para></listitem>
10097 <listitem><para>
10098 release year of the album per copyright notice and in the case of compilation albums, the release year of the album and copy- right date of the track;
10099 </para></listitem>
10100 <listitem><para>
10101 featured recording artist;
10102 </para></listitem>
10103 <listitem><para>
10104 retail album title;
10105 </para></listitem>
10106 <listitem><para>
10107 recording label;
10108 </para></listitem>
10109 <listitem><para>
10110 UPC code of the retail album;
10111 </para></listitem>
10112 <listitem><para>
10113 catalog number;
10114 </para></listitem>
10115 <listitem><para>
10116 copyright owner information;
10117 </para></listitem>
10118 <listitem><para>
10119 musical genre of the channel or program (station format);
10120 </para></listitem>
10121 <listitem><para>
10122 name of the service or entity;
10123 </para></listitem>
10124 <listitem><para>
10125 channel or program;
10126 </para></listitem>
10127 <listitem><para>
10128 date and time that the user logged in (in the user's time zone);
10129 </para></listitem>
10130 <listitem><para>
10131 date and time that the user logged out (in the user's time zone);
10132 </para></listitem>
10133 <listitem><para>
10134 time zone where the signal was received (user);
10135 </para></listitem>
10136 <listitem><para>
10137 unique user identifier;
10138 </para></listitem>
10139 <listitem><para>
10140 the country in which the user received the transmissions.
10141 </para></listitem>
10142 </orderedlist>
10143
10144 <para>
10145 The Librarian of Congress eventually suspended these reporting
10146 requirements, pending further study. And he also changed the original
10147 rates set by the arbitration panel charged with setting rates. But the
10148 basic difference between Internet radio and terrestrial radio remains:
10149 Internet radio has to pay a <emphasis>type of copyright fee</emphasis>
10150 that terrestrial radio does not.
10151 </para>
10152 <para>
10153 Why? What justifies this difference? Was there any study of the
10154 economic consequences from Internet radio that would justify these
10155 differences? Was the motive to protect artists against piracy?
10156 </para>
10157 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks</primary></indexterm>
10158 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex2' class='startofrange'><primary>Alben, Alex</primary></indexterm>
10159 <para>
10160 In a rare bit of candor, one RIAA expert admitted what seemed obvious
10161 to everyone at the time. As Alex Alben, vice president for Public
10162 Policy at Real Networks, told me,
10163 </para>
10164 <blockquote>
10165 <para>
10166 The RIAA, which was representing the record labels, presented
10167 some testimony about what they thought a willing buyer would
10168 pay to a willing seller, and it was much higher. It was ten times
10169 higher than what radio stations pay to perform the same songs for
10170 the same period of time. And so the attorneys representing the
10171 webcasters asked the RIAA, &hellip; <quote>How do you come up with a
10172
10173 <!-- PAGE BREAK 208 -->
10174 rate that's so much higher? Why is it worth more than radio? Because
10175 here we have hundreds of thousands of webcasters who want to pay, and
10176 that should establish the market rate, and if you set the rate so
10177 high, you're going to drive the small webcasters out of
10178 business. &hellip;</quote>
10179 </para>
10180 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
10181 <para>
10182 And the RIAA experts said, <quote>Well, we don't really model this as an
10183 industry with thousands of webcasters, <emphasis>we think it should be
10184 an industry with, you know, five or seven big players who can pay a
10185 high rate and it's a stable, predictable market</emphasis>.</quote> (Emphasis
10186 added.)
10187 </para>
10188 </blockquote>
10189 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex2' class='endofrange'/>
10190 <para>
10191 Translation: The aim is to use the law to eliminate competition, so
10192 that this platform of potentially immense competition, which would
10193 cause the diversity and range of content available to explode, would not
10194 cause pain to the dinosaurs of old. There is no one, on either the right
10195 or the left, who should endorse this use of the law. And yet there is
10196 practically no one, on either the right or the left, who is doing anything
10197 effective to prevent it.
10198 </para>
10199 </section>
10200 <section id="corruptingcitizens">
10201 <title>Corrupting Citizens</title>
10202 <para>
10203 Overregulation stifles creativity. It smothers innovation. It gives
10204 dinosaurs
10205 a veto over the future. It wastes the extraordinary opportunity
10206 for a democratic creativity that digital technology enables.
10207 </para>
10208 <para>
10209 In addition to these important harms, there is one more that was
10210 important to our forebears, but seems forgotten today. Overregulation
10211 corrupts citizens and weakens the rule of law.
10212 </para>
10213 <para>
10214 The war that is being waged today is a war of prohibition. As with
10215 every war of prohibition, it is targeted against the behavior of a very
10216 large number of citizens. According to <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle>, 43 million
10217 Americans downloaded music in May 2002.<footnote><para>
10218 <!-- f15. --> Mike Graziano and Lee Rainie, <quote>The Music Downloading Deluge,</quote> Pew
10219 Internet and American Life Project (24 April 2001), available at
10220 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #46</ulink>.
10221 The Pew Internet and American Life Project reported that 37 million
10222 Americans had downloaded music files from the Internet by early 2001.
10223 </para></footnote>
10224 According to the RIAA,
10225 the behavior of those 43 million Americans is a felony. We thus have a
10226 set of rules that transform 20 percent of America into criminals. As the
10227
10228 <!-- PAGE BREAK 209 -->
10229 RIAA launches lawsuits against not only the Napsters and Kazaas of
10230 the world, but against students building search engines, and
10231 increasingly
10232 against ordinary users downloading content, the technologies for
10233 sharing will advance to further protect and hide illegal use. It is an arms
10234 race or a civil war, with the extremes of one side inviting a more
10235 extreme
10236 response by the other.
10237 </para>
10238 <para>
10239 The content industry's tactics exploit the failings of the American
10240 legal system. When the RIAA brought suit against Jesse Jordan, it
10241 knew that in Jordan it had found a scapegoat, not a defendant. The
10242 threat of having to pay either all the money in the world in damages
10243 ($15,000,000) or almost all the money in the world to defend against
10244 paying all the money in the world in damages ($250,000 in legal fees)
10245 led Jordan to choose to pay all the money he had in the world
10246 ($12,000) to make the suit go away. The same strategy animates the
10247 RIAA's suits against individual users. In September 2003, the RIAA
10248 sued 261 individuals&mdash;including a twelve-year-old girl living in public
10249 housing and a seventy-year-old man who had no idea what file sharing
10250 was.<footnote><para>
10251 <!-- f16. -->
10252 Alex Pham, <quote>The Labels Strike Back: N.Y. Girl Settles RIAA Case,</quote> <citetitle>Los
10253 Angeles Times</citetitle>, 10 September 2003, Business.
10254 </para></footnote>
10255 As these scapegoats discovered, it will always cost more to defend
10256 against these suits than it would cost to simply settle. (The twelve
10257 year old, for example, like Jesse Jordan, paid her life savings of $2,000
10258 to settle the case.) Our law is an awful system for defending rights. It
10259 is an embarrassment to our tradition. And the consequence of our law
10260 as it is, is that those with the power can use the law to quash any rights
10261 they oppose.
10262 </para>
10263 <indexterm><primary>alcohol prohibition</primary></indexterm>
10264 <para>
10265 Wars of prohibition are nothing new in America. This one is just
10266 something more extreme than anything we've seen before. We
10267 experimented with alcohol prohibition, at a time when the per capita
10268 consumption of alcohol was 1.5 gallons per capita per year. The war
10269 against drinking initially reduced that consumption to just 30 percent
10270 of its preprohibition levels, but by the end of prohibition,
10271 consumption was up to 70 percent of the preprohibition
10272 level. Americans were drinking just about as much, but now, a vast
10273 number were criminals.<footnote><para>
10274 <!-- f17. -->
10275 Jeffrey A. Miron and Jeffrey Zwiebel, <quote>Alcohol Consumption During
10276 Prohibition,</quote> <citetitle>American Economic Review</citetitle> 81, no. 2 (1991): 242.
10277 </para></footnote>
10278 We have
10279 <!-- PAGE BREAK 210 -->
10280 launched a war on drugs aimed at reducing the consumption of regulated
10281 narcotics that 7 percent (or 16 million) Americans now use.<footnote><para>
10282 <!-- f18. -->
10283 National Drug Control Policy: Hearing Before the House Government
10284 Reform Committee, 108th Cong., 1st sess. (5 March 2003) (statement of
10285 John P. Walters, director of National Drug Control Policy).
10286 </para></footnote>
10287 That is a drop from the high (so to speak) in 1979 of 14 percent of
10288 the population. We regulate automobiles to the point where the vast
10289 majority of Americans violate the law every day. We run such a complex
10290 tax system that a majority of cash businesses regularly
10291 cheat.<footnote><para>
10292 <!-- f19. -->
10293 See James Andreoni, Brian Erard, and Jonathon Feinstein, <quote>Tax
10294 Compliance,</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Economic Literature</citetitle> 36 (1998): 818 (survey of
10295 compliance literature).
10296 </para></footnote>
10297 We pride ourselves on our <quote>free society,</quote> but an endless array of
10298 ordinary behavior is regulated within our society. And as a result, a
10299 huge proportion of Americans regularly violate at least some law.
10300 </para>
10301 <indexterm><primary>law schools</primary></indexterm>
10302 <para>
10303 This state of affairs is not without consequence. It is a particularly
10304 salient issue for teachers like me, whose job it is to teach law
10305 students about the importance of <quote>ethics.</quote> As my colleague Charlie
10306 Nesson told a class at Stanford, each year law schools admit thousands
10307 of students who have illegally downloaded music, illegally consumed
10308 alcohol and sometimes drugs, illegally worked without paying taxes,
10309 illegally driven cars. These are kids for whom behaving illegally is
10310 increasingly the norm. And then we, as law professors, are supposed to
10311 teach them how to behave ethically&mdash;how to say no to bribes, or
10312 keep client funds separate, or honor a demand to disclose a document
10313 that will mean that your case is over. Generations of
10314 Americans&mdash;more significantly in some parts of America than in
10315 others, but still, everywhere in America today&mdash;can't live their
10316 lives both normally and legally, since <quote>normally</quote> entails a certain
10317 degree of illegality.
10318 </para>
10319 <para>
10320 The response to this general illegality is either to enforce the law
10321 more severely or to change the law. We, as a society, have to learn
10322 how to make that choice more rationally. Whether a law makes sense
10323 depends, in part, at least, upon whether the costs of the law, both
10324 intended and collateral, outweigh the benefits. If the costs, intended
10325 and collateral, do outweigh the benefits, then the law ought to be
10326 changed. Alternatively, if the costs of the existing system are much
10327 greater than the costs of an alternative, then we have a good reason
10328 to consider the alternative.
10329 </para>
10330 <para>
10331
10332 <!-- PAGE BREAK 211 -->
10333 My point is not the idiotic one: Just because people violate a law, we
10334 should therefore repeal it. Obviously, we could reduce murder statistics
10335 dramatically by legalizing murder on Wednesdays and Fridays. But
10336 that wouldn't make any sense, since murder is wrong every day of the
10337 week. A society is right to ban murder always and everywhere.
10338 </para>
10339 <para>
10340 My point is instead one that democracies understood for generations,
10341 but that we recently have learned to forget. The rule of law depends
10342 upon people obeying the law. The more often, and more repeatedly, we
10343 as citizens experience violating the law, the less we respect the
10344 law. Obviously, in most cases, the important issue is the law, not
10345 respect for the law. I don't care whether the rapist respects the law
10346 or not; I want to catch and incarcerate the rapist. But I do care
10347 whether my students respect the law. And I do care if the rules of law
10348 sow increasing disrespect because of the extreme of regulation they
10349 impose. Twenty million Americans have come of age since the Internet
10350 introduced this different idea of <quote>sharing.</quote> We need to be able to
10351 call these twenty million Americans <quote>citizens,</quote> not <quote>felons.</quote>
10352 </para>
10353 <para>
10354 When at least forty-three million citizens download content from the
10355 Internet, and when they use tools to combine that content in ways
10356 unauthorized by copyright holders, the first question we should be
10357 asking is not how best to involve the FBI. The first question should
10358 be whether this particular prohibition is really necessary in order to
10359 achieve the proper ends that copyright law serves. Is there another
10360 way to assure that artists get paid without transforming forty-three
10361 million Americans into felons? Does it make sense if there are other
10362 ways to assure that artists get paid without transforming America into
10363 a nation of felons?
10364 </para>
10365 <para>
10366 This abstract point can be made more clear with a particular example.
10367 </para>
10368 <para>
10369 We all own CDs. Many of us still own phonograph records. These pieces
10370 of plastic encode music that in a certain sense we have bought. The
10371 law protects our right to buy and sell that plastic: It is not a
10372 copyright infringement for me to sell all my classical records at a
10373 used
10374
10375 <!-- PAGE BREAK 212 -->
10376 record store and buy jazz records to replace them. That <quote>use</quote> of the
10377 recordings is free.
10378 </para>
10379 <para>
10380 But as the MP3 craze has demonstrated, there is another use of
10381 phonograph records that is effectively free. Because these recordings
10382 were made without copy-protection technologies, I am <quote>free</quote> to copy,
10383 or <quote>rip,</quote> music from my records onto a computer hard disk. Indeed,
10384 Apple Corporation went so far as to suggest that <quote>freedom</quote> was a
10385 right: In a series of commercials, Apple endorsed the <quote>Rip, Mix, Burn</quote>
10386 capacities of digital technologies.
10387 </para>
10388 <indexterm><primary>Andromeda</primary></indexterm>
10389 <indexterm id='idxcdsmix' class='startofrange'><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>mix technology and</secondary></indexterm>
10390 <para>
10391 This <quote>use</quote> of my records is certainly valuable. I have begun a large
10392 process at home of ripping all of my and my wife's CDs, and storing
10393 them in one archive. Then, using Apple's iTunes, or a wonderful
10394 program called Andromeda, we can build different play lists of our
10395 music: Bach, Baroque, Love Songs, Love Songs of Significant
10396 Others&mdash;the potential is endless. And by reducing the costs of
10397 mixing play lists, these technologies help build a creativity with
10398 play lists that is itself independently valuable. Compilations of
10399 songs are creative and meaningful in their own right.
10400 </para>
10401 <para>
10402 This use is enabled by unprotected media&mdash;either CDs or records.
10403 But unprotected media also enable file sharing. File sharing threatens
10404 (or so the content industry believes) the ability of creators to earn
10405 a fair return from their creativity. And thus, many are beginning to
10406 experiment with technologies to eliminate unprotected media. These
10407 technologies, for example, would enable CDs that could not be
10408 ripped. Or they might enable spy programs to identify ripped content
10409 on people's machines.
10410 </para>
10411 <para>
10412 If these technologies took off, then the building of large archives of
10413 your own music would become quite difficult. You might hang in hacker
10414 circles, and get technology to disable the technologies that protect
10415 the content. Trading in those technologies is illegal, but maybe that
10416 doesn't bother you much. In any case, for the vast majority of people,
10417 these protection technologies would effectively destroy the archiving
10418
10419 <!-- PAGE BREAK 213 -->
10420 use of CDs. The technology, in other words, would force us all back to
10421 the world where we either listened to music by manipulating pieces of
10422 plastic or were part of a massively complex <quote>digital rights
10423 management</quote> system.
10424 </para>
10425 <indexterm startref='idxcdsmix' class='endofrange'/>
10426 <para>
10427 If the only way to assure that artists get paid were the elimination
10428 of the ability to freely move content, then these technologies to
10429 interfere with the freedom to move content would be justifiable. But
10430 what if there were another way to assure that artists are paid,
10431 without locking down any content? What if, in other words, a different
10432 system could assure compensation to artists while also preserving the
10433 freedom to move content easily?
10434 </para>
10435 <para>
10436 My point just now is not to prove that there is such a system. I offer
10437 a version of such a system in the last chapter of this book. For now,
10438 the only point is the relatively uncontroversial one: If a different
10439 system achieved the same legitimate objectives that the existing
10440 copyright system achieved, but left consumers and creators much more
10441 free, then we'd have a very good reason to pursue this
10442 alternative&mdash;namely, freedom. The choice, in other words, would
10443 not be between property and piracy; the choice would be between
10444 different property systems and the freedoms each allowed.
10445 </para>
10446 <para>
10447 I believe there is a way to assure that artists are paid without
10448 turning forty-three million Americans into felons. But the salient
10449 feature of this alternative is that it would lead to a very different
10450 market for producing and distributing creativity. The dominant few,
10451 who today control the vast majority of the distribution of content in
10452 the world, would no longer exercise this extreme of control. Rather,
10453 they would go the way of the horse-drawn buggy.
10454 </para>
10455 <para>
10456 Except that this generation's buggy manufacturers have already saddled
10457 Congress, and are riding the law to protect themselves against this
10458 new form of competition. For them the choice is between fortythree
10459 million Americans as criminals and their own survival.
10460 </para>
10461 <para>
10462 It is understandable why they choose as they do. It is not
10463 understandable why we as a democracy continue to choose as we do. Jack
10464
10465 <!-- PAGE BREAK 214 -->
10466
10467 Valenti is charming; but not so charming as to justify giving up a
10468 tradition as deep and important as our tradition of free culture.
10469 </para>
10470 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation</primary></indexterm>
10471 <indexterm id='idxisps' class='startofrange'><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by</primary></indexterm>
10472 <para>
10473 <emphasis role='strong'>There's one more</emphasis> aspect to this
10474 corruption that is particularly important to civil liberties, and
10475 follows directly from any war of prohibition. As Electronic Frontier
10476 Foundation attorney Fred von Lohmann describes, this is the
10477 <quote>collateral damage</quote> that <quote>arises whenever you turn
10478 a very large percentage of the population into criminals.</quote> This
10479 is the collateral damage to civil liberties generally.
10480 </para>
10481 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred</primary></indexterm>
10482 <para>
10483 <quote>If you can treat someone as a putative lawbreaker,</quote> von Lohmann
10484 explains,
10485 </para>
10486 <blockquote>
10487 <para>
10488 then all of a sudden a lot of basic civil liberty protections
10489 evaporate to one degree or another. &hellip; If you're a copyright
10490 infringer, how can you hope to have any privacy rights? If you're a
10491 copyright infringer, how can you hope to be secure against seizures of
10492 your computer? How can you hope to continue to receive Internet
10493 access? &hellip; Our sensibilities change as soon as we think, <quote>Oh, well,
10494 but that person's a criminal, a lawbreaker.</quote> Well, what this campaign
10495 against file sharing has done is turn a remarkable percentage of the
10496 American Internet-using population into <quote>lawbreakers.</quote>
10497 </para>
10498 </blockquote>
10499 <para>
10500 And the consequence of this transformation of the American public
10501 into criminals is that it becomes trivial, as a matter of due process, to
10502 effectively erase much of the privacy most would presume.
10503 </para>
10504 <para>
10505 Users of the Internet began to see this generally in 2003 as the RIAA
10506 launched its campaign to force Internet service providers to turn over
10507 the names of customers who the RIAA believed were violating copyright
10508 law. Verizon fought that demand and lost. With a simple request to a
10509 judge, and without any notice to the customer at all, the identity of
10510 an Internet user is revealed.
10511 </para>
10512 <para>
10513 <!-- PAGE BREAK 215 -->
10514 The RIAA then expanded this campaign, by announcing a general strategy
10515 to sue individual users of the Internet who are alleged to have
10516 downloaded copyrighted music from file-sharing systems. But as we've
10517 seen, the potential damages from these suits are astronomical: If a
10518 family's computer is used to download a single CD's worth of music,
10519 the family could be liable for $2 million in damages. That didn't stop
10520 the RIAA from suing a number of these families, just as they had sued
10521 Jesse Jordan.<footnote><para>
10522 <!-- f20. -->
10523 See Frank Ahrens, <quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised Targets; Single
10524 Mother in Calif., 12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among Defendants,</quote>
10525 <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>, 10 September 2003, E1; Chris Cobbs, <quote>Worried Parents
10526 Pull Plug on File `Stealing'; With the Music Industry Cracking Down on
10527 File Swapping, Parents are Yanking Software from Home PCs to Avoid
10528 Being Sued,</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune</citetitle>, 30 August 2003, C1; Jefferson
10529 Graham, <quote>Recording Industry Sues Parents,</quote> <citetitle>USA Today</citetitle>, 15 September
10530 2003, 4D; John Schwartz, <quote>She Says She's No Music Pirate. No Snoop
10531 Fan, Either,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 25 September 2003, C1; Margo Varadi, <quote>Is
10532 Brianna a Criminal?</quote> <citetitle>Toronto Star</citetitle>, 18 September 2003, P7.
10533 </para></footnote>
10534
10535 </para>
10536 <para>
10537 Even this understates the espionage that is being waged by the
10538 RIAA. A report from CNN late last summer described a strategy the
10539 RIAA had adopted to track Napster users.<footnote><para>
10540 <!-- f21. -->
10541 See <quote>Revealed: How RIAA Tracks Downloaders: Music Industry Discloses
10542 Some Methods Used,</quote> CNN.com, available at
10543 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #47</ulink>.
10544 </para></footnote>
10545 Using a sophisticated hashing algorithm, the RIAA took what is in
10546 effect a fingerprint of every song in the Napster catalog. Any copy of
10547 one of those MP3s will have the same <quote>fingerprint.</quote>
10548 </para>
10549 <para>
10550 So imagine the following not-implausible scenario: Imagine a
10551 friend gives a CD to your daughter&mdash;a collection of songs just
10552 like the cassettes you used to make as a kid. You don't know, and
10553 neither does your daughter, where these songs came from. But she
10554 copies these songs onto her computer. She then takes her computer to
10555 college and connects it to a college network, and if the college
10556 network is <quote>cooperating</quote> with the RIAA's espionage, and she hasn't
10557 properly protected her content from the network (do you know how to do
10558 that yourself ?), then the RIAA will be able to identify your daughter
10559 as a <quote>criminal.</quote> And under the rules that universities are beginning
10560 to deploy,<footnote><para>
10561 <!-- f22. -->
10562 See Jeff Adler, <quote>Cambridge: On Campus, Pirates Are Not Penitent,</quote>
10563 <citetitle>Boston Globe</citetitle>, 18 May 2003, City Weekly, 1; Frank Ahrens, <quote>Four
10564 Students Sued over Music Sites; Industry Group Targets File Sharing at
10565 Colleges,</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>, 4 April 2003, E1; Elizabeth Armstrong,
10566 <quote>Students `Rip, Mix, Burn' at Their Own Risk,</quote> <citetitle>Christian Science
10567 Monitor</citetitle>, 2 September 2003, 20; Robert Becker and Angela Rozas, <quote>Music
10568 Pirate Hunt Turns to Loyola; Two Students Names Are Handed Over;
10569 Lawsuit Possible,</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune</citetitle>, 16 July 2003, 1C; Beth Cox, <quote>RIAA
10570 Trains Antipiracy Guns on Universities,</quote> <citetitle>Internet News</citetitle>, 30 January
10571 2003, available at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
10572 #48</ulink>; Benny Evangelista, <quote>Download Warning 101: Freshman
10573 Orientation This Fall to Include Record Industry Warnings Against File
10574 Sharing,</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle</citetitle>, 11 August 2003, E11; <quote>Raid, Letters
10575 Are Weapons at Universities,</quote> <citetitle>USA Today</citetitle>, 26 September 2000, 3D.
10576 </para></footnote>
10577 your daughter can lose the right to use the university's computer
10578 network. She can, in some cases, be expelled.
10579 </para>
10580 <indexterm startref='idxisps' class='endofrange'/>
10581 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred</primary></indexterm>
10582 <para>
10583 Now, of course, she'll have the right to defend herself. You can hire
10584 a lawyer for her (at $300 per hour, if you're lucky), and she can
10585 plead that she didn't know anything about the source of the songs or
10586 that they came from Napster. And it may well be that the university
10587 believes her. But the university might not believe her. It might treat
10588 this <quote>contraband</quote> as presumptive of guilt. And as any number of
10589 college students
10590
10591 <!-- PAGE BREAK 216 -->
10592 have already learned, our presumptions about innocence disappear in
10593 the middle of wars of prohibition. This war is no different.
10594 Says von Lohmann,
10595 </para>
10596 <blockquote>
10597 <para>
10598 So when we're talking about numbers like forty to sixty million
10599 Americans that are essentially copyright infringers, you create a
10600 situation where the civil liberties of those people are very much in
10601 peril in a general matter. [I don't] think [there is any] analog where
10602 you could randomly choose any person off the street and be confident
10603 that they were committing an unlawful act that could put them on the
10604 hook for potential felony liability or hundreds of millions of dollars
10605 of civil liability. Certainly we all speed, but speeding isn't the
10606 kind of an act for which we routinely forfeit civil liberties. Some
10607 people use drugs, and I think that's the closest analog, [but] many
10608 have noted that the war against drugs has eroded all of our civil
10609 liberties because it's treated so many Americans as criminals. Well, I
10610 think it's fair to say that file sharing is an order of magnitude
10611 larger number of Americans than drug use. &hellip; If forty to sixty
10612 million Americans have become lawbreakers, then we're really on a
10613 slippery slope to lose a lot of civil liberties for all forty to sixty
10614 million of them.
10615 </para>
10616 </blockquote>
10617 <para>
10618 When forty to sixty million Americans are considered <quote>criminals</quote> under
10619 the law, and when the law could achieve the same objective&mdash;
10620 securing rights to authors&mdash;without these millions being
10621 considered <quote>criminals,</quote> who is the villain? Americans or the law?
10622 Which is American, a constant war on our own people or a concerted
10623 effort through our democracy to change our law?
10624 </para>
10625
10626 <!-- PAGE BREAK 217 -->
10627 </section>
10628 </chapter>
10629 </part>
10630 <part id="c-balances">
10631 <title>BALANCES</title>
10632 <partintro>
10633
10634 <!-- PAGE BREAK 218 -->
10635 <para>
10636 <emphasis role='strong'>So here's</emphasis> the picture: You're
10637 standing at the side of the road. Your car is on fire. You are angry
10638 and upset because in part you helped start the fire. Now you don't
10639 know how to put it out. Next to you is a bucket, filled with
10640 gasoline. Obviously, gasoline won't put the fire out.
10641 </para>
10642 <para>
10643 As you ponder the mess, someone else comes along. In a panic, she
10644 grabs the bucket. Before you have a chance to tell her to
10645 stop&mdash;or before she understands just why she should
10646 stop&mdash;the bucket is in the air. The gasoline is about to hit the
10647 blazing car. And the fire that gasoline will ignite is about to ignite
10648 everything around.
10649 </para>
10650 <para>
10651 <emphasis role='strong'>A war</emphasis> about copyright rages all
10652 around&mdash;and we're all focusing on the wrong thing. No doubt,
10653 current technologies threaten existing businesses. No doubt they may
10654 threaten artists. But technologies change. The industry and
10655 technologists have plenty of ways to use technology to protect
10656 themselves against the current threats of the Internet. This is a fire
10657 that if let alone would burn itself out.
10658 </para>
10659 <para>
10660 <!-- PAGE BREAK 219 -->
10661 Yet policy makers are not willing to leave this fire to itself. Primed
10662 with plenty of lobbyists' money, they are keen to intervene to
10663 eliminate the problem they perceive. But the problem they perceive is
10664 not the real threat this culture faces. For while we watch this small
10665 fire in the corner, there is a massive change in the way culture is
10666 made that is happening all around.
10667 </para>
10668 <para>
10669 Somehow we have to find a way to turn attention to this more important
10670 and fundamental issue. Somehow we have to find a way to avoid pouring
10671 gasoline onto this fire.
10672 </para>
10673 <para>
10674 We have not found that way yet. Instead, we seem trapped in a simpler,
10675 binary view. However much many people push to frame this debate more
10676 broadly, it is the simple, binary view that remains. We rubberneck to
10677 look at the fire when we should be keeping our eyes on the road.
10678 </para>
10679 <para>
10680 This challenge has been my life these last few years. It has also been
10681 my failure. In the two chapters that follow, I describe one small
10682 brace of efforts, so far failed, to find a way to refocus this
10683 debate. We must understand these failures if we're to understand what
10684 success will require.
10685 </para>
10686 </partintro>
10687
10688 <!-- PAGE BREAK 220 -->
10689 <chapter label="13" id="eldred">
10690 <title>CHAPTER THIRTEEN: Eldred</title>
10691 <indexterm id="idxhawthornenathaniel" class='startofrange'><primary>Hawthorne, Nathaniel</primary></indexterm>
10692 <para>
10693 <emphasis role='strong'>In 1995</emphasis>, a father was frustrated
10694 that his daughters didn't seem to like Hawthorne. No doubt there was
10695 more than one such father, but at least one did something about
10696 it. Eric Eldred, a retired computer programmer living in New
10697 Hampshire, decided to put Hawthorne on the Web. An electronic version,
10698 Eldred thought, with links to pictures and explanatory text, would
10699 make this nineteenth-century author's work come alive.
10700 </para>
10701 <para>
10702 It didn't work&mdash;at least for his daughters. They didn't find
10703 Hawthorne any more interesting than before. But Eldred's experiment
10704 gave birth to a hobby, and his hobby begat a cause: Eldred would build
10705 a library of public domain works by scanning these works and making
10706 them available for free.
10707 </para>
10708 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt5' class='startofrange'><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
10709 <indexterm><primary>Grimm fairy tales</primary></indexterm>
10710 <para>
10711 Eldred's library was not simply a copy of certain public domain
10712 works, though even a copy would have been of great value to people
10713 across the world who can't get access to printed versions of these
10714 works. Instead, Eldred was producing derivative works from these
10715 public domain works. Just as Disney turned Grimm into stories more
10716 <!-- PAGE BREAK 221 -->
10717 accessible to the twentieth century, Eldred transformed Hawthorne, and
10718 many others, into a form more accessible&mdash;technically
10719 accessible&mdash;today.
10720 </para>
10721 <para>
10722 Eldred's freedom to do this with Hawthorne's work grew from the same
10723 source as Disney's. Hawthorne's <citetitle>Scarlet Letter</citetitle> had passed into the
10724 public domain in 1907. It was free for anyone to take without the
10725 permission of the Hawthorne estate or anyone else. Some, such as Dover
10726 Press and Penguin Classics, take works from the public domain and
10727 produce printed editions, which they sell in bookstores across the
10728 country. Others, such as Disney, take these stories and turn them into
10729 animated cartoons, sometimes successfully (<citetitle>Cinderella</citetitle>), sometimes not
10730 (<citetitle>The Hunchback of Notre Dame</citetitle>, <citetitle>Treasure Planet</citetitle>). These are all
10731 commercial publications of public domain works.
10732 </para>
10733 <indexterm startref='idxhawthornenathaniel' class='endofrange'/>
10734 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt5' class='endofrange'/>
10735 <para>
10736 The Internet created the possibility of noncommercial publications of
10737 public domain works. Eldred's is just one example. There are literally
10738 thousands of others. Hundreds of thousands from across the world have
10739 discovered this platform of expression and now use it to share works
10740 that are, by law, free for the taking. This has produced what we might
10741 call the <quote>noncommercial publishing industry,</quote> which before the
10742 Internet was limited to people with large egos or with political or
10743 social causes. But with the Internet, it includes a wide range of
10744 individuals and groups dedicated to spreading culture
10745 generally.<footnote><para>
10746 <!-- f1. -->
10747 <indexterm><primary>pornography</primary></indexterm>
10748 There's a parallel here with pornography that is a bit hard to
10749 describe, but it's a strong one. One phenomenon that the Internet
10750 created was a world of noncommercial pornographers&mdash;people who
10751 were distributing porn but were not making money directly or
10752 indirectly from that distribution. Such a class didn't exist before
10753 the Internet came into being because the costs of distributing porn
10754 were so high. Yet this new class of distributors got special attention
10755 in the Supreme Court, when the Court struck down the Communications
10756 Decency Act of 1996. It was partly because of the burden on
10757 noncommercial speakers that the statute was found to exceed Congress's
10758 power. The same point could have been made about noncommercial
10759 publishers after the advent of the Internet. The Eric Eldreds of the
10760 world before the Internet were extremely few. Yet one would think it
10761 at least as important to protect the Eldreds of the world as to
10762 protect noncommercial pornographers.</para></footnote>
10763 </para>
10764 <para>
10765 As I said, Eldred lives in New Hampshire. In 1998, Robert Frost's
10766 collection of poems <citetitle>New Hampshire</citetitle> was slated to
10767 pass into the public domain. Eldred wanted to post that collection in
10768 his free public library. But Congress got in the way. As I described
10769 in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
10770 linkend="property-i"/>, in 1998, for the eleventh time in forty years,
10771 Congress extended the terms of existing copyrights&mdash;this time by
10772 twenty years. Eldred would not be free to add any works more recent
10773 than 1923 to his collection until 2019. Indeed, no copyrighted work
10774 would pass into the public domain until that year (and not even then,
10775 if Congress extends the term again). By contrast, in the same period,
10776 more than 1 million patents will pass into the public domain.
10777 </para>
10778 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary</primary></indexterm>
10779 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny</primary></indexterm>
10780 <para>
10781
10782 <!-- PAGE BREAK 222 -->
10783 This was the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act
10784 (CTEA), enacted in memory of the congressman and former musician
10785 Sonny Bono, who, his widow, Mary Bono, says, believed that
10786 <quote>copyrights should be forever.</quote><footnote><para>
10787 <!-- f2. -->
10788 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary</primary></indexterm>
10789 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny</primary></indexterm>
10790 The full text is: <quote>Sonny [Bono] wanted the term of copyright
10791 protection to last forever. I am informed by staff that such a change
10792 would violate the Constitution. I invite all of you to work with me to
10793 strengthen our copyright laws in all of the ways available to us. As
10794 you know, there is also Jack Valenti's proposal for a term to last
10795 forever less one day. Perhaps the Committee may look at that next
10796 Congress,</quote> 144 Cong. Rec. H9946, 9951-2 (October 7, 1998).
10797 </para></footnote>
10798
10799 </para>
10800 <para>
10801 Eldred decided to fight this law. He first resolved to fight it through
10802 civil disobedience. In a series of interviews, Eldred announced that he
10803 would publish as planned, CTEA notwithstanding. But because of a
10804 second law passed in 1998, the NET (No Electronic Theft) Act, his act
10805 of publishing would make Eldred a felon&mdash;whether or not anyone
10806 complained. This was a dangerous strategy for a disabled programmer
10807 to undertake.
10808 </para>
10809 <para>
10810 It was here that I became involved in Eldred's battle. I was a
10811 constitutional
10812 scholar whose first passion was constitutional
10813 interpretation.
10814 And though constitutional law courses never focus upon the
10815 Progress Clause of the Constitution, it had always struck me as
10816 importantly
10817 different. As you know, the Constitution says,
10818 </para>
10819 <blockquote>
10820 <para>
10821 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science &hellip;
10822 by securing for limited Times to Authors &hellip; exclusive Right to
10823 their &hellip; Writings. &hellip;
10824 </para>
10825 </blockquote>
10826 <para>
10827 As I've described, this clause is unique within the power-granting
10828 clause of Article I, section 8 of our Constitution. Every other clause
10829 granting power to Congress simply says Congress has the power to do
10830 something&mdash;for example, to regulate <quote>commerce among the several
10831 states</quote> or <quote>declare War.</quote> But here, the <quote>something</quote> is something quite
10832 specific&mdash;to <quote>promote &hellip; Progress</quote>&mdash;through means that
10833 are also specific&mdash; by <quote>securing</quote> <quote>exclusive Rights</quote> (i.e.,
10834 copyrights) <quote>for limited Times.</quote>
10835 </para>
10836 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter</primary></indexterm>
10837 <para>
10838 In the past forty years, Congress has gotten into the practice of
10839 extending existing terms of copyright protection. What puzzled me
10840 about this was, if Congress has the power to extend existing terms,
10841 then the Constitution's requirement that terms be <quote>limited</quote> will have
10842 <!-- PAGE BREAK 223 -->
10843 no practical effect. If every time a copyright is about to expire,
10844 Congress has the power to extend its term, then Congress can achieve
10845 what the Constitution plainly forbids&mdash;perpetual terms <quote>on the
10846 installment plan,</quote> as Professor Peter Jaszi so nicely put it.
10847 </para>
10848 <para>
10849 As an academic, my first response was to hit the books. I remember
10850 sitting late at the office, scouring on-line databases for any serious
10851 consideration of the question. No one had ever challenged Congress's
10852 practice of extending existing terms. That failure may in part be why
10853 Congress seemed so untroubled in its habit. That, and the fact that
10854 the practice had become so lucrative for Congress. Congress knows that
10855 copyright owners will be willing to pay a great deal of money to see
10856 their copyright terms extended. And so Congress is quite happy to keep
10857 this gravy train going.
10858 </para>
10859 <para>
10860 For this is the core of the corruption in our present system of
10861 government. <quote>Corruption</quote> not in the sense that representatives are
10862 bribed. Rather, <quote>corruption</quote> in the sense that the system induces the
10863 beneficiaries of Congress's acts to raise and give money to Congress
10864 to induce it to act. There's only so much time; there's only so much
10865 Congress can do. Why not limit its actions to those things it must
10866 do&mdash;and those things that pay? Extending copyright terms pays.
10867 </para>
10868 <para>
10869 If that's not obvious to you, consider the following: Say you're one
10870 of the very few lucky copyright owners whose copyright continues to
10871 make money one hundred years after it was created. The Estate of
10872 Robert Frost is a good example. Frost died in 1963. His poetry
10873 continues to be extraordinarily valuable. Thus the Robert Frost estate
10874 benefits greatly from any extension of copyright, since no publisher
10875 would pay the estate any money if the poems Frost wrote could be
10876 published by anyone for free.
10877 </para>
10878 <para>
10879 So imagine the Robert Frost estate is earning $100,000 a year from
10880 three of Frost's poems. And imagine the copyright for those poems
10881 is about to expire. You sit on the board of the Robert Frost estate.
10882 Your financial adviser comes to your board meeting with a very grim
10883 report:
10884 </para>
10885 <para>
10886 <quote>Next year,</quote> the adviser announces, <quote>our copyrights in works A, B,
10887
10888 <!-- PAGE BREAK 224 -->
10889 and C will expire. That means that after next year, we will no longer be
10890 receiving the annual royalty check of $100,000 from the publishers of
10891 those works.</quote>
10892 </para>
10893 <para>
10894 <quote>There's a proposal in Congress, however,</quote> she continues, <quote>that
10895 could change this. A few congressmen are floating a bill to extend the
10896 terms of copyright by twenty years. That bill would be extraordinarily
10897 valuable to us. So we should hope this bill passes.</quote>
10898 </para>
10899 <para>
10900 <quote>Hope?</quote> a fellow board member says. <quote>Can't we be doing something
10901 about it?</quote>
10902 </para>
10903 <para>
10904 <quote>Well, obviously, yes,</quote> the adviser responds. <quote>We could contribute
10905 to the campaigns of a number of representatives to try to assure that
10906 they support the bill.</quote>
10907 </para>
10908 <para>
10909 You hate politics. You hate contributing to campaigns. So you want
10910 to know whether this disgusting practice is worth it. <quote>How much
10911 would we get if this extension were passed?</quote> you ask the adviser. <quote>How
10912 much is it worth?</quote>
10913 </para>
10914 <para>
10915 <quote>Well,</quote> the adviser says, <quote>if you're confident that you will continue
10916 to get at least $100,000 a year from these copyrights, and you use the
10917 `discount rate' that we use to evaluate estate investments (6 percent),
10918 then this law would be worth $1,146,000 to the estate.</quote>
10919 </para>
10920 <para>
10921 You're a bit shocked by the number, but you quickly come to the
10922 correct conclusion:
10923 </para>
10924 <para>
10925 <quote>So you're saying it would be worth it for us to pay more than
10926 $1,000,000 in campaign contributions if we were confident those
10927 contributions
10928 would assure that the bill was passed?</quote>
10929 </para>
10930 <para>
10931 <quote>Absolutely,</quote> the adviser responds. <quote>It is worth it to you to
10932 contribute
10933 up to the `present value' of the income you expect from these
10934 copyrights. Which for us means over $1,000,000.</quote>
10935 </para>
10936 <para>
10937 You quickly get the point&mdash;you as the member of the board and, I
10938 trust, you the reader. Each time copyrights are about to expire, every
10939 beneficiary in the position of the Robert Frost estate faces the same
10940 choice: If they can contribute to get a law passed to extend copyrights,
10941 <!-- PAGE BREAK 225 -->
10942 they will benefit greatly from that extension. And so each time
10943 copyrights
10944 are about to expire, there is a massive amount of lobbying to get
10945 the copyright term extended.
10946 </para>
10947 <para>
10948 Thus a congressional perpetual motion machine: So long as legislation
10949 can be bought (albeit indirectly), there will be all the incentive in
10950 the world to buy further extensions of copyright.
10951 </para>
10952 <para>
10953 In the lobbying that led to the passage of the Sonny Bono
10954 Copyright
10955 Term Extension Act, this <quote>theory</quote> about incentives was proved
10956 real. Ten of the thirteen original sponsors of the act in the House
10957 received the maximum contribution from Disney's political action
10958 committee; in the Senate, eight of the twelve sponsors received
10959 contributions.<footnote><para>
10960 <!-- f3. --> Associated Press, <quote>Disney Lobbying for Copyright Extension No Mickey
10961 Mouse Effort; Congress OKs Bill Granting Creators 20 More Years,</quote>
10962 <citetitle>Chicago Tribune</citetitle>, 17 October 1998, 22.
10963 </para></footnote>
10964 The RIAA and the MPAA are estimated to have spent over
10965 $1.5 million lobbying in the 1998 election cycle. They paid out more
10966 than $200,000 in campaign contributions.<footnote><para>
10967 <!-- f4. --> See Nick Brown, <quote>Fair Use No More?: Copyright in the Information
10968 Age,</quote> available at
10969 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #49</ulink>.
10970 </para></footnote>
10971 Disney is estimated to have
10972 contributed more than $800,000 to reelection campaigns in the
10973 cycle.<footnote><para>
10974 <!-- f5. -->
10975 Alan K. Ota, <quote>Disney in Washington: The Mouse That Roars,</quote>
10976 <citetitle>Congressional Quarterly This Week</citetitle>, 8 August 1990, available at
10977 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #50</ulink>.
10978 </para></footnote>
10979
10980 </para>
10981 <para>
10982 <emphasis role='strong'>Constitutional law</emphasis> is not oblivious
10983 to the obvious. Or at least, it need not be. So when I was considering
10984 Eldred's complaint, this reality about the never-ending incentives to
10985 increase the copyright term was central to my thinking. In my view, a
10986 pragmatic court committed to interpreting and applying the
10987 Constitution of our framers would see that if Congress has the power
10988 to extend existing terms, then there would be no effective
10989 constitutional requirement that terms be <quote>limited.</quote> If
10990 they could extend it once, they would extend it again and again and
10991 again.
10992 </para>
10993 <para>
10994 It was also my judgment that <emphasis>this</emphasis> Supreme Court
10995 would not allow Congress to extend existing terms. As anyone close to
10996 the Supreme Court's work knows, this Court has increasingly restricted
10997 the power of Congress when it has viewed Congress's actions as
10998 exceeding the power granted to it by the Constitution. Among
10999 constitutional scholars, the most famous example of this trend was the
11000 Supreme Court's
11001
11002 <!-- PAGE BREAK 226 -->
11003 decision in 1995 to strike down a law that banned the possession of
11004 guns near schools.
11005 </para>
11006 <para>
11007 Since 1937, the Supreme Court had interpreted Congress's granted
11008 powers very broadly; so, while the Constitution grants Congress the
11009 power to regulate only <quote>commerce among the several states</quote> (aka
11010 <quote>interstate
11011 commerce</quote>), the Supreme Court had interpreted that power to
11012 include the power to regulate any activity that merely affected
11013 interstate
11014 commerce.
11015 </para>
11016 <para>
11017 As the economy grew, this standard increasingly meant that there was
11018 no limit to Congress's power to regulate, since just about every
11019 activity, when considered on a national scale, affects interstate
11020 commerce. A Constitution designed to limit Congress's power was
11021 instead interpreted to impose no limit.
11022 </para>
11023 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.</primary></indexterm>
11024 <para>
11025 The Supreme Court, under Chief Justice Rehnquist's command, changed
11026 that in <citetitle>United States</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>. The government had
11027 argued that possessing guns near schools affected interstate
11028 commerce. Guns near schools increase crime, crime lowers property
11029 values, and so on. In the oral argument, the Chief Justice asked the
11030 government whether there was any activity that would not affect
11031 interstate commerce under the reasoning the government advanced. The
11032 government said there was not; if Congress says an activity affects
11033 interstate commerce, then that activity affects interstate
11034 commerce. The Supreme Court, the government said, was not in the
11035 position to second-guess Congress.
11036 </para>
11037 <para>
11038 <quote>We pause to consider the implications of the government's arguments,</quote>
11039 the Chief Justice wrote.<footnote><para>
11040 <!-- f6. --> <citetitle>United States</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>, 514 U.S. 549, 564 (1995).
11041 </para></footnote>
11042 If anything Congress says is interstate commerce must therefore be
11043 considered interstate commerce, then there would be no limit to
11044 Congress's power. The decision in <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> was reaffirmed five years
11045 later in <citetitle>United States</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Morrison</citetitle>.<footnote><para>
11046 <!-- f7. -->
11047 <citetitle>United States</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Morrison</citetitle>, 529 U.S. 598 (2000).
11048 </para></footnote>
11049 </para>
11050 <para>
11051 If a principle were at work here, then it should apply to the Progress
11052 Clause as much as the Commerce Clause.<footnote><para>
11053 <!-- f8. -->
11054 If it is a principle about enumerated powers, then the principle
11055 carries from one enumerated power to another. The animating point in
11056 the context of the Commerce Clause was that the interpretation offered
11057 by the government would allow the government unending power to
11058 regulate commerce&mdash;the limitation to interstate commerce
11059 notwithstanding. The same point is true in the context of the
11060 Copyright Clause. Here, too, the government's interpretation would
11061 allow the government unending power to regulate copyrights&mdash;the
11062 limitation to <quote>limited times</quote> notwithstanding.
11063 </para></footnote>
11064 And if it is applied to the Progress Clause, the principle should
11065 yield the conclusion that Congress
11066 <!-- PAGE BREAK 227 -->
11067 can't extend an existing term. If Congress could extend an existing
11068 term, then there would be no <quote>stopping point</quote> to Congress's power over
11069 terms, though the Constitution expressly states that there is such a
11070 limit. Thus, the same principle applied to the power to grant
11071 copyrights should entail that Congress is not allowed to extend the
11072 term of existing copyrights.
11073 </para>
11074 <para>
11075 <emphasis>If</emphasis>, that is, the principle announced in <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>
11076 stood for a principle. Many believed the decision in <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> stood for
11077 politics&mdash;a conservative Supreme Court, which believed in states'
11078 rights, using its power over Congress to advance its own personal
11079 political preferences. But I rejected that view of the Supreme Court's
11080 decision. Indeed, shortly after the decision, I wrote an article
11081 demonstrating the <quote>fidelity</quote> in such an interpretation of the
11082 Constitution. The idea that the Supreme Court decides cases based upon
11083 its politics struck me as extraordinarily boring. I was not going to
11084 devote my life to teaching constitutional law if these nine Justices
11085 were going to be petty politicians.
11086 </para>
11087 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.</primary><secondary>copyright purpose established in</secondary></indexterm>
11088 <indexterm><primary>copyright</primary><secondary>constitutional purpose of</secondary></indexterm>
11089 <indexterm><primary>copyright</primary><secondary>duration of</secondary></indexterm>
11090 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt</primary></indexterm>
11091 <para>
11092 <emphasis role='strong'>Now let's pause</emphasis> for a moment to
11093 make sure we understand what the argument in
11094 <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> was not about. By insisting on the
11095 Constitution's limits to copyright, obviously Eldred was not endorsing
11096 piracy. Indeed, in an obvious sense, he was fighting a kind of
11097 piracy&mdash;piracy of the public domain. When Robert Frost wrote his
11098 work and when Walt Disney created Mickey Mouse, the maximum copyright
11099 term was just fifty-six years. Because of interim changes, Frost and
11100 Disney had already enjoyed a seventy-five-year monopoly for their
11101 work. They had gotten the benefit of the bargain that the Constitution
11102 envisions: In exchange for a monopoly protected for fifty-six years,
11103 they created new work. But now these entities were using their
11104 power&mdash;expressed through the power of lobbyists' money&mdash;to
11105 get another twenty-year dollop of monopoly. That twenty-year dollop
11106 would be taken from the public domain. Eric Eldred was fighting a
11107 piracy that affects us all.
11108 </para>
11109 <indexterm><primary>Nashville Songwriters Association</primary></indexterm>
11110 <para>
11111 Some people view the public domain with contempt. In their brief
11112
11113 <!-- PAGE BREAK 228 -->
11114 before the Supreme Court, the Nashville Songwriters Association
11115 wrote that the public domain is nothing more than <quote>legal piracy.</quote><footnote><para>
11116 <!-- f9. -->
11117 Brief of the Nashville Songwriters Association, <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle>
11118 v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, 537 U.S. 186 (2003) (No. 01-618), n.10, available
11119 at <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #51</ulink>.
11120 </para></footnote>
11121 But it is not piracy when the law allows it; and in our constitutional
11122 system, our law requires it. Some may not like the Constitution's
11123 requirements, but that doesn't make the Constitution a pirate's
11124 charter.
11125 </para>
11126 <para>
11127 As we've seen, our constitutional system requires limits on
11128 copyright
11129 as a way to assure that copyright holders do not too heavily
11130 influence
11131 the development and distribution of our culture. Yet, as Eric
11132 Eldred discovered, we have set up a system that assures that copyright
11133 terms will be repeatedly extended, and extended, and extended. We
11134 have created the perfect storm for the public domain. Copyrights have
11135 not expired, and will not expire, so long as Congress is free to be
11136 bought to extend them again.
11137 </para>
11138 <para>
11139 <emphasis role='strong'>It is valuable</emphasis> copyrights that are
11140 responsible for terms being extended. Mickey Mouse and
11141 <quote>Rhapsody in Blue.</quote> These works are too valuable for
11142 copyright owners to ignore. But the real harm to our society from
11143 copyright extensions is not that Mickey Mouse remains Disney's.
11144 Forget Mickey Mouse. Forget Robert Frost. Forget all the works from
11145 the 1920s and 1930s that have continuing commercial value. The real
11146 harm of term extension comes not from these famous works. The real
11147 harm is to the works that are not famous, not commercially exploited,
11148 and no longer available as a result.
11149 </para>
11150 <para>
11151 If you look at the work created in the first twenty years (1923 to
11152 1942) affected by the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act,
11153 2 percent of that work has any continuing commercial value. It was the
11154 copyright holders for that 2 percent who pushed the CTEA through.
11155 But the law and its effect were not limited to that 2 percent. The law
11156 extended the terms of copyright generally.<footnote><para>
11157 <!-- f10. --> The figure of 2 percent is an extrapolation from the study by the
11158 Congressional
11159 Research Service, in light of the estimated renewal ranges. See Brief
11160 of Petitioners, <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, 7, available at
11161 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #52</ulink>.
11162 </para></footnote>
11163
11164 </para>
11165 <para>
11166 Think practically about the consequence of this
11167 extension&mdash;practically,
11168 as a businessperson, and not as a lawyer eager for more legal
11169
11170 <!-- PAGE BREAK 229 -->
11171 work. In 1930, 10,047 books were published. In 2000, 174 of those
11172 books were still in print. Let's say you were Brewster Kahle, and you
11173 wanted to make available to the world in your iArchive project the
11174 remaining
11175 9,873. What would you have to do?
11176 </para>
11177 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital</primary></indexterm>
11178 <para>
11179 Well, first, you'd have to determine which of the 9,873 books were
11180 still under copyright. That requires going to a library (these data are
11181 not on-line) and paging through tomes of books, cross-checking the
11182 titles and authors of the 9,873 books with the copyright registration
11183 and renewal records for works published in 1930. That will produce a
11184 list of books still under copyright.
11185 </para>
11186 <para>
11187 Then for the books still under copyright, you would need to locate
11188 the current copyright owners. How would you do that?
11189 </para>
11190 <para>
11191 Most people think that there must be a list of these copyright
11192 owners
11193 somewhere. Practical people think this way. How could there be
11194 thousands and thousands of government monopolies without there
11195 being at least a list?
11196 </para>
11197 <para>
11198 But there is no list. There may be a name from 1930, and then in
11199 1959, of the person who registered the copyright. But just think
11200 practically
11201 about how impossibly difficult it would be to track down
11202 thousands
11203 of such records&mdash;especially since the person who registered is
11204 not necessarily the current owner. And we're just talking about 1930!
11205 </para>
11206 <para>
11207 <quote>But there isn't a list of who owns property generally,</quote> the
11208 apologists for the system respond. <quote>Why should there be a list of
11209 copyright owners?</quote>
11210 </para>
11211 <para>
11212 Well, actually, if you think about it, there <emphasis>are</emphasis>
11213 plenty of lists of who owns what property. Think about deeds on
11214 houses, or titles to cars. And where there isn't a list, the code of
11215 real space is pretty good at suggesting who the owner of a bit of
11216 property is. (A swing set in your backyard is probably yours.) So
11217 formally or informally, we have a pretty good way to know who owns
11218 what tangible property.
11219 </para>
11220 <para>
11221 So: You walk down a street and see a house. You can know who
11222 owns the house by looking it up in the courthouse registry. If you see
11223 a car, there is ordinarily a license plate that will link the owner to the
11224
11225 <!-- PAGE BREAK 230 -->
11226 car. If you see a bunch of children's toys sitting on the front lawn of a
11227 house, it's fairly easy to determine who owns the toys. And if you
11228 happen
11229 to see a baseball lying in a gutter on the side of the road, look
11230 around for a second for some kids playing ball. If you don't see any
11231 kids, then okay: Here's a bit of property whose owner we can't easily
11232 determine. It is the exception that proves the rule: that we ordinarily
11233 know quite well who owns what property.
11234 </para>
11235 <para>
11236 Compare this story to intangible property. You go into a library.
11237 The library owns the books. But who owns the copyrights? As I've
11238 already
11239 described, there's no list of copyright owners. There are authors'
11240 names, of course, but their copyrights could have been assigned, or
11241 passed down in an estate like Grandma's old jewelry. To know who
11242 owns what, you would have to hire a private detective. The bottom
11243 line: The owner cannot easily be located. And in a regime like ours, in
11244 which it is a felony to use such property without the property owner's
11245 permission, the property isn't going to be used.
11246 </para>
11247 <para>
11248 The consequence with respect to old books is that they won't be
11249 digitized, and hence will simply rot away on shelves. But the
11250 consequence
11251 for other creative works is much more dire.
11252 </para>
11253 <indexterm id='idxageemichael' class='startofrange'><primary>Agee, Michael</primary></indexterm>
11254 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios</primary></indexterm>
11255 <indexterm><primary>Laurel and Hardy Films</primary></indexterm>
11256 <indexterm><primary>Lucky Dog, The</primary></indexterm>
11257 <para>
11258 Consider the story of Michael Agee, chairman of Hal Roach Studios,
11259 which owns the copyrights for the Laurel and Hardy films. Agee is a
11260 direct beneficiary of the Bono Act. The Laurel and Hardy films were
11261 made between 1921 and 1951. Only one of these films, <citetitle>The Lucky Dog</citetitle>, is
11262 currently out of copyright. But for the CTEA, films made after 1923
11263 would have begun entering the public domain. Because Agee controls the
11264 exclusive rights for these popular films, he makes a great deal of
11265 money. According to one estimate, <quote>Roach has sold about 60,000
11266 videocassettes and 50,000 DVDs of the duo's silent
11267 films.</quote><footnote><para>
11268 <!-- f11. -->
11269 See David G. Savage, <quote>High Court Scene of Showdown on Copyright Law,</quote>
11270 <citetitle>Los Angeles Times</citetitle>, 6 October 2002; David Streitfeld, <quote>Classic Movies,
11271 Songs, Books at Stake; Supreme Court Hears Arguments Today on Striking
11272 Down Copyright Extension,</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune</citetitle>, 9 October 2002.
11273 </para></footnote>
11274 </para>
11275 <para>
11276 Yet Agee opposed the CTEA. His reasons demonstrate a rare virtue in
11277 this culture: selflessness. He argued in a brief before the Supreme
11278 Court that the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act will, if left
11279 standing, destroy a whole generation of American film.
11280 </para>
11281 <para>
11282 His argument is straightforward. A tiny fraction of this work has
11283
11284 <!-- PAGE BREAK 231 -->
11285 any continuing commercial value. The rest&mdash;to the extent it
11286 survives at all&mdash;sits in vaults gathering dust. It may be that
11287 some of this work not now commercially valuable will be deemed to be
11288 valuable by the owners of the vaults. For this to occur, however, the
11289 commercial benefit from the work must exceed the costs of making the
11290 work available for distribution.
11291 </para>
11292 <para>
11293 We can't know the benefits, but we do know a lot about the costs.
11294 For most of the history of film, the costs of restoring film were very
11295 high; digital technology has lowered these costs substantially. While
11296 it cost more than $10,000 to restore a ninety-minute black-and-white
11297 film in 1993, it can now cost as little as $100 to digitize one hour of
11298 mm film.<footnote><para>
11299 <!-- f12. -->
11300 Brief of Hal Roach Studios and Michael Agee as Amicus Curiae
11301 Supporting the Petitoners, <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, 537
11302 U.S. 186 (2003) (No. 01- 618), 12. See also Brief of Amicus Curiae
11303 filed on behalf of Petitioners by the Internet Archive, <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle>
11304 v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, available at
11305 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #53</ulink>.
11306 </para></footnote>
11307
11308 </para>
11309 <para>
11310 Restoration technology is not the only cost, nor the most
11311 important.
11312 Lawyers, too, are a cost, and increasingly, a very important one. In
11313 addition to preserving the film, a distributor needs to secure the rights.
11314 And to secure the rights for a film that is under copyright, you need to
11315 locate the copyright owner.
11316 </para>
11317 <para>
11318 Or more accurately, <emphasis>owners</emphasis>. As we've seen, there
11319 isn't only a single copyright associated with a film; there are
11320 many. There isn't a single person whom you can contact about those
11321 copyrights; there are as many as can hold the rights, which turns out
11322 to be an extremely large number. Thus the costs of clearing the rights
11323 to these films is exceptionally high.
11324 </para>
11325 <para>
11326 <quote>But can't you just restore the film, distribute it, and then pay the
11327 copyright owner when she shows up?</quote> Sure, if you want to commit a
11328 felony. And even if you're not worried about committing a felony, when
11329 she does show up, she'll have the right to sue you for all the profits you
11330 have made. So, if you're successful, you can be fairly confident you'll be
11331 getting a call from someone's lawyer. And if you're not successful, you
11332 won't make enough to cover the costs of your own lawyer. Either way,
11333 you have to talk to a lawyer. And as is too often the case, saying you have
11334 to talk to a lawyer is the same as saying you won't make any money.
11335 </para>
11336 <para>
11337 For some films, the benefit of releasing the film may well exceed
11338
11339 <!-- PAGE BREAK 232 -->
11340 these costs. But for the vast majority of them, there is no way the
11341 benefit
11342 would outweigh the legal costs. Thus, for the vast majority of old
11343 films, Agee argued, the film will not be restored and distributed until
11344 the copyright expires.
11345 </para>
11346 <indexterm startref='idxageemichael' class='endofrange'/>
11347 <para>
11348 But by the time the copyright for these films expires, the film will
11349 have expired. These films were produced on nitrate-based stock, and
11350 nitrate stock dissolves over time. They will be gone, and the metal
11351 canisters
11352 in which they are now stored will be filled with nothing more
11353 than dust.
11354 </para>
11355 <para>
11356 <emphasis role='strong'>Of all the</emphasis> creative work produced
11357 by humans anywhere, a tiny fraction has continuing commercial
11358 value. For that tiny fraction, the copyright is a crucially important
11359 legal device. For that tiny fraction, the copyright creates incentives
11360 to produce and distribute the creative work. For that tiny fraction,
11361 the copyright acts as an <quote>engine of free expression.</quote>
11362 </para>
11363 <para>
11364 But even for that tiny fraction, the actual time during which the
11365 creative work has a commercial life is extremely short. As I've
11366 indicated,
11367 most books go out of print within one year. The same is true of
11368 music and film. Commercial culture is sharklike. It must keep moving.
11369 And when a creative work falls out of favor with the commercial
11370 distributors,
11371 the commercial life ends.
11372 </para>
11373 <para>
11374 Yet that doesn't mean the life of the creative work ends. We don't
11375 keep libraries of books in order to compete with Barnes &amp; Noble, and
11376 we don't have archives of films because we expect people to choose
11377 between
11378 spending Friday night watching new movies and spending
11379 Friday
11380 night watching a 1930 news documentary. The noncommercial life
11381 of culture is important and valuable&mdash;for entertainment but also, and
11382 more importantly, for knowledge. To understand who we are, and
11383 where we came from, and how we have made the mistakes that we
11384 have, we need to have access to this history.
11385 </para>
11386 <para>
11387 Copyrights in this context do not drive an engine of free expression.
11388
11389 <!-- PAGE BREAK 233 -->
11390 In this context, there is no need for an exclusive right. Copyrights in
11391 this context do no good.
11392 </para>
11393 <para>
11394 Yet, for most of our history, they also did little harm. For most of
11395 our history, when a work ended its commercial life, there was no
11396 <emphasis>copyright-related use</emphasis> that would be inhibited by
11397 an exclusive right. When a book went out of print, you could not buy
11398 it from a publisher. But you could still buy it from a used book
11399 store, and when a used book store sells it, in America, at least,
11400 there is no need to pay the copyright owner anything. Thus, the
11401 ordinary use of a book after its commercial life ended was a use that
11402 was independent of copyright law.
11403 </para>
11404 <para>
11405 The same was effectively true of film. Because the costs of restoring
11406 a film&mdash;the real economic costs, not the lawyer costs&mdash;were
11407 so high, it was never at all feasible to preserve or restore
11408 film. Like the remains of a great dinner, when it's over, it's
11409 over. Once a film passed out of its commercial life, it may have been
11410 archived for a bit, but that was the end of its life so long as the
11411 market didn't have more to offer.
11412 </para>
11413 <para>
11414 In other words, though copyright has been relatively short for most
11415 of our history, long copyrights wouldn't have mattered for the works
11416 that lost their commercial value. Long copyrights for these works
11417 would not have interfered with anything.
11418 </para>
11419 <para>
11420 But this situation has now changed.
11421 </para>
11422 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital2' class='startofrange'><primary>archives, digital</primary></indexterm>
11423 <para>
11424 One crucially important consequence of the emergence of digital
11425 technologies is to enable the archive that Brewster Kahle dreams of.
11426 Digital technologies now make it possible to preserve and give access
11427 to all sorts of knowledge. Once a book goes out of print, we can now
11428 imagine digitizing it and making it available to everyone,
11429 forever. Once a film goes out of distribution, we could digitize it
11430 and make it available to everyone, forever. Digital technologies give
11431 new life to copyrighted material after it passes out of its commercial
11432 life. It is now possible to preserve and assure universal access to
11433 this knowledge and culture, whereas before it was not.
11434 </para>
11435 <para>
11436 <!-- PAGE BREAK 234 -->
11437 And now copyright law does get in the way. Every step of producing
11438 this digital archive of our culture infringes on the exclusive right
11439 of copyright. To digitize a book is to copy it. To do that requires
11440 permission of the copyright owner. The same with music, film, or any
11441 other aspect of our culture protected by copyright. The effort to make
11442 these things available to history, or to researchers, or to those who
11443 just want to explore, is now inhibited by a set of rules that were
11444 written for a radically different context.
11445 </para>
11446 <para>
11447 Here is the core of the harm that comes from extending terms: Now that
11448 technology enables us to rebuild the library of Alexandria, the law
11449 gets in the way. And it doesn't get in the way for any useful
11450 <emphasis>copyright</emphasis> purpose, for the purpose of copyright
11451 is to enable the commercial market that spreads culture. No, we are
11452 talking about culture after it has lived its commercial life. In this
11453 context, copyright is serving no purpose <emphasis>at all</emphasis>
11454 related to the spread of knowledge. In this context, copyright is not
11455 an engine of free expression. Copyright is a brake.
11456 </para>
11457 <para>
11458 You may well ask, <quote>But if digital technologies lower the costs for
11459 Brewster Kahle, then they will lower the costs for Random House, too.
11460 So won't Random House do as well as Brewster Kahle in spreading
11461 culture widely?</quote>
11462 </para>
11463 <para>
11464 Maybe. Someday. But there is absolutely no evidence to suggest that
11465 publishers would be as complete as libraries. If Barnes &amp; Noble
11466 offered to lend books from its stores for a low price, would that
11467 eliminate the need for libraries? Only if you think that the only role
11468 of a library is to serve what <quote>the market</quote> would demand. But if you
11469 think the role of a library is bigger than this&mdash;if you think its
11470 role is to archive culture, whether there's a demand for any
11471 particular bit of that culture or not&mdash;then we can't count on the
11472 commercial market to do our library work for us.
11473 </para>
11474 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital2' class='endofrange'/>
11475 <para>
11476 I would be the first to agree that it should do as much as it can: We
11477 should rely upon the market as much as possible to spread and enable
11478 culture. My message is absolutely not antimarket. But where we see the
11479 market is not doing the job, then we should allow nonmarket forces the
11480
11481 <!-- PAGE BREAK 235 -->
11482 freedom to fill the gaps. As one researcher calculated for American
11483 culture, 94 percent of the films, books, and music produced between
11484 and 1946 is not commercially available. However much you love the
11485 commercial market, if access is a value, then 6 percent is a failure
11486 to provide that value.<footnote><para>
11487 <!-- f13. -->
11488 Jason Schultz, <quote>The Myth of the 1976 Copyright `Chaos' Theory,</quote> 20
11489 December 2002, available at
11490 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #54</ulink>.
11491 </para></footnote>
11492
11493 </para>
11494 <para>
11495 <emphasis role='strong'>In January 1999</emphasis>, we filed a lawsuit
11496 on Eric Eldred's behalf in federal district court in Washington, D.C.,
11497 asking the court to declare the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension
11498 Act unconstitutional. The two central claims that we made were (1)
11499 that extending existing terms violated the Constitution's
11500 <quote>limited Times</quote> requirement, and (2) that extending terms
11501 by another twenty years violated the First Amendment.
11502 </para>
11503 <para>
11504 The district court dismissed our claims without even hearing an
11505 argument. A panel of the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit also
11506 dismissed our claims, though after hearing an extensive argument. But
11507 that decision at least had a dissent, by one of the most conservative
11508 judges on that court. That dissent gave our claims life.
11509 </para>
11510 <para>
11511 Judge David Sentelle said the CTEA violated the requirement that
11512 copyrights be for <quote>limited Times</quote> only. His argument was as elegant as
11513 it was simple: If Congress can extend existing terms, then there is no
11514 <quote>stopping point</quote> to Congress's power under the Copyright Clause. The
11515 power to extend existing terms means Congress is not required to grant
11516 terms that are <quote>limited.</quote> Thus, Judge Sentelle argued, the court had
11517 to interpret the term <quote>limited Times</quote> to give it meaning. And the best
11518 interpretation, Judge Sentelle argued, would be to deny Congress the
11519 power to extend existing terms.
11520 </para>
11521 <para>
11522 We asked the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit as a whole to
11523 hear the case. Cases are ordinarily heard in panels of three, except for
11524 important cases or cases that raise issues specific to the circuit as a
11525 whole, where the court will sit <quote>en banc</quote> to hear the case.
11526 </para>
11527 <indexterm><primary>Tatel, David</primary></indexterm>
11528 <para>
11529 The Court of Appeals rejected our request to hear the case en banc.
11530 This time, Judge Sentelle was joined by the most liberal member of the
11531
11532 <!-- PAGE BREAK 236 -->
11533 D.C. Circuit, Judge David Tatel. Both the most conservative and the
11534 most liberal judges in the D.C. Circuit believed Congress had
11535 overstepped its bounds.
11536 </para>
11537 <para>
11538 It was here that most expected Eldred v. Ashcroft would die, for the
11539 Supreme Court rarely reviews any decision by a court of appeals. (It
11540 hears about one hundred cases a year, out of more than five thousand
11541 appeals.) And it practically never reviews a decision that upholds a
11542 statute when no other court has yet reviewed the statute.
11543 </para>
11544 <para>
11545 But in February 2002, the Supreme Court surprised the world by
11546 granting our petition to review the D.C. Circuit opinion. Argument
11547 was set for October of 2002. The summer would be spent writing
11548 briefs and preparing for argument.
11549 </para>
11550 <para>
11551 <emphasis role='strong'>It is over</emphasis> a year later as I write
11552 these words. It is still astonishingly hard. If you know anything at
11553 all about this story, you know that we lost the appeal. And if you
11554 know something more than just the minimum, you probably think there
11555 was no way this case could have been won. After our defeat, I received
11556 literally thousands of missives by well-wishers and supporters,
11557 thanking me for my work on behalf of this noble but doomed cause. And
11558 none from this pile was more significant to me than the e-mail from my
11559 client, Eric Eldred.
11560 </para>
11561 <para>
11562 But my client and these friends were wrong. This case could have
11563 been won. It should have been won. And no matter how hard I try to
11564 retell this story to myself, I can never escape believing that my own
11565 mistake lost it.
11566 </para>
11567 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey</primary></indexterm>
11568 <para>
11569 <emphasis role='strong'>The mistake</emphasis> was made early, though
11570 it became obvious only at the very end. Our case had been supported
11571 from the very beginning by an extraordinary lawyer, Geoffrey Stewart,
11572 and by the law firm he had moved to, Jones, Day, Reavis and
11573 Pogue. Jones Day took a great deal of heat
11574 <!-- PAGE BREAK 237 -->
11575 from its copyright-protectionist clients for supporting us. They
11576 ignored this pressure (something that few law firms today would ever
11577 do), and throughout the case, they gave it everything they could.
11578 </para>
11579 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
11580 <indexterm><primary>Bromberg, Dan</primary></indexterm>
11581 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey</primary></indexterm>
11582 <para>
11583 There were three key lawyers on the case from Jones Day. Geoff
11584 Stewart was the first, but then Dan Bromberg and Don Ayer became
11585 quite involved. Bromberg and Ayer in particular had a common view
11586 about how this case would be won: We would only win, they repeatedly
11587 told me, if we could make the issue seem <quote>important</quote> to the Supreme
11588 Court. It had to seem as if dramatic harm were being done to free
11589 speech and free culture; otherwise, they would never vote against <quote>the
11590 most powerful media companies in the world.</quote>
11591 </para>
11592 <para>
11593 I hate this view of the law. Of course I thought the Sonny Bono Act
11594 was a dramatic harm to free speech and free culture. Of course I still
11595 think it is. But the idea that the Supreme Court decides the law based
11596 on how important they believe the issues are is just wrong. It might be
11597 <quote>right</quote> as in <quote>true,</quote> I thought, but it is <quote>wrong</quote> as in <quote>it just shouldn't be
11598 that way.</quote> As I believed that any faithful interpretation of what the
11599 framers of our Constitution did would yield the conclusion that the
11600 CTEA was unconstitutional, and as I believed that any faithful
11601 interpretation
11602 of what the First Amendment means would yield the
11603 conclusion that the power to extend existing copyright terms is
11604 unconstitutional,
11605 I was not persuaded that we had to sell our case like soap.
11606 Just as a law that bans the swastika is unconstitutional not because the
11607 Court likes Nazis but because such a law would violate the
11608 Constitution,
11609 so too, in my view, would the Court decide whether Congress's
11610 law was constitutional based on the Constitution, not based on whether
11611 they liked the values that the framers put in the Constitution.
11612 </para>
11613 <para>
11614 In any case, I thought, the Court must already see the danger and
11615 the harm caused by this sort of law. Why else would they grant review?
11616 There was no reason to hear the case in the Supreme Court if they
11617 weren't convinced that this regulation was harmful. So in my view, we
11618 didn't need to persuade them that this law was bad, we needed to show
11619 why it was unconstitutional.
11620 </para>
11621 <para>
11622 There was one way, however, in which I felt politics would matter
11623
11624 <!-- PAGE BREAK 238 -->
11625 and in which I thought a response was appropriate. I was convinced
11626 that the Court would not hear our arguments if it thought these were
11627 just the arguments of a group of lefty loons. This Supreme Court was
11628 not about to launch into a new field of judicial review if it seemed
11629 that this field of review was simply the preference of a small
11630 political minority. Although my focus in the case was not to
11631 demonstrate how bad the Sonny Bono Act was but to demonstrate that it
11632 was unconstitutional, my hope was to make this argument against a
11633 background of briefs that covered the full range of political
11634 views. To show that this claim against the CTEA was grounded in
11635 <emphasis>law</emphasis> and not politics, then, we tried to gather
11636 the widest range of credible critics&mdash;credible not because they
11637 were rich and famous, but because they, in the aggregate, demonstrated
11638 that this law was unconstitutional regardless of one's politics.
11639 </para>
11640 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum</primary></indexterm>
11641 <indexterm><primary>Schlafly, Phyllis</primary></indexterm>
11642 <para>
11643 The first step happened all by itself. Phyllis Schlafly's
11644 organization, Eagle Forum, had been an opponent of the CTEA from the
11645 very beginning. Mrs. Schlafly viewed the CTEA as a sellout by
11646 Congress. In November 1998, she wrote a stinging editorial attacking
11647 the Republican Congress for allowing the law to pass. As she wrote,
11648 <quote>Do you sometimes wonder why bills that create a financial windfall to
11649 narrow special interests slide easily through the intricate
11650 legislative process, while bills that benefit the general public seem
11651 to get bogged down?</quote> The answer, as the editorial documented, was the
11652 power of money. Schlafly enumerated Disney's contributions to the key
11653 players on the committees. It was money, not justice, that gave Mickey
11654 Mouse twenty more years in Disney's control, Schlafly argued.
11655 </para>
11656 <para>
11657 In the Court of Appeals, Eagle Forum was eager to file a brief
11658 supporting our position. Their brief made the argument that became the
11659 core claim in the Supreme Court: If Congress can extend the term of
11660 existing copyrights, there is no limit to Congress's power to set
11661 terms. That strong conservative argument persuaded a strong
11662 conservative judge, Judge Sentelle.
11663 </para>
11664 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
11665 <indexterm><primary>Intel</primary></indexterm>
11666 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
11667 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum</primary></indexterm>
11668 <para>
11669 In the Supreme Court, the briefs on our side were about as diverse as
11670 it gets. They included an extraordinary historical brief by the Free
11671
11672 <!-- PAGE BREAK 239 -->
11673 Software Foundation (home of the GNU project that made GNU/ Linux
11674 possible). They included a powerful brief about the costs of
11675 uncertainty by Intel. There were two law professors' briefs, one by
11676 copyright scholars and one by First Amendment scholars. There was an
11677 exhaustive and uncontroverted brief by the world's experts in the
11678 history of the Progress Clause. And of course, there was a new brief
11679 by Eagle Forum, repeating and strengthening its arguments.
11680 </para>
11681 <indexterm><primary>American Association of Law Libraries</primary></indexterm>
11682 <indexterm><primary>National Writers Union</primary></indexterm>
11683 <para>
11684 Those briefs framed a legal argument. Then to support the legal
11685 argument, there were a number of powerful briefs by libraries and
11686 archives, including the Internet Archive, the American Association of
11687 Law Libraries, and the National Writers Union.
11688 </para>
11689 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios</primary></indexterm>
11690 <para>
11691 But two briefs captured the policy argument best. One made the
11692 argument I've already described: A brief by Hal Roach Studios argued
11693 that unless the law was struck, a whole generation of American film
11694 would disappear. The other made the economic argument absolutely
11695 clear.
11696 </para>
11697 <indexterm><primary>Akerlof, George</primary></indexterm>
11698 <indexterm><primary>Arrow, Kenneth</primary></indexterm>
11699 <indexterm><primary>Buchanan, James</primary></indexterm>
11700 <indexterm><primary>Coase, Ronald</primary></indexterm>
11701 <indexterm><primary>Friedman, Milton</primary></indexterm>
11702 <para>
11703 This economists' brief was signed by seventeen economists, including
11704 five Nobel Prize winners, including Ronald Coase, James Buchanan,
11705 Milton Friedman, Kenneth Arrow, and George Akerlof. The economists, as
11706 the list of Nobel winners demonstrates, spanned the political
11707 spectrum. Their conclusions were powerful: There was no plausible
11708 claim that extending the terms of existing copyrights would do
11709 anything to increase incentives to create. Such extensions were
11710 nothing more than <quote>rent-seeking</quote>&mdash;the fancy term economists use
11711 to describe special-interest legislation gone wild.
11712 </para>
11713 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles</primary></indexterm>
11714 <indexterm><primary>Morrison, Alan</primary></indexterm>
11715 <indexterm><primary>Public Citizen</primary></indexterm>
11716 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald</primary></indexterm>
11717 <para>
11718 The same effort at balance was reflected in the legal team we gathered
11719 to write our briefs in the case. The Jones Day lawyers had been with
11720 us from the start. But when the case got to the Supreme Court, we
11721 added three lawyers to help us frame this argument to this Court: Alan
11722 Morrison, a lawyer from Public Citizen, a Washington group that had
11723 made constitutional history with a series of seminal victories in the
11724 Supreme Court defending individual rights; my colleague and dean,
11725 Kathleen Sullivan, who had argued many cases in the Court, and
11726
11727 <!-- PAGE BREAK 240 -->
11728 who had advised us early on about a First Amendment strategy; and
11729 finally, former solicitor general Charles Fried.
11730 </para>
11731 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles</primary></indexterm>
11732 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.</primary><secondary>constitutional powers of</secondary></indexterm>
11733 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.</primary><secondary>Commerce Clause of</secondary></indexterm>
11734 <para>
11735 Fried was a special victory for our side. Every other former solicitor
11736 general was hired by the other side to defend Congress's power to give
11737 media companies the special favor of extended copyright terms. Fried
11738 was the only one who turned down that lucrative assignment to stand up
11739 for something he believed in. He had been Ronald Reagan's chief lawyer
11740 in the Supreme Court. He had helped craft the line of cases that
11741 limited Congress's power in the context of the Commerce Clause. And
11742 while he had argued many positions in the Supreme Court that I
11743 personally disagreed with, his joining the cause was a vote of
11744 confidence in our argument.
11745 </para>
11746 <para>
11747 The government, in defending the statute, had its collection of
11748 friends, as well. Significantly, however, none of these <quote>friends</quote> included
11749 historians or economists. The briefs on the other side of the case were
11750 written exclusively by major media companies, congressmen, and
11751 copyright holders.
11752 </para>
11753 <para>
11754 The media companies were not surprising. They had the most to gain
11755 from the law. The congressmen were not surprising either&mdash;they
11756 were defending their power and, indirectly, the gravy train of
11757 contributions such power induced. And of course it was not surprising
11758 that the copyright holders would defend the idea that they should
11759 continue to have the right to control who did what with content they
11760 wanted to control.
11761 </para>
11762 <indexterm><primary>Gershwin, George</primary></indexterm>
11763 <indexterm><primary>Porgy and Bess</primary></indexterm>
11764 <indexterm><primary>pornography</primary></indexterm>
11765 <para>
11766 Dr. Seuss's representatives, for example, argued that it was
11767 better for the Dr. Seuss estate to control what happened to
11768 Dr. Seuss's work&mdash; better than allowing it to fall into the
11769 public domain&mdash;because if this creativity were in the public
11770 domain, then people could use it to <quote>glorify drugs or to create
11771 pornography.</quote><footnote><para>
11772 <!-- f14. -->
11773 Brief of Amici Dr. Seuss Enterprise et al., <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, 537
11774 U.S. (2003) (No. 01-618), 19.
11775 </para></footnote>
11776 That was also the motive of the Gershwin estate, which defended its
11777 <quote>protection</quote> of the work of George Gershwin. They refuse, for example,
11778 to license <citetitle>Porgy and Bess</citetitle> to anyone who refuses to use African
11779 Americans in the cast.<footnote><para>
11780 <!-- f15. -->
11781 Dinitia Smith, <quote>Immortal Words, Immortal Royalties? Even Mickey
11782 Mouse Joins the Fray,</quote> <citetitle>New York Times</citetitle>, 28 March 1998, B7.
11783 </para></footnote>
11784 That's
11785 <!-- PAGE BREAK 241 -->
11786 their view of how this part of American culture should be controlled,
11787 and they wanted this law to help them effect that control.
11788 </para>
11789 <para>
11790 This argument made clear a theme that is rarely noticed in this
11791 debate. When Congress decides to extend the term of existing
11792 copyrights, Congress is making a choice about which speakers it will
11793 favor. Famous and beloved copyright owners, such as the Gershwin
11794 estate and Dr. Seuss, come to Congress and say, <quote>Give us twenty years
11795 to control the speech about these icons of American culture. We'll do
11796 better with them than anyone else.</quote> Congress of course likes to reward
11797 the popular and famous by giving them what they want. But when
11798 Congress gives people an exclusive right to speak in a certain way,
11799 that's just what the First Amendment is traditionally meant to block.
11800 </para>
11801 <para>
11802 We argued as much in a final brief. Not only would upholding the CTEA
11803 mean that there was no limit to the power of Congress to extend
11804 copyrights&mdash;extensions that would further concentrate the market;
11805 it would also mean that there was no limit to Congress's power to play
11806 favorites, through copyright, with who has the right to speak.
11807 </para>
11808 <para>
11809 <emphasis role='strong'>Between February</emphasis> and October, there
11810 was little I did beyond preparing for this case. Early on, as I said,
11811 I set the strategy.
11812 </para>
11813 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.</primary></indexterm>
11814 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day</primary></indexterm>
11815 <para>
11816 The Supreme Court was divided into two important camps. One camp we
11817 called <quote>the Conservatives.</quote> The other we called <quote>the Rest.</quote> The
11818 Conservatives included Chief Justice Rehnquist, Justice O'Connor,
11819 Justice Scalia, Justice Kennedy, and Justice Thomas. These five had
11820 been the most consistent in limiting Congress's power. They were the
11821 five who had supported the <citetitle>Lopez/Morrison</citetitle> line
11822 of cases that said that an enumerated power had to be interpreted to
11823 assure that Congress's powers had limits.
11824 </para>
11825 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen</primary></indexterm>
11826 <indexterm id='idxginsburg' class='startofrange'><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader</primary></indexterm>
11827 <para>
11828 The Rest were the four Justices who had strongly opposed limits on
11829 Congress's power. These four&mdash;Justice Stevens, Justice Souter,
11830 Justice Ginsburg, and Justice Breyer&mdash;had repeatedly argued that
11831 the Constitution
11832 <!-- PAGE BREAK 242 -->
11833 gives Congress broad discretion to decide how best to implement its
11834 powers. In case after case, these justices had argued that the Court's
11835 role should be one of deference. Though the votes of these four
11836 justices were the votes that I personally had most consistently agreed
11837 with, they were also the votes that we were least likely to get.
11838 </para>
11839 <para>
11840 In particular, the least likely was Justice Ginsburg's. In addition to
11841 her general view about deference to Congress (except where issues of
11842 gender are involved), she had been particularly deferential in the
11843 context of intellectual property protections. She and her daughter (an
11844 excellent and well-known intellectual property scholar) were cut from
11845 the same intellectual property cloth. We expected she would agree with
11846 the writings of her daughter: that Congress had the power in this
11847 context to do as it wished, even if what Congress wished made little
11848 sense.
11849 </para>
11850 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen</primary></indexterm>
11851 <para>
11852 Close behind Justice Ginsburg were two justices whom we also viewed as
11853 unlikely allies, though possible surprises. Justice Souter strongly
11854 favored deference to Congress, as did Justice Breyer. But both were
11855 also very sensitive to free speech concerns. And as we strongly
11856 believed, there was a very important free speech argument against
11857 these retrospective extensions.
11858 </para>
11859 <indexterm startref='idxginsburg' class='endofrange'/>
11860 <para>
11861 The only vote we could be confident about was that of Justice
11862 Stevens. History will record Justice Stevens as one of the greatest
11863 judges on this Court. His votes are consistently eclectic, which just
11864 means that no simple ideology explains where he will stand. But he
11865 had consistently argued for limits in the context of intellectual property
11866 generally. We were fairly confident he would recognize limits here.
11867 </para>
11868 <para>
11869 This analysis of <quote>the Rest</quote> showed most clearly where our focus had to
11870 be: on the Conservatives. To win this case, we had to crack open these
11871 five and get at least a majority to go our way. Thus, the single
11872 overriding argument that animated our claim rested on the
11873 Conservatives' most important jurisprudential innovation&mdash;the
11874 argument that Judge Sentelle had relied upon in the Court of Appeals,
11875 that Congress's power must be interpreted so that its enumerated
11876 powers have limits.
11877 </para>
11878 <para>
11879 This then was the core of our strategy&mdash;a strategy for which I am
11880 responsible. We would get the Court to see that just as with the
11881 <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>
11882 <!-- PAGE BREAK 243 -->
11883 case, under the government's argument here, Congress would always have
11884 unlimited power to extend existing terms. If anything was plain about
11885 Congress's power under the Progress Clause, it was that this power was
11886 supposed to be <quote>limited.</quote> Our aim would be to get the Court to
11887 reconcile <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> with
11888 <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>: If Congress's power to regulate commerce
11889 was limited, then so, too, must Congress's power to regulate copyright
11890 be limited.
11891 </para>
11892 <para>
11893 <emphasis role='strong'>The argument</emphasis> on the government's
11894 side came down to this: Congress has done it before. It should be
11895 allowed to do it again. The government claimed that from the very
11896 beginning, Congress has been extending the term of existing
11897 copyrights. So, the government argued, the Court should not now say
11898 that practice is unconstitutional.
11899 </para>
11900 <para>
11901 There was some truth to the government's claim, but not much. We
11902 certainly agreed that Congress had extended existing terms in 1831
11903 and in 1909. And of course, in 1962, Congress began extending
11904 existing
11905 terms regularly&mdash;eleven times in forty years.
11906 </para>
11907 <para>
11908 But this <quote>consistency</quote> should be kept in perspective. Congress
11909 extended
11910 existing terms once in the first hundred years of the Republic.
11911 It then extended existing terms once again in the next fifty. Those rare
11912 extensions are in contrast to the now regular practice of extending
11913 existing
11914 terms. Whatever restraint Congress had had in the past, that
11915 restraint
11916 was now gone. Congress was now in a cycle of extensions; there
11917 was no reason to expect that cycle would end. This Court had not
11918 hesitated
11919 to intervene where Congress was in a similar cycle of extension.
11920 There was no reason it couldn't intervene here.
11921 </para>
11922 <para>
11923 <emphasis role='strong'>Oral argument</emphasis> was scheduled for the
11924 first week in October. I arrived in D.C. two weeks before the
11925 argument. During those two weeks, I was repeatedly
11926 <quote>mooted</quote> by lawyers who had volunteered to
11927
11928 <!-- PAGE BREAK 244 -->
11929 help in the case. Such <quote>moots</quote> are basically practice rounds, where
11930 wannabe justices fire questions at wannabe winners.
11931 </para>
11932 <para>
11933 I was convinced that to win, I had to keep the Court focused on a
11934 single point: that if this extension is permitted, then there is no limit to
11935 the power to set terms. Going with the government would mean that
11936 terms would be effectively unlimited; going with us would give
11937 Congress
11938 a clear line to follow: Don't extend existing terms. The moots
11939 were an effective practice; I found ways to take every question back to
11940 this central idea.
11941 </para>
11942 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
11943 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald</primary></indexterm>
11944 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles</primary></indexterm>
11945 <para>
11946 One moot was before the lawyers at Jones Day. Don Ayer was the
11947 skeptic. He had served in the Reagan Justice Department with Solicitor
11948 General Charles Fried. He had argued many cases before the Supreme
11949 Court. And in his review of the moot, he let his concern speak:
11950 </para>
11951 <para>
11952 <quote>I'm just afraid that unless they really see the harm, they won't be
11953 willing to upset this practice that the government says has been a
11954 consistent practice for two hundred years. You have to make them see
11955 the harm&mdash;passionately get them to see the harm. For if they
11956 don't see that, then we haven't any chance of winning.</quote>
11957 </para>
11958 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
11959 <para>
11960 He may have argued many cases before this Court, I thought, but
11961 he didn't understand its soul. As a clerk, I had seen the Justices do the
11962 right thing&mdash;not because of politics but because it was right. As a law
11963 professor, I had spent my life teaching my students that this Court
11964 does the right thing&mdash;not because of politics but because it is right. As
11965 I listened to Ayer's plea for passion in pressing politics, I understood
11966 his point, and I rejected it. Our argument was right. That was enough.
11967 Let the politicians learn to see that it was also good.
11968 </para>
11969 <para>
11970 <emphasis role='strong'>The night before</emphasis> the argument, a
11971 line of people began to form in front of the Supreme Court. The case
11972 had become a focus of the press and of the movement to free
11973 culture. Hundreds stood in line
11974
11975 <!-- PAGE BREAK 245 -->
11976 for the chance to see the proceedings. Scores spent the night on the
11977 Supreme Court steps so that they would be assured a seat.
11978 </para>
11979 <para>
11980 Not everyone has to wait in line. People who know the Justices can
11981 ask for seats they control. (I asked Justice Scalia's chambers for seats for
11982 my parents, for example.) Members of the Supreme Court bar can get
11983 a seat in a special section reserved for them. And senators and
11984 congressmen
11985 have a special place where they get to sit, too. And finally, of
11986 course, the press has a gallery, as do clerks working for the Justices on
11987 the Court. As we entered that morning, there was no place that was
11988 not taken. This was an argument about intellectual property law, yet
11989 the halls were filled. As I walked in to take my seat at the front of the
11990 Court, I saw my parents sitting on the left. As I sat down at the table,
11991 I saw Jack Valenti sitting in the special section ordinarily reserved for
11992 family of the Justices.
11993 </para>
11994 <para>
11995 When the Chief Justice called me to begin my argument, I began
11996 where I intended to stay: on the question of the limits on Congress's
11997 power. This was a case about enumerated powers, I said, and whether
11998 those enumerated powers had any limit.
11999 </para>
12000 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day</primary></indexterm>
12001 <para>
12002 Justice O'Connor stopped me within one minute of my opening.
12003 The history was bothering her.
12004 </para>
12005 <blockquote>
12006 <para>
12007 justice o'connor: Congress has extended the term so often
12008 through the years, and if you are right, don't we run the risk of
12009 upsetting previous extensions of time? I mean, this seems to be a
12010 practice that began with the very first act.
12011 </para>
12012 </blockquote>
12013 <para>
12014 She was quite willing to concede <quote>that this flies directly in the face
12015 of what the framers had in mind.</quote> But my response again and again
12016 was to emphasize limits on Congress's power.
12017 </para>
12018 <blockquote>
12019 <para>
12020 mr. lessig: Well, if it flies in the face of what the framers had in
12021 mind, then the question is, is there a way of interpreting their
12022 <!-- PAGE BREAK 246 -->
12023 words that gives effect to what they had in mind, and the answer
12024 is yes.
12025 </para>
12026 </blockquote>
12027 <para>
12028 There were two points in this argument when I should have seen
12029 where the Court was going. The first was a question by Justice
12030 Kennedy, who observed,
12031 </para>
12032 <blockquote>
12033 <para>
12034 justice kennedy: Well, I suppose implicit in the argument that
12035 the '76 act, too, should have been declared void, and that we
12036 might leave it alone because of the disruption, is that for all these
12037 years the act has impeded progress in science and the useful arts.
12038 I just don't see any empirical evidence for that.
12039 </para>
12040 </blockquote>
12041 <para>
12042 Here follows my clear mistake. Like a professor correcting a
12043 student,
12044 I answered,
12045 </para>
12046 <blockquote>
12047 <para>
12048 mr. lessig: Justice, we are not making an empirical claim at all.
12049 Nothing in our Copyright Clause claim hangs upon the empirical
12050 assertion about impeding progress. Our only argument is this is a
12051 structural limit necessary to assure that what would be an effectively
12052 perpetual term not be permitted under the copyright laws.
12053 </para>
12054 </blockquote>
12055 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
12056 <para>
12057 That was a correct answer, but it wasn't the right answer. The right
12058 answer was instead that there was an obvious and profound harm. Any
12059 number of briefs had been written about it. He wanted to hear it. And
12060 here was the place Don Ayer's advice should have mattered. This was a
12061 softball; my answer was a swing and a miss.
12062 </para>
12063 <para>
12064 The second came from the Chief, for whom the whole case had been
12065 crafted. For the Chief Justice had crafted the <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> ruling,
12066 and we hoped that he would see this case as its second cousin.
12067 </para>
12068 <para>
12069 It was clear a second into his question that he wasn't at all
12070 sympathetic. To him, we were a bunch of anarchists. As he asked:
12071
12072 <!-- PAGE BREAK 247 -->
12073 </para>
12074 <blockquote>
12075 <para>
12076 chief justice: Well, but you want more than that. You want the
12077 right to copy verbatim other people's books, don't you?
12078 </para>
12079 <para>
12080 mr. lessig: We want the right to copy verbatim works that
12081 should be in the public domain and would be in the public
12082 domain
12083 but for a statute that cannot be justified under ordinary First
12084 Amendment analysis or under a proper reading of the limits built
12085 into the Copyright Clause.
12086 </para>
12087 </blockquote>
12088 <indexterm><primary>Olson, Theodore B.</primary></indexterm>
12089 <para>
12090 Things went better for us when the government gave its argument;
12091 for now the Court picked up on the core of our claim. As Justice Scalia
12092 asked Solicitor General Olson,
12093 </para>
12094 <blockquote>
12095 <para>
12096 justice scalia: You say that the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12097 time would be a violation [of the Constitution], but that's precisely
12098 the argument that's being made by petitioners here, that a limited
12099 time which is extendable is the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12100 time.
12101 </para>
12102 </blockquote>
12103 <para>
12104 When Olson was finished, it was my turn to give a closing rebuttal.
12105 Olson's flailing had revived my anger. But my anger still was directed
12106 to the academic, not the practical. The government was arguing as if
12107 this were the first case ever to consider limits on Congress's
12108 Copyright and Patent Clause power. Ever the professor and not the
12109 advocate, I closed by pointing out the long history of the Court
12110 imposing limits on Congress's power in the name of the Copyright and
12111 Patent Clause&mdash; indeed, the very first case striking a law of
12112 Congress as exceeding a specific enumerated power was based upon the
12113 Copyright and Patent Clause. All true. But it wasn't going to move the
12114 Court to my side.
12115 </para>
12116 <para>
12117 <emphasis role='strong'>As I left</emphasis> the court that day, I
12118 knew there were a hundred points I wished I could remake. There were a
12119 hundred questions I wished I had
12120
12121 <!-- PAGE BREAK 248 -->
12122 answered differently. But one way of thinking about this case left me
12123 optimistic.
12124 </para>
12125 <para>
12126 The government had been asked over and over again, what is the limit?
12127 Over and over again, it had answered there is no limit. This was
12128 precisely the answer I wanted the Court to hear. For I could not
12129 imagine how the Court could understand that the government believed
12130 Congress's power was unlimited under the terms of the Copyright
12131 Clause, and sustain the government's argument. The solicitor general
12132 had made my argument for me. No matter how often I tried, I could not
12133 understand how the Court could find that Congress's power under the
12134 Commerce Clause was limited, but under the Copyright Clause,
12135 unlimited. In those rare moments when I let myself believe that we may
12136 have prevailed, it was because I felt this Court&mdash;in particular,
12137 the Conservatives&mdash;would feel itself constrained by the rule of
12138 law that it had established elsewhere.
12139 </para>
12140 <para>
12141 <emphasis role='strong'>The morning</emphasis> of January 15, 2003, I
12142 was five minutes late to the office and missed the 7:00 A.M. call from
12143 the Supreme Court clerk. Listening to the message, I could tell in an
12144 instant that she had bad news to report.The Supreme Court had affirmed
12145 the decision of the Court of Appeals. Seven justices had voted in the
12146 majority. There were two dissents.
12147 </para>
12148 <para>
12149 A few seconds later, the opinions arrived by e-mail. I took the
12150 phone off the hook, posted an announcement to our blog, and sat
12151 down to see where I had been wrong in my reasoning.
12152 </para>
12153 <para>
12154 My <emphasis>reasoning</emphasis>. Here was a case that pitted all the
12155 money in the world against <emphasis>reasoning</emphasis>. And here
12156 was the last naïve law professor, scouring the pages, looking for
12157 reasoning.
12158 </para>
12159 <para>
12160 I first scoured the opinion, looking for how the Court would
12161 distinguish the principle in this case from the principle in
12162 <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>. The argument was nowhere to be found. The case was not even
12163 cited. The argument that was the core argument of our case did not
12164 even appear in the Court's opinion.
12165 </para>
12166 <indexterm><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader</primary></indexterm>
12167 <para>
12168
12169 <!-- PAGE BREAK 249 -->
12170 Justice Ginsburg simply ignored the enumerated powers argument.
12171 Consistent with her view that Congress's power was not limited
12172 generally, she had found Congress's power not limited here.
12173 </para>
12174 <para>
12175 Her opinion was perfectly reasonable&mdash;for her, and for Justice
12176 Souter. Neither believes in <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle>. It would be too much to expect them
12177 to write an opinion that recognized, much less explained, the doctrine
12178 they had worked so hard to defeat.
12179 </para>
12180 <para>
12181 But as I realized what had happened, I couldn't quite believe what I
12182 was reading. I had said there was no way this Court could reconcile
12183 limited powers with the Commerce Clause and unlimited powers with the
12184 Progress Clause. It had never even occurred to me that they could
12185 reconcile the two simply <emphasis>by not addressing the
12186 argument</emphasis>. There was no inconsistency because they would not
12187 talk about the two together. There was therefore no principle that
12188 followed from the <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> case: In that context, Congress's power would
12189 be limited, but in this context it would not.
12190 </para>
12191 <para>
12192 Yet by what right did they get to choose which of the framers' values
12193 they would respect? By what right did they&mdash;the silent
12194 five&mdash;get to select the part of the Constitution they would
12195 enforce based on the values they thought important? We were right back
12196 to the argument that I said I hated at the start: I had failed to
12197 convince them that the issue here was important, and I had failed to
12198 recognize that however much I might hate a system in which the Court
12199 gets to pick the constitutional values that it will respect, that is
12200 the system we have.
12201 </para>
12202 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen</primary></indexterm>
12203 <para>
12204 Justices Breyer and Stevens wrote very strong dissents. Stevens's
12205 opinion was crafted internal to the law: He argued that the tradition
12206 of intellectual property law should not support this unjustified
12207 extension of terms. He based his argument on a parallel analysis that
12208 had governed in the context of patents (so had we). But the rest of
12209 the Court discounted the parallel&mdash;without explaining how the
12210 very same words in the Progress Clause could come to mean totally
12211 different things depending upon whether the words were about patents
12212 or copyrights. The Court let Justice Stevens's charge go unanswered.
12213 </para>
12214 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen</primary></indexterm>
12215 <para>
12216 <!-- PAGE BREAK 250 -->
12217 Justice Breyer's opinion, perhaps the best opinion he has ever
12218 written, was external to the Constitution. He argued that the term of
12219 copyrights has become so long as to be effectively unlimited. We had
12220 said that under the current term, a copyright gave an author 99.8
12221 percent of the value of a perpetual term. Breyer said we were wrong,
12222 that the actual number was 99.9997 percent of a perpetual term. Either
12223 way, the point was clear: If the Constitution said a term had to be
12224 <quote>limited,</quote> and the existing term was so long as to be effectively
12225 unlimited, then it was unconstitutional.
12226 </para>
12227 <para>
12228 These two justices understood all the arguments we had made. But
12229 because neither believed in the <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> case, neither was willing to push
12230 it as a reason to reject this extension. The case was decided without
12231 anyone having addressed the argument that we had carried from Judge
12232 Sentelle. It was <citetitle>Hamlet</citetitle> without the Prince.
12233 </para>
12234 <para>
12235 <emphasis role='strong'>Defeat brings depression</emphasis>. They say
12236 it is a sign of health when depression gives way to anger. My anger
12237 came quickly, but it didn't cure the depression. This anger was of two
12238 sorts.
12239 </para>
12240 <indexterm><primary>originalism</primary></indexterm>
12241 <para>
12242 It was first anger with the five <quote>Conservatives.</quote> It would have been
12243 one thing for them to have explained why the principle of <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> didn't
12244 apply in this case. That wouldn't have been a very convincing
12245 argument, I don't believe, having read it made by others, and having
12246 tried to make it myself. But it at least would have been an act of
12247 integrity. These justices in particular have repeatedly said that the
12248 proper mode of interpreting the Constitution is <quote>originalism</quote>&mdash;to
12249 first understand the framers' text, interpreted in their context, in
12250 light of the structure of the Constitution. That method had produced
12251 <citetitle>Lopez</citetitle> and many other <quote>originalist</quote> rulings. Where was their
12252 <quote>originalism</quote> now?
12253 </para>
12254 <para>
12255 Here, they had joined an opinion that never once tried to explain
12256 what the framers had meant by crafting the Progress Clause as they
12257 did; they joined an opinion that never once tried to explain how the
12258 structure of that clause would affect the interpretation of Congress's
12259
12260 <!-- PAGE BREAK 251 -->
12261 power. And they joined an opinion that didn't even try to explain why
12262 this grant of power could be unlimited, whereas the Commerce Clause
12263 would be limited. In short, they had joined an opinion that did not
12264 apply to, and was inconsistent with, their own method for interpreting
12265 the Constitution. This opinion may well have yielded a result that
12266 they liked. It did not produce a reason that was consistent with their
12267 own principles.
12268 </para>
12269 <para>
12270 My anger with the Conservatives quickly yielded to anger with
12271 myself.
12272 For I had let a view of the law that I liked interfere with a view of
12273 the law as it is.
12274 </para>
12275 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
12276 <para>
12277 Most lawyers, and most law professors, have little patience for
12278 idealism about courts in general and this Supreme Court in particular.
12279 Most have a much more pragmatic view. When Don Ayer said that this
12280 case would be won based on whether I could convince the Justices that
12281 the framers' values were important, I fought the idea, because I
12282 didn't want to believe that that is how this Court decides. I insisted
12283 on arguing this case as if it were a simple application of a set of
12284 principles. I had an argument that followed in logic. I didn't need
12285 to waste my time showing it should also follow in popularity.
12286 </para>
12287 <para>
12288 As I read back over the transcript from that argument in October, I
12289 can see a hundred places where the answers could have taken the
12290 conversation in different directions, where the truth about the harm
12291 that this unchecked power will cause could have been made clear to
12292 this Court. Justice Kennedy in good faith wanted to be shown. I,
12293 idiotically, corrected his question. Justice Souter in good faith
12294 wanted to be shown the First Amendment harms. I, like a math teacher,
12295 reframed the question to make the logical point. I had shown them how
12296 they could strike this law of Congress if they wanted to. There were a
12297 hundred places where I could have helped them want to, yet my
12298 stubbornness, my refusal to give in, stopped me. I have stood before
12299 hundreds of audiences trying to persuade; I have used passion in that
12300 effort to persuade; but I
12301 <!-- PAGE BREAK 252 -->
12302 refused to stand before this audience and try to persuade with the
12303 passion I had used elsewhere. It was not the basis on which a court
12304 should decide the issue.
12305 </para>
12306 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
12307 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles</primary></indexterm>
12308 <para>
12309 Would it have been different if I had argued it differently? Would it
12310 have been different if Don Ayer had argued it? Or Charles Fried? Or
12311 Kathleen Sullivan?
12312 </para>
12313 <para>
12314 My friends huddled around me to insist it would not. The Court
12315 was not ready, my friends insisted. This was a loss that was destined. It
12316 would take a great deal more to show our society why our framers were
12317 right. And when we do that, we will be able to show that Court.
12318 </para>
12319 <para>
12320 Maybe, but I doubt it. These Justices have no financial interest in
12321 doing anything except the right thing. They are not lobbied. They have
12322 little reason to resist doing right. I can't help but think that if I had
12323 stepped down from this pretty picture of dispassionate justice, I could
12324 have persuaded.
12325 </para>
12326 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter</primary></indexterm>
12327 <para>
12328 And even if I couldn't, then that doesn't excuse what happened in
12329 January. For at the start of this case, one of America's leading
12330 intellectual property professors stated publicly that my bringing this
12331 case was a mistake. <quote>The Court is not ready,</quote> Peter Jaszi said; this
12332 issue should not be raised until it is.
12333 </para>
12334 <para>
12335 After the argument and after the decision, Peter said to me, and
12336 publicly, that he was wrong. But if indeed that Court could not have
12337 been persuaded, then that is all the evidence that's needed to know that
12338 here again Peter was right. Either I was not ready to argue this case in
12339 a way that would do some good or they were not ready to hear this case
12340 in a way that would do some good. Either way, the decision to bring
12341 this case&mdash;a decision I had made four years before&mdash;was wrong.
12342 </para>
12343 <para>
12344 <emphasis role='strong'>While the reaction</emphasis> to the Sonny
12345 Bono Act itself was almost unanimously negative, the reaction to the
12346 Court's decision was mixed. No one, at least in the press, tried to
12347 say that extending the term of copyright was a good idea. We had won
12348 that battle over ideas. Where
12349
12350 <!-- PAGE BREAK 253 -->
12351 the decision was praised, it was praised by papers that had been
12352 skeptical of the Court's activism in other cases. Deference was a good
12353 thing, even if it left standing a silly law. But where the decision
12354 was attacked, it was attacked because it left standing a silly and
12355 harmful law. <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle> wrote in its editorial,
12356 </para>
12357 <blockquote>
12358 <para>
12359 In effect, the Supreme Court's decision makes it likely that we are
12360 seeing the beginning of the end of public domain and the birth of
12361 copyright perpetuity. The public domain has been a grand experiment,
12362 one that should not be allowed to die. The ability to draw freely on
12363 the entire creative output of humanity is one of the reasons we live
12364 in a time of such fruitful creative ferment.
12365 </para>
12366 </blockquote>
12367 <para>
12368 The best responses were in the cartoons. There was a gaggle of
12369 hilarious images&mdash;of Mickey in jail and the like. The best, from
12370 my view of the case, was Ruben Bolling's, reproduced on the next page
12371 (<xref linkend="fig-18"/>). The <quote>powerful and wealthy</quote> line is a bit
12372 unfair. But the punch in the face felt exactly like that.
12373 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben</primary></indexterm>
12374 </para>
12375 <figure id="fig-18">
12376 <title>Tom the Dancing Bug cartoon</title>
12377 <graphic fileref="images/18.png"></graphic>
12378 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben</primary></indexterm>
12379 </figure>
12380 <para>
12381 The image that will always stick in my head is that evoked by the
12382 quote from <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle>. That <quote>grand experiment</quote> we call the
12383 <quote>public domain</quote> is over? When I can make light of it, I think, <quote>Honey,
12384 I shrunk the Constitution.</quote> But I can rarely make light of it. We had
12385 in our Constitution a commitment to free culture. In the case that I
12386 fathered, the Supreme Court effectively renounced that commitment. A
12387 better lawyer would have made them see differently.
12388 </para>
12389 <!-- PAGE BREAK 254 -->
12390 </chapter>
12391 <chapter label="14" id="eldred-ii">
12392 <title>CHAPTER FOURTEEN: Eldred II</title>
12393 <para>
12394 <emphasis role='strong'>The day</emphasis>
12395 <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> was decided, fate would have it that I
12396 was to travel to Washington, D.C. (The day the rehearing petition in
12397 <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> was denied&mdash;meaning the case was
12398 really finally over&mdash;fate would have it that I was giving a
12399 speech to technologists at Disney World.) This was a particularly
12400 long flight to my least favorite city. The drive into the city from
12401 Dulles was delayed because of traffic, so I opened up my computer and
12402 wrote an op-ed piece.
12403 </para>
12404 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don</primary></indexterm>
12405 <para>
12406 It was an act of contrition. During the whole of the flight from San
12407 Francisco to Washington, I had heard over and over again in my head
12408 the same advice from Don Ayer: You need to make them see why it is
12409 important. And alternating with that command was the question of
12410 Justice Kennedy: <quote>For all these years the act has impeded progress in
12411 science and the useful arts. I just don't see any empirical evidence for
12412 that.</quote> And so, having failed in the argument of constitutional principle,
12413 finally, I turned to an argument of politics.
12414 </para>
12415 <para>
12416 <citetitle>The New York Times</citetitle> published the piece. In it, I proposed a simple
12417 fix: Fifty years after a work has been published, the copyright owner
12418 <!-- PAGE BREAK 256 -->
12419 would be required to register the work and pay a small fee. If he paid
12420 the fee, he got the benefit of the full term of copyright. If he did not,
12421 the work passed into the public domain.
12422 </para>
12423 <para>
12424 We called this the Eldred Act, but that was just to give it a name.
12425 Eric Eldred was kind enough to let his name be used once again, but as
12426 he said early on, it won't get passed unless it has another name.
12427 </para>
12428 <para>
12429 Or another two names. For depending upon your perspective, this
12430 is either the <quote>Public Domain Enhancement Act</quote> or the <quote>Copyright
12431 Term Deregulation Act.</quote> Either way, the essence of the idea is clear
12432 and obvious: Remove copyright where it is doing nothing except
12433 blocking access and the spread of knowledge. Leave it for as long as
12434 Congress allows for those works where its worth is at least $1. But for
12435 everything else, let the content go.
12436 </para>
12437 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve</primary></indexterm>
12438 <para>
12439 The reaction to this idea was amazingly strong. Steve Forbes endorsed
12440 it in an editorial. I received an avalanche of e-mail and letters
12441 expressing support. When you focus the issue on lost creativity,
12442 people can see the copyright system makes no sense. As a good
12443 Republican might say, here government regulation is simply getting in
12444 the way of innovation and creativity. And as a good Democrat might
12445 say, here the government is blocking access and the spread of
12446 knowledge for no good reason. Indeed, there is no real difference
12447 between Democrats and Republicans on this issue. Anyone can recognize
12448 the stupid harm of the present system.
12449 </para>
12450 <para>
12451 Indeed, many recognized the obvious benefit of the registration
12452 requirement. For one of the hardest things about the current system
12453 for people who want to license content is that there is no obvious
12454 place to look for the current copyright owners. Since registration is
12455 not required, since marking content is not required, since no
12456 formality at all is required, it is often impossibly hard to locate
12457 copyright owners to ask permission to use or license their work. This
12458 system would lower these costs, by establishing at least one registry
12459 where copyright owners could be identified.
12460 </para>
12461 <indexterm><primary>Berlin Act (1908)</primary></indexterm>
12462 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (1908)</primary></indexterm>
12463 <para>
12464 <!-- PAGE BREAK 257 -->
12465 As I described in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
12466 linkend="property-i"/>, formalities in copyright law were
12467 removed in 1976, when Congress followed the Europeans by abandoning
12468 any formal requirement before a copyright is granted.<footnote><para>
12469 <!-- f1. -->
12470 <indexterm><primary>German copyright law</primary></indexterm>
12471 Until the 1908 Berlin Act of the Berne Convention, national copyright
12472 legislation sometimes made protection depend upon compliance with
12473 formalities such as registration, deposit, and affixation of notice of
12474 the author's claim of copyright. However, starting with the 1908 act,
12475 every text of the Convention has provided that <quote>the enjoyment and the
12476 exercise</quote> of rights guaranteed by the Convention <quote>shall not be subject
12477 to any formality.</quote> The prohibition against formalities is presently
12478 embodied in Article 5(2) of the Paris Text of the Berne
12479 Convention. Many countries continue to impose some form of deposit or
12480 registration requirement, albeit not as a condition of
12481 copyright. French law, for example, requires the deposit of copies of
12482 works in national repositories, principally the National Museum.
12483 Copies of books published in the United Kingdom must be deposited in
12484 the British Library. The German Copyright Act provides for a Registrar
12485 of Authors where the author's true name can be filed in the case of
12486 anonymous or pseudonymous works. Paul Goldstein, <citetitle>International
12487 Intellectual Property Law, Cases and Materials</citetitle> (New York: Foundation
12488 Press, 2001), 153&ndash;54. </para></footnote>
12489 The Europeans are said to view copyright as a <quote>natural right.</quote> Natural
12490 rights don't need forms to exist. Traditions, like the Anglo-American
12491 tradition that required copyright owners to follow form if their
12492 rights were to be protected, did not, the Europeans thought, properly
12493 respect the dignity of the author. My right as a creator turns on my
12494 creativity, not upon the special favor of the government.
12495 </para>
12496 <para>
12497 That's great rhetoric. It sounds wonderfully romantic. But it is
12498 absurd copyright policy. It is absurd especially for authors, because
12499 a world without formalities harms the creator. The ability to spread
12500 <quote>Walt Disney creativity</quote> is destroyed when there is no simple way to
12501 know what's protected and what's not.
12502 </para>
12503 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (1908)</primary></indexterm>
12504 <para>
12505 The fight against formalities achieved its first real victory in
12506 Berlin in 1908. International copyright lawyers amended the Berne
12507 Convention in 1908, to require copyright terms of life plus fifty
12508 years, as well as the abolition of copyright formalities. The
12509 formalities were hated because the stories of inadvertent loss were
12510 increasingly common. It was as if a Charles Dickens character ran all
12511 copyright offices, and the failure to dot an <citetitle>i</citetitle> or cross a
12512 <citetitle>t</citetitle> resulted in the loss of widows' only income.
12513 </para>
12514 <para>
12515 These complaints were real and sensible. And the strictness of the
12516 formalities, especially in the United States, was absurd. The law
12517 should always have ways of forgiving innocent mistakes. There is no
12518 reason copyright law couldn't, as well. Rather than abandoning
12519 formalities totally, the response in Berlin should have been to
12520 embrace a more equitable system of registration.
12521 </para>
12522 <para>
12523 Even that would have been resisted, however, because registration
12524 in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries was still expensive. It was
12525 also a hassle. The abolishment of formalities promised not only to save
12526 the starving widows, but also to lighten an unnecessary regulatory
12527 burden
12528 imposed upon creators.
12529 </para>
12530 <para>
12531 In addition to the practical complaint of authors in 1908, there was
12532 a moral claim as well. There was no reason that creative property
12533
12534 <!-- PAGE BREAK 258 -->
12535 should be a second-class form of property. If a carpenter builds a
12536 table, his rights over the table don't depend upon filing a form with
12537 the government. He has a property right over the table <quote>naturally,</quote>
12538 and he can assert that right against anyone who would steal the table,
12539 whether or not he has informed the government of his ownership of the
12540 table.
12541 </para>
12542 <para>
12543 This argument is correct, but its implications are misleading. For the
12544 argument in favor of formalities does not depend upon creative
12545 property being second-class property. The argument in favor of
12546 formalities turns upon the special problems that creative property
12547 presents. The law of formalities responds to the special physics of
12548 creative property, to assure that it can be efficiently and fairly
12549 spread.
12550 </para>
12551 <para>
12552 No one thinks, for example, that land is second-class property just
12553 because you have to register a deed with a court if your sale of land
12554 is to be effective. And few would think a car is second-class property
12555 just because you must register the car with the state and tag it with
12556 a license. In both of those cases, everyone sees that there is an
12557 important reason to secure registration&mdash;both because it makes
12558 the markets more efficient and because it better secures the rights of
12559 the owner. Without a registration system for land, landowners would
12560 perpetually have to guard their property. With registration, they can
12561 simply point the police to a deed. Without a registration system for
12562 cars, auto theft would be much easier. With a registration system, the
12563 thief has a high burden to sell a stolen car. A slight burden is
12564 placed on the property owner, but those burdens produce a much better
12565 system of protection for property generally.
12566 </para>
12567 <para>
12568 It is similarly special physics that makes formalities important in
12569 copyright law. Unlike a carpenter's table, there's nothing in nature that
12570 makes it relatively obvious who might own a particular bit of creative
12571 property. A recording of Lyle Lovett's latest album can exist in a billion
12572 places without anything necessarily linking it back to a particular
12573 owner. And like a car, there's no way to buy and sell creative property
12574 with confidence unless there is some simple way to authenticate who is
12575 the author and what rights he has. Simple transactions are destroyed in
12576
12577 <!-- PAGE BREAK 259 -->
12578 a world without formalities. Complex, expensive,
12579 <emphasis>lawyer</emphasis> transactions take their place.
12580 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle</primary></indexterm>
12581 </para>
12582 <para>
12583 This was the understanding of the problem with the Sonny Bono
12584 Act that we tried to demonstrate to the Court. This was the part it
12585 didn't <quote>get.</quote> Because we live in a system without formalities, there is no
12586 way easily to build upon or use culture from our past. If copyright
12587 terms were, as Justice Story said they would be, <quote>short,</quote> then this
12588 wouldn't matter much. For fourteen years, under the framers' system, a
12589 work would be presumptively controlled. After fourteen years, it would
12590 be presumptively uncontrolled.
12591 </para>
12592 <para>
12593 But now that copyrights can be just about a century long, the
12594 inability to know what is protected and what is not protected becomes
12595 a huge and obvious burden on the creative process. If the only way a
12596 library can offer an Internet exhibit about the New Deal is to hire a
12597 lawyer to clear the rights to every image and sound, then the
12598 copyright system is burdening creativity in a way that has never been
12599 seen before <emphasis>because there are no formalities</emphasis>.
12600 </para>
12601 <para>
12602 The Eldred Act was designed to respond to exactly this problem. If
12603 it is worth $1 to you, then register your work and you can get the
12604 longer term. Others will know how to contact you and, therefore, how
12605 to get your permission if they want to use your work. And you will get
12606 the benefit of an extended copyright term.
12607 </para>
12608 <para>
12609 If it isn't worth it to you to register to get the benefit of an extended
12610 term, then it shouldn't be worth it for the government to defend your
12611 monopoly over that work either. The work should pass into the public
12612 domain where anyone can copy it, or build archives with it, or create a
12613 movie based on it. It should become free if it is not worth $1 to you.
12614 </para>
12615 <para>
12616 Some worry about the burden on authors. Won't the burden of
12617 registering the work mean that the $1 is really misleading? Isn't the
12618 hassle worth more than $1? Isn't that the real problem with
12619 registration?
12620 </para>
12621 <para>
12622 It is. The hassle is terrible. The system that exists now is awful. I
12623 completely agree that the Copyright Office has done a terrible job (no
12624 doubt because they are terribly funded) in enabling simple and cheap
12625
12626 <!-- PAGE BREAK 260 -->
12627 registrations. Any real solution to the problem of formalities must
12628 address the real problem of <emphasis>governments</emphasis> standing
12629 at the core of any system of formalities. In this book, I offer such a
12630 solution. That solution essentially remakes the Copyright Office. For
12631 now, assume it was Amazon that ran the registration system. Assume it
12632 was one-click registration. The Eldred Act would propose a simple,
12633 one-click registration fifty years after a work was published. Based
12634 upon historical data, that system would move up to 98 percent of
12635 commercial work, commercial work that no longer had a commercial life,
12636 into the public domain within fifty years. What do you think?
12637 </para>
12638 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve</primary></indexterm>
12639 <para>
12640 <emphasis role='strong'>When Steve Forbes</emphasis> endorsed the
12641 idea, some in Washington began to pay attention. Many people contacted
12642 me pointing to representatives who might be willing to introduce the
12643 Eldred Act. And I had a few who directly suggested that they might be
12644 willing to take the first step.
12645 </para>
12646 <indexterm><primary>Lofgren, Zoe</primary></indexterm>
12647 <para>
12648 One representative, Zoe Lofgren of California, went so far as to get
12649 the bill drafted. The draft solved any problem with international
12650 law. It imposed the simplest requirement upon copyright owners
12651 possible. In May 2003, it looked as if the bill would be
12652 introduced. On May 16, I posted on the Eldred Act blog, <quote>we are
12653 close.</quote> There was a general reaction in the blog community that
12654 something good might happen here.
12655 </para>
12656 <para>
12657 But at this stage, the lobbyists began to intervene. Jack Valenti and
12658 the MPAA general counsel came to the congresswoman's office to give
12659 the view of the MPAA. Aided by his lawyer, as Valenti told me, Valenti
12660 informed the congresswoman that the MPAA would oppose the Eldred
12661 Act. The reasons are embarrassingly thin. More importantly, their
12662 thinness shows something clear about what this debate is really about.
12663 </para>
12664 <para>
12665 The MPAA argued first that Congress had <quote>firmly rejected the central
12666 concept in the proposed bill</quote>&mdash;that copyrights be renewed. That
12667 was true, but irrelevant, as Congress's <quote>firm rejection</quote> had occurred
12668 <!-- PAGE BREAK 261 -->
12669 long before the Internet made subsequent uses much more likely.
12670 Second, they argued that the proposal would harm poor copyright
12671 owners&mdash;apparently those who could not afford the $1 fee. Third,
12672 they argued that Congress had determined that extending a copyright
12673 term would encourage restoration work. Maybe in the case of the small
12674 percentage of work covered by copyright law that is still commercially
12675 valuable, but again this was irrelevant, as the proposal would not cut
12676 off the extended term unless the $1 fee was not paid. Fourth, the MPAA
12677 argued that the bill would impose <quote>enormous</quote> costs, since a
12678 registration system is not free. True enough, but those costs are
12679 certainly less than the costs of clearing the rights for a copyright
12680 whose owner is not known. Fifth, they worried about the risks if the
12681 copyright to a story underlying a film were to pass into the public
12682 domain. But what risk is that? If it is in the public domain, then the
12683 film is a valid derivative use.
12684 </para>
12685 <para>
12686 Finally, the MPAA argued that existing law enabled copyright owners to
12687 do this if they wanted. But the whole point is that there are
12688 thousands of copyright owners who don't even know they have a
12689 copyright to give. Whether they are free to give away their copyright
12690 or not&mdash;a controversial claim in any case&mdash;unless they know
12691 about a copyright, they're not likely to.
12692 </para>
12693 <para>
12694 <emphasis role='strong'>At the beginning</emphasis> of this book, I
12695 told two stories about the law reacting to changes in technology. In
12696 the one, common sense prevailed. In the other, common sense was
12697 delayed. The difference between the two stories was the power of the
12698 opposition&mdash;the power of the side that fought to defend the
12699 status quo. In both cases, a new technology threatened old
12700 interests. But in only one case did those interest's have the power to
12701 protect themselves against this new competitive threat.
12702 </para>
12703 <para>
12704 I used these two cases as a way to frame the war that this book has
12705 been about. For here, too, a new technology is forcing the law to react.
12706 And here, too, we should ask, is the law following or resisting common
12707 sense? If common sense supports the law, what explains this common
12708 sense?
12709 </para>
12710 <para>
12711
12712 <!-- PAGE BREAK 262 -->
12713 When the issue is piracy, it is right for the law to back the
12714 copyright owners. The commercial piracy that I described is wrong and
12715 harmful, and the law should work to eliminate it. When the issue is
12716 p2p sharing, it is easy to understand why the law backs the owners
12717 still: Much of this sharing is wrong, even if much is harmless. When
12718 the issue is copyright terms for the Mickey Mouses of the world, it is
12719 possible still to understand why the law favors Hollywood: Most people
12720 don't recognize the reasons for limiting copyright terms; it is thus
12721 still possible to see good faith within the resistance.
12722 </para>
12723 <indexterm><primary>Kelly, Kevin</primary></indexterm>
12724 <para>
12725 But when the copyright owners oppose a proposal such as the Eldred
12726 Act, then, finally, there is an example that lays bare the naked
12727 selfinterest driving this war. This act would free an extraordinary
12728 range of content that is otherwise unused. It wouldn't interfere with
12729 any copyright owner's desire to exercise continued control over his
12730 content. It would simply liberate what Kevin Kelly calls the <quote>Dark
12731 Content</quote> that fills archives around the world. So when the warriors
12732 oppose a change like this, we should ask one simple question:
12733 </para>
12734 <para>
12735 What does this industry really want?
12736 </para>
12737 <para>
12738 With very little effort, the warriors could protect their content. So
12739 the effort to block something like the Eldred Act is not really about
12740 protecting <emphasis>their</emphasis> content. The effort to block the
12741 Eldred Act is an effort to assure that nothing more passes into the
12742 public domain. It is another step to assure that the public domain
12743 will never compete, that there will be no use of content that is not
12744 commercially controlled, and that there will be no commercial use of
12745 content that doesn't require <emphasis>their</emphasis> permission
12746 first.
12747 </para>
12748 <para>
12749 The opposition to the Eldred Act reveals how extreme the other side
12750 is. The most powerful and sexy and well loved of lobbies really has as
12751 its aim not the protection of <quote>property</quote> but the rejection of a
12752 tradition. Their aim is not simply to protect what is
12753 theirs. <emphasis>Their aim is to assure that all there is is what is
12754 theirs</emphasis>.
12755 </para>
12756 <para>
12757 It is not hard to understand why the warriors take this view. It is not
12758 hard to see why it would benefit them if the competition of the public
12759
12760 <!-- PAGE BREAK 263 -->
12761 domain tied to the Internet could somehow be quashed. Just as RCA
12762 feared the competition of FM, they fear the competition of a public
12763 domain connected to a public that now has the means to create with it
12764 and to share its own creation.
12765 </para>
12766 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
12767 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
12768 <para>
12769 What is hard to understand is why the public takes this view. It is
12770 as if the law made airplanes trespassers. The MPAA stands with the
12771 Causbys and demands that their remote and useless property rights be
12772 respected, so that these remote and forgotten copyright holders might
12773 block the progress of others.
12774 </para>
12775 <para>
12776 All this seems to follow easily from this untroubled acceptance of the
12777 <quote>property</quote> in intellectual property. Common sense supports it, and so
12778 long as it does, the assaults will rain down upon the technologies of
12779 the Internet. The consequence will be an increasing <quote>permission
12780 society.</quote> The past can be cultivated only if you can identify the
12781 owner and gain permission to build upon his work. The future will be
12782 controlled by this dead (and often unfindable) hand of the past.
12783 </para>
12784 <!-- PAGE BREAK 264 -->
12785 </chapter>
12786 </part>
12787 <chapter label="15" id="c-conclusion">
12788 <title>CONCLUSION</title>
12789 <indexterm id="idxantiretroviraldrugs" class='startofrange'><primary>antiretroviral drugs</primary></indexterm>
12790 <indexterm id="idxhivaidstherapies" class='startofrange'><primary>HIV/AIDS therapies</primary></indexterm>
12791 <indexterm id="idxafricahivmed" class='startofrange'><primary>Africa, medications for HIV patients in</primary></indexterm>
12792 <para>
12793 <emphasis role='strong'>There are more</emphasis> than 35 million
12794 people with the AIDS virus worldwide. Twenty-five million of them live
12795 in sub-Saharan Africa. Seventeen million have already died. Seventeen
12796 million Africans is proportional percentage-wise to seven million
12797 Americans. More importantly, it is seventeen million Africans.
12798 </para>
12799 <para>
12800 There is no cure for AIDS, but there are drugs to slow its
12801 progression. These antiretroviral therapies are still experimental,
12802 but they have already had a dramatic effect. In the United States,
12803 AIDS patients who regularly take a cocktail of these drugs increase
12804 their life expectancy by ten to twenty years. For some, the drugs make
12805 the disease almost invisible.
12806 </para>
12807 <para>
12808 These drugs are expensive. When they were first introduced in the
12809 United States, they cost between $10,000 and $15,000 per person per
12810 year. Today, some cost $25,000 per year. At these prices, of course, no
12811 African nation can afford the drugs for the vast majority of its
12812 population:
12813 $15,000 is thirty times the per capita gross national product of
12814 Zimbabwe. At these prices, the drugs are totally unavailable.<footnote><para>
12815 <!-- f1. --> Commission on Intellectual Property Rights, <quote>Final Report: Integrating
12816 Intellectual Property Rights and Development Policy</quote> (London, 2002),
12817 available at
12818 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #55</ulink>. According to a World Health Organization press
12819 release
12820 issued 9 July 2002, only 230,000 of the 6 million who need drugs in
12821 the developing world receive them&mdash;and half of them are in Brazil.
12822 </para></footnote>
12823 </para>
12824 <para>
12825 <!-- PAGE BREAK 265 -->
12826 These prices are not high because the ingredients of the drugs are
12827 expensive. These prices are high because the drugs are protected by
12828 patents. The drug companies that produced these life-saving mixes
12829 enjoy at least a twenty-year monopoly for their inventions. They use
12830 that monopoly power to extract the most they can from the market. That
12831 power is in turn used to keep the prices high.
12832 </para>
12833 <para>
12834 There are many who are skeptical of patents, especially drug
12835 patents. I am not. Indeed, of all the areas of research that might be
12836 supported by patents, drug research is, in my view, the clearest case
12837 where patents are needed. The patent gives the drug company some
12838 assurance that if it is successful in inventing a new drug to treat a
12839 disease, it will be able to earn back its investment and more. This is
12840 socially an extremely valuable incentive. I am the last person who
12841 would argue that the law should abolish it, at least without other
12842 changes.
12843 </para>
12844 <para>
12845 But it is one thing to support patents, even drug patents. It is
12846 another thing to determine how best to deal with a crisis. And as
12847 African leaders began to recognize the devastation that AIDS was
12848 bringing, they started looking for ways to import HIV treatments at
12849 costs significantly below the market price.
12850 </para>
12851 <para>
12852 In 1997, South Africa tried one tack. It passed a law to allow the
12853 importation of patented medicines that had been produced or sold in
12854 another nation's market with the consent of the patent owner. For
12855 example, if the drug was sold in India, it could be imported into
12856 Africa from India. This is called <quote>parallel importation,</quote> and it is
12857 generally permitted under international trade law and is specifically
12858 permitted within the European Union.<footnote>
12859 <para>
12860 <!-- f2. -->
12861 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite, <citetitle>Information Feudalism: Who
12862 Owns the Knowledge Economy?</citetitle> (New York: The New Press, 2003), 37.
12863 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John</primary></indexterm>
12864 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter</primary></indexterm>
12865 </para></footnote>
12866 </para>
12867 <para>
12868 However, the United States government opposed the bill. Indeed, more
12869 than opposed. As the International Intellectual Property Association
12870 characterized it, <quote>The U.S. government pressured South Africa &hellip;
12871 not to permit compulsory licensing or parallel
12872 imports.</quote><footnote><para>
12873 <!-- f3. -->
12874 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI), <citetitle>Patent
12875 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
12876 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
12877 Organization</citetitle> (Washington, D.C., 2000), 14, available at
12878 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #56</ulink>. For a
12879 firsthand account of the struggle over South Africa, see Hearing
12880 Before the Subcommittee on Criminal Justice, Drug Policy, and Human
12881 Resources, House Committee on Government Reform, H. Rep., 1st sess.,
12882 Ser. No. 106-126 (22 July 1999), 150&ndash;57 (statement of James
12883 Love).
12884 </para></footnote>
12885 Through the Office of the United States Trade Representative, the
12886 government asked South Africa to change the law&mdash;and to add
12887 pressure to that request, in 1998, the USTR listed South Africa for
12888 possible trade sanctions.
12889 <!-- PAGE BREAK 266 -->
12890 That same year, more than forty pharmaceutical companies began
12891 proceedings in the South African courts to challenge the government's
12892 actions. The United States was then joined by other governments from
12893 the EU. Their claim, and the claim of the pharmaceutical companies,
12894 was that South Africa was violating its obligations under
12895 international law by discriminating against a particular kind of
12896 patent&mdash; pharmaceutical patents. The demand of these governments,
12897 with the United States in the lead, was that South Africa respect
12898 these patents as it respects any other patent, regardless of any
12899 effect on the treatment of AIDS within South Africa.<footnote><para>
12900 <!-- f4. -->
12901 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI), <citetitle>Patent
12902 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
12903 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
12904 Organization</citetitle> (Washington, D.C., 2000), 15. </para></footnote>
12905 </para>
12906 <para>
12907 We should place the intervention by the United States in context. No
12908 doubt patents are not the most important reason that Africans don't
12909 have access to drugs. Poverty and the total absence of an effective
12910 health care infrastructure matter more. But whether patents are the
12911 most important reason or not, the price of drugs has an effect on
12912 their demand, and patents affect price. And so, whether massive or
12913 marginal, there was an effect from our government's intervention to
12914 stop the flow of medications into Africa.
12915 </para>
12916 <para>
12917 By stopping the flow of HIV treatment into Africa, the United
12918 States government was not saving drugs for United States citizens.
12919 This is not like wheat (if they eat it, we can't); instead, the flow that the
12920 United States intervened to stop was, in effect, a flow of knowledge:
12921 information about how to take chemicals that exist within Africa, and
12922 turn those chemicals into drugs that would save 15 to 30 million lives.
12923 </para>
12924 <para>
12925 Nor was the intervention by the United States going to protect the
12926 profits of United States drug companies&mdash;at least, not substantially. It
12927 was not as if these countries were in the position to buy the drugs for
12928 the prices the drug companies were charging. Again, the Africans are
12929 wildly too poor to afford these drugs at the offered prices. Stopping the
12930 parallel import of these drugs would not substantially increase the sales
12931 by U.S. companies.
12932 </para>
12933 <para>
12934 Instead, the argument in favor of restricting this flow of
12935 information, which was needed to save the lives of millions, was an
12936 argument
12937 <!-- PAGE BREAK 267 -->
12938 about the sanctity of property.<footnote><para>
12939 <!-- f5. -->
12940 See Sabin Russell, <quote>New Crusade to Lower AIDS Drug Costs: Africa's
12941 Needs at Odds with Firms' Profit Motive,</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle</citetitle>, 24
12942 May 1999, A1, available at
12943 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #57</ulink>
12944 (<quote>compulsory licenses and gray markets pose a threat to the entire
12945 system of intellectual property protection</quote>); Robert Weissman, <quote>AIDS
12946 and Developing Countries: Democratizing Access to Essential
12947 Medicines,</quote> <citetitle>Foreign Policy in Focus</citetitle> 4:23 (August 1999), available at
12948 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #58</ulink>
12949 (describing U.S. policy); John A. Harrelson, <quote>TRIPS, Pharmaceutical
12950 Patents, and the HIV/AIDS Crisis: Finding the Proper Balance Between
12951 Intellectual Property Rights and Compassion, a Synopsis,</quote> <citetitle>Widener Law
12952 Symposium Journal</citetitle> (Spring 2001): 175.
12953 <!-- PAGE BREAK 333 -->
12954 </para></footnote>
12955 It was because <quote>intellectual property</quote> would be violated that these
12956 drugs should not flow into Africa. It was a principle about the
12957 importance of <quote>intellectual property</quote> that led these government actors
12958 to intervene against the South African response to AIDS.
12959 </para>
12960 <para>
12961 Now just step back for a moment. There will be a time thirty years
12962 from now when our children look back at us and ask, how could we have
12963 let this happen? How could we allow a policy to be pursued whose
12964 direct cost would be to speed the death of 15 to 30 million Africans,
12965 and whose only real benefit would be to uphold the <quote>sanctity</quote> of an
12966 idea? What possible justification could there ever be for a policy
12967 that results in so many deaths? What exactly is the insanity that
12968 would allow so many to die for such an abstraction?
12969 </para>
12970 <para>
12971 Some blame the drug companies. I don't. They are corporations.
12972 Their managers are ordered by law to make money for the corporation.
12973 They push a certain patent policy not because of ideals, but because it is
12974 the policy that makes them the most money. And it only makes them the
12975 most money because of a certain corruption within our political system&mdash;
12976 a corruption the drug companies are certainly not responsible for.
12977 </para>
12978 <para>
12979 The corruption is our own politicians' failure of integrity. For the
12980 drug companies would love&mdash;they say, and I believe them&mdash;to
12981 sell their drugs as cheaply as they can to countries in Africa and
12982 elsewhere. There are issues they'd have to resolve to make sure the
12983 drugs didn't get back into the United States, but those are mere
12984 problems of technology. They could be overcome.
12985 </para>
12986 <para>
12987 A different problem, however, could not be overcome. This is the
12988 fear of the grandstanding politician who would call the presidents of
12989 the drug companies before a Senate or House hearing, and ask, <quote>How
12990 is it you can sell this HIV drug in Africa for only $1 a pill, but the same
12991 drug would cost an American $1,500?</quote> Because there is no <quote>sound
12992 bite</quote> answer to that question, its effect would be to induce regulation
12993 of prices in America. The drug companies thus avoid this spiral by
12994 avoiding the first step. They reinforce the idea that property should be
12995 <!-- PAGE BREAK 268 -->
12996 sacred. They adopt a rational strategy in an irrational context, with the
12997 unintended consequence that perhaps millions die. And that rational
12998 strategy thus becomes framed in terms of this ideal&mdash;the sanctity of an
12999 idea called <quote>intellectual property.</quote>
13000 </para>
13001 <para>
13002 So when the common sense of your child confronts you, what will
13003 you say? When the common sense of a generation finally revolts
13004 against what we have done, how will we justify what we have done?
13005 What is the argument?
13006 </para>
13007 <para>
13008 A sensible patent policy could endorse and strongly support the patent
13009 system without having to reach everyone everywhere in exactly the same
13010 way. Just as a sensible copyright policy could endorse and strongly
13011 support a copyright system without having to regulate the spread of
13012 culture perfectly and forever, a sensible patent policy could endorse
13013 and strongly support a patent system without having to block the
13014 spread of drugs to a country not rich enough to afford market prices
13015 in any case. A sensible policy, in other words, could be a balanced
13016 policy. For most of our history, both copyright and patent policies
13017 were balanced in just this sense.
13018 </para>
13019 <para>
13020 But we as a culture have lost this sense of balance. We have lost the
13021 critical eye that helps us see the difference between truth and
13022 extremism. A certain property fundamentalism, having no connection to
13023 our tradition, now reigns in this culture&mdash;bizarrely, and with
13024 consequences more grave to the spread of ideas and culture than almost
13025 any other single policy decision that we as a democracy will make.
13026 </para>
13027 <indexterm startref="idxafricahivmed" class='endofrange'/>
13028 <indexterm startref="idxhivaidstherapies" class='endofrange'/>
13029 <indexterm startref="idxantiretroviraldrugs" class='endofrange'/>
13030 <para>
13031 <emphasis role='strong'>A simple idea</emphasis> blinds us, and under
13032 the cover of darkness, much happens that most of us would reject if
13033 any of us looked. So uncritically do we accept the idea of property in
13034 ideas that we don't even notice how monstrous it is to deny ideas to a
13035 people who are dying without them. So uncritically do we accept the
13036 idea of property in culture that we don't even question when the
13037 control of that property removes our
13038 <!-- PAGE BREAK 269 -->
13039 ability, as a people, to develop our culture democratically. Blindness
13040 becomes our common sense. And the challenge for anyone who would
13041 reclaim the right to cultivate our culture is to find a way to make
13042 this common sense open its eyes.
13043 </para>
13044 <para>
13045 So far, common sense sleeps. There is no revolt. Common sense
13046 does not yet see what there could be to revolt about. The extremism
13047 that now dominates this debate fits with ideas that seem natural, and
13048 that fit is reinforced by the RCAs of our day. They wage a frantic war
13049 to fight <quote>piracy,</quote> and devastate a culture for creativity. They defend
13050 the idea of <quote>creative property,</quote> while transforming real creators into
13051 modern-day sharecroppers. They are insulted by the idea that rights
13052 should be balanced, even though each of the major players in this
13053 content war was itself a beneficiary of a more balanced ideal. The
13054 hypocrisy reeks. Yet in a city like Washington, hypocrisy is not even
13055 noticed. Powerful lobbies, complex issues, and MTV attention spans
13056 produce the <quote>perfect storm</quote> for free culture.
13057 </para>
13058 <indexterm><primary>public domain</primary><secondary>public projects in</secondary></indexterm>
13059 <indexterm><primary>single nucleotied polymorphisms (SNPs)</primary></indexterm>
13060 <indexterm><primary>Wellcome Trust</primary></indexterm>
13061 <indexterm><primary>World Wide Web</primary></indexterm>
13062 <indexterm><primary>Global Positioning System</primary></indexterm>
13063 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald</primary></indexterm>
13064 <indexterm id='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='startofrange'><primary>biomedical research</primary></indexterm>
13065 <para>
13066 <emphasis role='strong'>In August 2003</emphasis>, a fight broke out
13067 in the United States about a decision by the World Intellectual
13068 Property Organization to cancel a meeting.<footnote><para>
13069 <!-- f6. --> Jonathan Krim, <quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>,
13070 August 2003, E1, available at
13071 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #59</ulink>; William New, <quote>Global Group's
13072 Shift on `Open Source' Meeting Spurs Stir,</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13073 Daily</citetitle>, 19 August 2003, available at
13074 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #60</ulink>; William New, <quote>U.S. Official
13075 Opposes `Open Source' Talks at WIPO,</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13076 Daily</citetitle>, 19 August 2003, available at
13077 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #61</ulink>.
13078 </para></footnote>
13079 At the request of a wide range of interests, WIPO had decided to hold
13080 a meeting to discuss <quote>open and collaborative projects to create public
13081 goods.</quote> These are projects that have been successful in producing
13082 public goods without relying exclusively upon a proprietary use of
13083 intellectual property. Examples include the Internet and the World
13084 Wide Web, both of which were developed on the basis of protocols in
13085 the public domain. It included an emerging trend to support open
13086 academic journals, including the Public Library of Science project
13087 that I describe in the Afterword. It included a project to develop
13088 single nucleotide polymorphisms (SNPs), which are thought to have
13089 great significance in biomedical research. (That nonprofit project
13090 comprised a consortium of the Wellcome Trust and pharmaceutical and
13091 technological companies, including Amersham Biosciences, AstraZeneca,
13092 <!-- PAGE BREAK 270 -->
13093 Aventis, Bayer, Bristol-Myers Squibb, Hoffmann-La Roche,
13094 Glaxo-SmithKline, IBM, Motorola, Novartis, Pfizer, and Searle.) It
13095 included the Global Positioning System, which Ronald Reagan set free
13096 in the early 1980s. And it included <quote>open source and free software.</quote>
13097 <indexterm><primary>academic journals</primary></indexterm>
13098 <indexterm><primary>IBM</primary></indexterm>
13099 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)</primary></indexterm>
13100 </para>
13101 <indexterm startref='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='endofrange'/>
13102 <para>
13103 The aim of the meeting was to consider this wide range of projects
13104 from one common perspective: that none of these projects relied upon
13105 intellectual property extremism. Instead, in all of them, intellectual
13106 property was balanced by agreements to keep access open or to impose
13107 limitations on the way in which proprietary claims might be used.
13108 </para>
13109 <para>
13110 From the perspective of this book, then, the conference was ideal.<footnote><para>
13111 <!-- f7. --> I should disclose that I was one of the people who asked WIPO for the
13112 meeting.
13113 </para></footnote>
13114 The projects within its scope included both commercial and
13115 noncommercial work. They primarily involved science, but from many
13116 perspectives. And WIPO was an ideal venue for this discussion, since
13117 WIPO is the preeminent international body dealing with intellectual
13118 property issues.
13119 </para>
13120 <indexterm id='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='startofrange'><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)</primary></indexterm>
13121 <para>
13122 Indeed, I was once publicly scolded for not recognizing this fact
13123 about WIPO. In February 2003, I delivered a keynote address to a
13124 preparatory conference for the World Summit on the Information Society
13125 (WSIS). At a press conference before the address, I was asked what I
13126 would say. I responded that I would be talking a little about the
13127 importance of balance in intellectual property for the development of
13128 an information society. The moderator for the event then promptly
13129 interrupted to inform me and the assembled reporters that no question
13130 about intellectual property would be discussed by WSIS, since those
13131 questions were the exclusive domain of WIPO. In the talk that I had
13132 prepared, I had actually made the issue of intellectual property
13133 relatively minor. But after this astonishing statement, I made
13134 intellectual property the sole focus of my talk. There was no way to
13135 talk about an <quote>Information Society</quote> unless one also talked about the
13136 range of information and culture that would be free. My talk did not
13137 make my immoderate moderator very happy. And she was no doubt correct
13138 that the scope of intellectual property protections was ordinarily the
13139 stuff of
13140 <!-- PAGE BREAK 271 -->
13141 WIPO. But in my view, there couldn't be too much of a conversation
13142 about how much intellectual property is needed, since in my view, the
13143 very idea of balance in intellectual property had been lost.
13144 </para>
13145 <para>
13146 So whether or not WSIS can discuss balance in intellectual property, I
13147 had thought it was taken for granted that WIPO could and should. And
13148 thus the meeting about <quote>open and collaborative projects to create
13149 public goods</quote> seemed perfectly appropriate within the WIPO agenda.
13150 </para>
13151 <indexterm startref='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='endofrange'/>
13152 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation</primary></indexterm>
13153 <para>
13154 But there is one project within that list that is highly
13155 controversial, at least among lobbyists. That project is <quote>open source
13156 and free software.</quote> Microsoft in particular is wary of discussion of
13157 the subject. From its perspective, a conference to discuss open source
13158 and free software would be like a conference to discuss Apple's
13159 operating system. Both open source and free software compete with
13160 Microsoft's software. And internationally, many governments have begun
13161 to explore requirements that they use open source or free software,
13162 rather than <quote>proprietary software,</quote> for their own internal uses.
13163 </para>
13164 <indexterm><primary><quote>copyleft</quote> licenses</primary></indexterm>
13165 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
13166 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
13167 <indexterm><primary>IBM</primary></indexterm>
13168 <para>
13169 I don't mean to enter that debate here. It is important only to
13170 make clear that the distinction is not between commercial and
13171 noncommercial software. There are many important companies that depend
13172 fundamentally upon open source and free software, IBM being the most
13173 prominent. IBM is increasingly shifting its focus to the GNU/Linux
13174 operating system, the most famous bit of <quote>free software</quote>&mdash;and IBM
13175 is emphatically a commercial entity. Thus, to support <quote>open source and
13176 free software</quote> is not to oppose commercial entities. It is, instead,
13177 to support a mode of software development that is different from
13178 Microsoft's.<footnote><para>
13179 <!-- f8. -->
13180 Microsoft's position about free and open source software is more
13181 sophisticated. As it has repeatedly asserted, it has no problem with
13182 <quote>open source</quote> software or software in the public domain. Microsoft's
13183 principal opposition is to <quote>free software</quote> licensed under a <quote>copyleft</quote>
13184 license, meaning a license that requires the licensee to adopt the
13185 same terms on any derivative work. See Bradford L. Smith, <quote>The Future
13186 of Software: Enabling the Marketplace to Decide,</quote> <citetitle>Government Policy
13187 Toward Open Source Software</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.: AEI-Brookings Joint
13188 Center for Regulatory Studies, American Enterprise Institute for
13189 Public Policy Research, 2002), 69, available at
13190 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #62</ulink>. See also
13191 Craig Mundie, Microsoft senior vice president, <citetitle>The Commercial Software
13192 Model</citetitle>, discussion at New York University Stern School of Business (3
13193 May 2001), available at
13194 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #63</ulink>.
13195 </para></footnote>
13196 </para>
13197 <indexterm><primary>General Public License (GPL)</primary></indexterm>
13198 <indexterm><primary>GPL (General Public License)</primary></indexterm>
13199 <para>
13200 More important for our purposes, to support <quote>open source and free
13201 software</quote> is not to oppose copyright. <quote>Open source and free software</quote>
13202 is not software in the public domain. Instead, like Microsoft's
13203 software, the copyright owners of free and open source software insist
13204 quite strongly that the terms of their software license be respected
13205 by
13206 <!-- PAGE BREAK 272 -->
13207 adopters of free and open source software. The terms of that license
13208 are no doubt different from the terms of a proprietary software
13209 license. Free software licensed under the General Public License
13210 (GPL), for example, requires that the source code for the software be
13211 made available by anyone who modifies and redistributes the
13212 software. But that requirement is effective only if copyright governs
13213 software. If copyright did not govern software, then free software
13214 could not impose the same kind of requirements on its adopters. It
13215 thus depends upon copyright law just as Microsoft does.
13216 </para>
13217 <indexterm><primary>Krim, Jonathan</primary></indexterm>
13218 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft</primary><secondary>WIPO meeting opposed by</secondary></indexterm>
13219 <para>
13220 It is therefore understandable that as a proprietary software
13221 developer, Microsoft would oppose this WIPO meeting, and
13222 understandable that it would use its lobbyists to get the United
13223 States government to oppose it, as well. And indeed, that is just what
13224 was reported to have happened. According to Jonathan Krim of the
13225 <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>, Microsoft's lobbyists succeeded in getting the United
13226 States government to veto the meeting.<footnote><para>
13227 <!-- f9. -->
13228 Krim, <quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,</quote> available at <ulink
13229 url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #64</ulink>.
13230 </para></footnote>
13231 And without U.S. backing, the meeting was canceled.
13232 </para>
13233 <para>
13234 I don't blame Microsoft for doing what it can to advance its own
13235 interests, consistent with the law. And lobbying governments is
13236 plainly consistent with the law. There was nothing surprising about
13237 its lobbying here, and nothing terribly surprising about the most
13238 powerful software producer in the United States having succeeded in
13239 its lobbying efforts.
13240 </para>
13241 <indexterm><primary>Boland, Lois</primary></indexterm>
13242 <para>
13243 What was surprising was the United States government's reason for
13244 opposing the meeting. Again, as reported by Krim, Lois Boland, acting
13245 director of international relations for the U.S. Patent and Trademark
13246 Office, explained that <quote>open-source software runs counter to the
13247 mission of WIPO, which is to promote intellectual-property rights.</quote>
13248 She is quoted as saying, <quote>To hold a meeting which has as its purpose
13249 to disclaim or waive such rights seems to us to be contrary to the
13250 goals of WIPO.</quote>
13251 </para>
13252 <para>
13253 These statements are astonishing on a number of levels.
13254 </para>
13255 <!-- PAGE BREAK 273 -->
13256 <para>
13257 First, they are just flat wrong. As I described, most open source and
13258 free software relies fundamentally upon the intellectual property
13259 right called <quote>copyright</quote>. Without it, restrictions imposed by those
13260 licenses wouldn't work. Thus, to say it <quote>runs counter</quote> to the mission
13261 of promoting intellectual property rights reveals an extraordinary gap
13262 in understanding&mdash;the sort of mistake that is excusable in a
13263 first-year law student, but an embarrassment from a high government
13264 official dealing with intellectual property issues.
13265 </para>
13266 <indexterm><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)</primary></indexterm>
13267 <indexterm><primary>drugs</primary><secondary>pharmaceutical</secondary></indexterm>
13268 <indexterm><primary>generic drugs</primary></indexterm>
13269 <indexterm><primary>patents</primary><secondary>on pharmaceuticals</secondary></indexterm>
13270 <para>
13271 Second, who ever said that WIPO's exclusive aim was to <quote>promote</quote>
13272 intellectual property maximally? As I had been scolded at the
13273 preparatory conference of WSIS, WIPO is to consider not only how best
13274 to protect intellectual property, but also what the best balance of
13275 intellectual property is. As every economist and lawyer knows, the
13276 hard question in intellectual property law is to find that
13277 balance. But that there should be limits is, I had thought,
13278 uncontested. One wants to ask Ms. Boland, are generic drugs (drugs
13279 based on drugs whose patent has expired) contrary to the WIPO mission?
13280 Does the public domain weaken intellectual property? Would it have
13281 been better if the protocols of the Internet had been patented?
13282 </para>
13283 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill</primary></indexterm>
13284 <para>
13285 Third, even if one believed that the purpose of WIPO was to maximize
13286 intellectual property rights, in our tradition, intellectual property
13287 rights are held by individuals and corporations. They get to decide
13288 what to do with those rights because, again, they are
13289 <emphasis>their</emphasis> rights. If they want to <quote>waive</quote> or
13290 <quote>disclaim</quote> their rights, that is, within our tradition, totally
13291 appropriate. When Bill Gates gives away more than $20 billion to do
13292 good in the world, that is not inconsistent with the objectives of the
13293 property system. That is, on the contrary, just what a property system
13294 is supposed to be about: giving individuals the right to decide what
13295 to do with <emphasis>their</emphasis> property.
13296 </para>
13297 <indexterm id='idxboland' class='startofrange'><primary>Boland, Lois</primary></indexterm>
13298 <para>
13299 When Ms. Boland says that there is something wrong with a meeting
13300 <quote>which has as its purpose to disclaim or waive such rights,</quote> she's
13301 saying that WIPO has an interest in interfering with the choices of
13302 <!-- PAGE BREAK 274 -->
13303 the individuals who own intellectual property rights. That somehow,
13304 WIPO's objective should be to stop an individual from <quote>waiving</quote> or
13305 <quote>disclaiming</quote> an intellectual property right. That the interest of
13306 WIPO is not just that intellectual property rights be maximized, but
13307 that they also should be exercised in the most extreme and restrictive
13308 way possible.
13309 </para>
13310 <para>
13311 There is a history of just such a property system that is well known
13312 in the Anglo-American tradition. It is called <quote>feudalism.</quote> Under
13313 feudalism, not only was property held by a relatively small number of
13314 individuals and entities. And not only were the rights that ran with
13315 that property powerful and extensive. But the feudal system had a
13316 strong interest in assuring that property holders within that system
13317 not weaken feudalism by liberating people or property within their
13318 control to the free market. Feudalism depended upon maximum control
13319 and concentration. It fought any freedom that might interfere with
13320 that control.
13321 </para>
13322 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter</primary></indexterm>
13323 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John</primary></indexterm>
13324 <para>
13325 As Peter Drahos and John Braithwaite relate, this is precisely the
13326 choice we are now making about intellectual property.<footnote><para>
13327 <!-- f10. -->
13328 See Drahos with Braithwaite, <citetitle>Information Feudalism</citetitle>, 210&ndash;20.
13329 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter</primary></indexterm>
13330 </para></footnote>
13331 We will have an information society. That much is certain. Our only
13332 choice now is whether that information society will be
13333 <emphasis>free</emphasis> or <emphasis>feudal</emphasis>. The trend is
13334 toward the feudal.
13335 </para>
13336 <para>
13337 When this battle broke, I blogged it. A spirited debate within the
13338 comment section ensued. Ms. Boland had a number of supporters who
13339 tried to show why her comments made sense. But there was one comment
13340 that was particularly depressing for me. An anonymous poster wrote,
13341 </para>
13342 <blockquote>
13343 <para>
13344 George, you misunderstand Lessig: He's only talking about the world as
13345 it should be (<quote>the goal of WIPO, and the goal of any government,
13346 should be to promote the right balance of intellectual property rights,
13347 not simply to promote intellectual property rights</quote>), not as it is. If
13348 we were talking about the world as it is, then of course Boland didn't
13349 say anything wrong. But in the world
13350 <!-- PAGE BREAK 275 -->
13351 as Lessig would have it, then of course she did. Always pay attention
13352 to the distinction between Lessig's world and ours.
13353 </para>
13354 </blockquote>
13355 <para>
13356 I missed the irony the first time I read it. I read it quickly and
13357 thought the poster was supporting the idea that seeking balance was
13358 what our government should be doing. (Of course, my criticism of Ms.
13359 Boland was not about whether she was seeking balance or not; my
13360 criticism was that her comments betrayed a first-year law student's
13361 mistake. I have no illusion about the extremism of our government,
13362 whether Republican or Democrat. My only illusion apparently is about
13363 whether our government should speak the truth or not.)
13364 </para>
13365 <indexterm startref='idxboland' class='endofrange'/>
13366 <para>
13367 Obviously, however, the poster was not supporting that idea. Instead,
13368 the poster was ridiculing the very idea that in the real world, the
13369 <quote>goal</quote> of a government should be <quote>to promote the right balance</quote> of
13370 intellectual property. That was obviously silly to him. And it
13371 obviously betrayed, he believed, my own silly utopianism. <quote>Typical for
13372 an academic,</quote> the poster might well have continued.
13373 </para>
13374 <para>
13375 I understand criticism of academic utopianism. I think utopianism is
13376 silly, too, and I'd be the first to poke fun at the absurdly
13377 unrealistic ideals of academics throughout history (and not just in
13378 our own country's history).
13379 </para>
13380 <para>
13381 But when it has become silly to suppose that the role of our
13382 government should be to <quote>seek balance,</quote> then count me with the silly,
13383 for that means that this has become quite serious indeed. If it should
13384 be obvious to everyone that the government does not seek balance, that
13385 the government is simply the tool of the most powerful lobbyists, that
13386 the idea of holding the government to a different standard is absurd,
13387 that the idea of demanding of the government that it speak truth and
13388 not lies is just na&iuml;ve, then who have we, the most powerful
13389 democracy in the world, become?
13390 </para>
13391 <para>
13392 It might be crazy to expect a high government official to speak
13393 the truth. It might be crazy to believe that government policy will be
13394 something more than the handmaiden of the most powerful interests.
13395 <!-- PAGE BREAK 276 -->
13396 It might be crazy to argue that we should preserve a tradition that has
13397 been part of our tradition for most of our history&mdash;free culture.
13398 </para>
13399 <para>
13400 If this is crazy, then let there be more crazies. Soon.
13401 </para>
13402 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace</primary></indexterm>
13403 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William</primary></indexterm>
13404 <indexterm><primary>Turner, Ted</primary></indexterm>
13405 <para>
13406 <emphasis role='strong'>There are moments</emphasis> of hope in this
13407 struggle. And moments that surprise. When the FCC was considering
13408 relaxing ownership rules, which would thereby further increase the
13409 concentration in media ownership, an extraordinary bipartisan
13410 coalition formed to fight this change. For perhaps the first time in
13411 history, interests as diverse as the NRA, the ACLU, Moveon.org,
13412 William Safire, Ted Turner, and CodePink Women for Peace organized to
13413 oppose this change in FCC policy. An astonishing 700,000 letters were
13414 sent to the FCC, demanding more hearings and a different result.
13415 </para>
13416 <para>
13417 This activism did not stop the FCC, but soon after, a broad coalition
13418 in the Senate voted to reverse the FCC decision. The hostile hearings
13419 leading up to that vote revealed just how powerful this movement had
13420 become. There was no substantial support for the FCC's decision, and
13421 there was broad and sustained support for fighting further
13422 concentration in the media.
13423 </para>
13424 <para>
13425 But even this movement misses an important piece of the puzzle.
13426 Largeness as such is not bad. Freedom is not threatened just because
13427 some become very rich, or because there are only a handful of big
13428 players. The poor quality of Big Macs or Quarter Pounders does not
13429 mean that you can't get a good hamburger from somewhere else.
13430 </para>
13431 <para>
13432 The danger in media concentration comes not from the concentration,
13433 but instead from the feudalism that this concentration, tied to the
13434 change in copyright, produces. It is not just that there are a few
13435 powerful companies that control an ever expanding slice of the
13436 media. It is that this concentration can call upon an equally bloated
13437 range of rights&mdash;property rights of a historically extreme
13438 form&mdash;that makes their bigness bad.
13439 </para>
13440 <!-- PAGE BREAK 277 -->
13441 <para>
13442 It is therefore significant that so many would rally to demand
13443 competition and increased diversity. Still, if the rally is understood
13444 as being about bigness alone, it is not terribly surprising. We
13445 Americans have a long history of fighting <quote>big,</quote> wisely or not. That
13446 we could be motivated to fight <quote>big</quote> again is not something new.
13447 </para>
13448 <para>
13449 It would be something new, and something very important, if an equal
13450 number could be rallied to fight the increasing extremism built within
13451 the idea of <quote>intellectual property.</quote> Not because balance is alien to
13452 our tradition; indeed, as I've argued, balance is our tradition. But
13453 because the muscle to think critically about the scope of anything
13454 called <quote>property</quote> is not well exercised within this tradition anymore.
13455 </para>
13456 <para>
13457 If we were Achilles, this would be our heel. This would be the place
13458 of our tragedy.
13459 </para>
13460 <indexterm><primary>Dylan, Bob</primary></indexterm>
13461 <para>
13462 <emphasis role='strong'>As I write</emphasis> these final words, the
13463 news is filled with stories about the RIAA lawsuits against almost
13464 three hundred individuals.<footnote><para>
13465 <!-- f11. -->
13466 John Borland, <quote>RIAA Sues 261 File Swappers,</quote> CNET News.com, September
13467 2003, available at
13468 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #65</ulink>; Paul
13469 R. La Monica, <quote>Music Industry Sues Swappers,</quote> CNN/Money, 8 September
13470 2003, available at
13471 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #66</ulink>; Soni
13472 Sangha and Phyllis Furman with Robert Gearty, <quote>Sued for a Song,
13473 N.Y.C. 12-Yr-Old Among 261 Cited as Sharers,</quote> <citetitle>New York Daily News</citetitle>, 9
13474 September 2003, 3; Frank Ahrens, <quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised
13475 Targets; Single Mother in Calif., 12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among
13476 Defendants,</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>, 10 September 2003, E1; Katie Dean,
13477 <quote>Schoolgirl Settles with RIAA,</quote> <citetitle>Wired News</citetitle>, 10 September 2003,
13478 available at
13479 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #67</ulink>.
13480 </para></footnote>
13481 Eminem has just been sued for <quote>sampling</quote> someone else's
13482 music.<footnote><para>
13483 <!-- f12. -->
13484 Jon Wiederhorn, <quote>Eminem Gets Sued &hellip; by a Little Old Lady,</quote>
13485 mtv.com, 17 September 2003, available at
13486 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #68</ulink>.
13487 </para></footnote>
13488 The story about Bob Dylan <quote>stealing</quote> from a Japanese author has just
13489 finished making the rounds.<footnote><para>
13490 <!-- f13. -->
13491 Kenji Hall, Associated Press, <quote>Japanese Book May Be Inspiration for
13492 Dylan Songs,</quote> Kansascity.com, 9 July 2003, available at
13493 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #69</ulink>.
13494 <!-- PAGE BREAK 334 -->
13495 </para></footnote>
13496 An insider from Hollywood&mdash;who insists he must remain
13497 anonymous&mdash;reports <quote>an amazing conversation with these studio
13498 guys. They've got extraordinary [old] content that they'd love to use
13499 but can't because they can't begin to clear the rights. They've got
13500 scores of kids who could do amazing things with the content, but it
13501 would take scores of lawyers to clean it first.</quote> Congressmen are
13502 talking about deputizing computer viruses to bring down computers
13503 thought to violate the law. Universities are threatening expulsion for
13504 kids who use a computer to share content.
13505 </para>
13506 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee</primary></indexterm>
13507 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie</primary></indexterm>
13508 <indexterm><primary>BBC</primary></indexterm>
13509 <indexterm><primary>Brazil, free culture in</primary></indexterm>
13510 <indexterm><primary>Creative Commons</primary></indexterm>
13511 <indexterm><primary>Gil, Gilberto</primary></indexterm>
13512 <indexterm><primary>United Kingdom</primary><secondary>public creative archive in</secondary></indexterm>
13513 <para>
13514 Yet on the other side of the Atlantic, the BBC has just announced
13515 that it will build a <quote>Creative Archive,</quote> from which British citizens can
13516 download BBC content, and rip, mix, and burn it.<footnote><para>
13517 <!-- f14. --> <quote>BBC Plans to Open Up Its Archive to the Public,</quote> BBC press release,
13518 24 August 2003, available at
13519 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #70</ulink>.
13520 </para></footnote>
13521 And in Brazil, the culture minister, Gilberto Gil, himself a folk hero
13522 of Brazilian music, has joined with Creative Commons to release
13523 content and free licenses in that Latin American
13524 country.<footnote><para>
13525 <!-- f15. -->
13526 <quote>Creative Commons and Brazil,</quote> Creative Commons Weblog, 6 August 2003,
13527 available at
13528 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #71</ulink>.
13529 </para></footnote>
13530 <!-- PAGE BREAK 278 -->
13531 I've told a dark story. The truth is more mixed. A technology has
13532 given us a new freedom. Slowly, some begin to understand that this
13533 freedom need not mean anarchy. We can carry a free culture into the
13534 twenty-first century, without artists losing and without the potential of
13535 digital technology being destroyed. It will take some thought, and
13536 more importantly, it will take some will to transform the RCAs of our
13537 day into the Causbys.
13538 </para>
13539 <para>
13540 Common sense must revolt. It must act to free culture. Soon, if this
13541 potential is ever to be realized.
13542
13543 <!-- PAGE BREAK 279 -->
13544
13545 </para>
13546 </chapter>
13547 <chapter label="16" id="c-afterword">
13548 <title>AFTERWORD</title>
13549 <para>
13550
13551 <!-- PAGE BREAK 280 -->
13552 <emphasis role='strong'>At least some</emphasis> who have read this
13553 far will agree with me that something must be done to change where we
13554 are heading. The balance of this book maps what might be done.
13555 </para>
13556 <para>
13557 I divide this map into two parts: that which anyone can do now,
13558 and that which requires the help of lawmakers. If there is one lesson
13559 that we can draw from the history of remaking common sense, it is that
13560 it requires remaking how many people think about the very same issue.
13561 </para>
13562 <para>
13563 That means this movement must begin in the streets. It must recruit a
13564 significant number of parents, teachers, librarians, creators,
13565 authors, musicians, filmmakers, scientists&mdash;all to tell this
13566 story in their own words, and to tell their neighbors why this battle
13567 is so important.
13568 </para>
13569 <para>
13570 Once this movement has its effect in the streets, it has some hope of
13571 having an effect in Washington. We are still a democracy. What people
13572 think matters. Not as much as it should, at least when an RCA stands
13573 opposed, but still, it matters. And thus, in the second part below, I
13574 sketch changes that Congress could make to better secure a free culture.
13575 </para>
13576 <!-- PAGE BREAK 281 -->
13577
13578 <section id="usnow">
13579 <title>US, NOW</title>
13580 <para>
13581 <emphasis role='strong'>Common sense</emphasis> is with the copyright
13582 warriors because the debate so far has been framed at the
13583 extremes&mdash;as a grand either/or: either property or anarchy,
13584 either total control or artists won't be paid. If that really is the
13585 choice, then the warriors should win.
13586 </para>
13587 <para>
13588 The mistake here is the error of the excluded middle. There are
13589 extremes in this debate, but the extremes are not all that there
13590 is. There are those who believe in maximal copyright&mdash;<quote>All Rights
13591 Reserved</quote>&mdash; and those who reject copyright&mdash;<quote>No Rights
13592 Reserved.</quote> The <quote>All Rights Reserved</quote> sorts believe that you should ask
13593 permission before you <quote>use</quote> a copyrighted work in any way. The <quote>No
13594 Rights Reserved</quote> sorts believe you should be able to do with content
13595 as you wish, regardless of whether you have permission or not.
13596 </para>
13597 <para>
13598 When the Internet was first born, its initial architecture effectively
13599 tilted in the <quote>no rights reserved</quote> direction. Content could be copied
13600 perfectly and cheaply; rights could not easily be controlled. Thus,
13601 regardless of anyone's desire, the effective regime of copyright under
13602 the
13603
13604 <!-- PAGE BREAK 282 -->
13605 original design of the Internet was <quote>no rights reserved.</quote> Content was
13606 <quote>taken</quote> regardless of the rights. Any rights were effectively
13607 unprotected.
13608 </para>
13609 <para>
13610 This initial character produced a reaction (opposite, but not quite
13611 equal) by copyright owners. That reaction has been the topic of this
13612 book. Through legislation, litigation, and changes to the network's
13613 design, copyright holders have been able to change the essential
13614 character of the environment of the original Internet. If the original
13615 architecture made the effective default <quote>no rights reserved,</quote> the
13616 future architecture will make the effective default <quote>all rights
13617 reserved.</quote> The architecture and law that surround the Internet's
13618 design will increasingly produce an environment where all use of
13619 content requires permission. The <quote>cut and paste</quote> world that defines
13620 the Internet today will become a <quote>get permission to cut and paste</quote>
13621 world that is a creator's nightmare.
13622 </para>
13623 <para>
13624 What's needed is a way to say something in the middle&mdash;neither
13625 <quote>all rights reserved</quote> nor <quote>no rights reserved</quote> but <quote>some rights
13626 reserved</quote>&mdash; and thus a way to respect copyrights but enable
13627 creators to free content as they see fit. In other words, we need a
13628 way to restore a set of freedoms that we could just take for granted
13629 before.
13630 </para>
13631
13632 <section id="examples">
13633 <title>Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples</title>
13634 <indexterm id='browsing' class='startofrange'><primary>browsing</primary></indexterm>
13635 <para>
13636 If you step back from the battle I've been describing here, you will
13637 recognize this problem from other contexts. Think about
13638 privacy. Before the Internet, most of us didn't have to worry much
13639 about data about our lives that we broadcast to the world. If you
13640 walked into a bookstore and browsed through some of the works of Karl
13641 Marx, you didn't need to worry about explaining your browsing habits
13642 to your neighbors or boss. The <quote>privacy</quote> of your browsing habits was
13643 assured.
13644 </para>
13645 <para>
13646 What made it assured?
13647 </para>
13648 <!-- PAGE BREAK 283 -->
13649 <para>
13650 Well, if we think in terms of the modalities I described in chapter
13651 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="property-i"/>, your
13652 privacy was assured because of an inefficient architecture for
13653 gathering data and hence a market constraint (cost) on anyone who
13654 wanted to gather that data. If you were a suspected spy for North
13655 Korea, working for the CIA, no doubt your privacy would not be
13656 assured. But that's because the CIA would (we hope) find it valuable
13657 enough to spend the thousands required to track you. But for most of
13658 us (again, we can hope), spying doesn't pay. The highly inefficient
13659 architecture of real space means we all enjoy a fairly robust amount
13660 of privacy. That privacy is guaranteed to us by friction. Not by law
13661 (there is no law protecting <quote>privacy</quote> in public places), and in many
13662 places, not by norms (snooping and gossip are just fun), but instead,
13663 by the costs that friction imposes on anyone who would want to spy.
13664 </para>
13665 <indexterm><primary>Amazon</primary></indexterm>
13666 <indexterm><primary>cookies, Internet</primary></indexterm>
13667 <para>
13668 Enter the Internet, where the cost of tracking browsing in particular
13669 has become quite tiny. If you're a customer at Amazon, then as you
13670 browse the pages, Amazon collects the data about what you've looked
13671 at. You know this because at the side of the page, there's a list of
13672 <quote>recently viewed</quote> pages. Now, because of the architecture of the Net
13673 and the function of cookies on the Net, it is easier to collect the
13674 data than not. The friction has disappeared, and hence any <quote>privacy</quote>
13675 protected by the friction disappears, too.
13676 </para>
13677 <para>
13678 Amazon, of course, is not the problem. But we might begin to worry
13679 about libraries. If you're one of those crazy lefties who thinks that
13680 people should have the <quote>right</quote> to browse in a library without the
13681 government knowing which books you look at (I'm one of those lefties,
13682 too), then this change in the technology of monitoring might concern
13683 you. If it becomes simple to gather and sort who does what in
13684 electronic spaces, then the friction-induced privacy of yesterday
13685 disappears.
13686 </para>
13687 <indexterm startref='browsing' class='endofrange'/>
13688 <para>
13689 It is this reality that explains the push of many to define <quote>privacy</quote>
13690 on the Internet. It is the recognition that technology can remove what
13691 friction before gave us that leads many to push for laws to do what
13692 friction did.<footnote><para>
13693 <!-- f1. -->
13694
13695 See, for example, Marc Rotenberg, <quote>Fair Information Practices and the
13696 Architecture of Privacy (What Larry Doesn't Get),</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Technology
13697 Law Review</citetitle> 1 (2001): par. 6&ndash;18, available at
13698
13699 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #72</ulink>
13700 (describing examples in which technology defines privacy policy). See
13701 also Jeffrey Rosen, <citetitle>The Naked Crowd: Reclaiming Security and Freedom
13702 in an Anxious Age</citetitle> (New York: Random House, 2004) (mapping tradeoffs
13703 between technology and privacy).</para></footnote>
13704 And whether you're in favor of those laws or not, it is the pattern
13705 that is important here. We must take affirmative steps to secure a
13706
13707 <!-- PAGE BREAK 284 -->
13708 kind of freedom that was passively provided before. A change in
13709 technology now forces those who believe in privacy to affirmatively
13710 act where, before, privacy was given by default.
13711 </para>
13712 <para>
13713 A similar story could be told about the birth of the free software
13714 movement. When computers with software were first made available
13715 commercially, the software&mdash;both the source code and the
13716 binaries&mdash; was free. You couldn't run a program written for a
13717 Data General machine on an IBM machine, so Data General and IBM didn't
13718 care much about controlling their software.
13719 <indexterm><primary>IBM</primary></indexterm>
13720 </para>
13721 <indexterm><primary>Stallman, Richard</primary></indexterm>
13722 <para>
13723 That was the world Richard Stallman was born into, and while he was a
13724 researcher at MIT, he grew to love the community that developed when
13725 one was free to explore and tinker with the software that ran on
13726 machines. Being a smart sort himself, and a talented programmer,
13727 Stallman grew to depend upon the freedom to add to or modify other
13728 people's work.
13729 </para>
13730 <para>
13731 In an academic setting, at least, that's not a terribly radical
13732 idea. In a math department, anyone would be free to tinker with a
13733 proof that someone offered. If you thought you had a better way to
13734 prove a theorem, you could take what someone else did and change
13735 it. In a classics department, if you believed a colleague's
13736 translation of a recently discovered text was flawed, you were free to
13737 improve it. Thus, to Stallman, it seemed obvious that you should be
13738 free to tinker with and improve the code that ran a machine. This,
13739 too, was knowledge. Why shouldn't it be open for criticism like
13740 anything else?
13741 </para>
13742 <para>
13743 No one answered that question. Instead, the architecture of revenue
13744 for computing changed. As it became possible to import programs from
13745 one system to another, it became economically attractive (at least in
13746 the view of some) to hide the code of your program. So, too, as
13747 companies started selling peripherals for mainframe systems. If I
13748 could just take your printer driver and copy it, then that would make
13749 it easier for me to sell a printer to the market than it was for you.
13750 </para>
13751 <para>
13752 Thus, the practice of proprietary code began to spread, and by the
13753 early 1980s, Stallman found himself surrounded by proprietary code.
13754 <!-- PAGE BREAK 285 -->
13755 The world of free software had been erased by a change in the
13756 economics of computing. And as he believed, if he did nothing about
13757 it, then the freedom to change and share software would be
13758 fundamentally weakened.
13759 </para>
13760 <indexterm><primary>Torvalds, Linus</primary></indexterm>
13761 <para>
13762 Therefore, in 1984, Stallman began a project to build a free operating
13763 system, so that at least a strain of free software would survive. That
13764 was the birth of the GNU project, into which Linus Torvalds's <quote>Linux</quote>
13765 kernel was added to produce the GNU/Linux operating system.
13766 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
13767 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system</primary></indexterm>
13768 </para>
13769 <para>
13770 Stallman's technique was to use copyright law to build a world of
13771 software that must be kept free. Software licensed under the Free
13772 Software Foundation's GPL cannot be modified and distributed unless
13773 the source code for that software is made available as well. Thus,
13774 anyone building upon GPL'd software would have to make their buildings
13775 free as well. This would assure, Stallman believed, that an ecology of
13776 code would develop that remained free for others to build upon. His
13777 fundamental goal was freedom; innovative creative code was a
13778 byproduct.
13779 </para>
13780 <para>
13781 Stallman was thus doing for software what privacy advocates now
13782 do for privacy. He was seeking a way to rebuild a kind of freedom that
13783 was taken for granted before. Through the affirmative use of licenses
13784 that bind copyrighted code, Stallman was affirmatively reclaiming a
13785 space where free software would survive. He was actively protecting
13786 what before had been passively guaranteed.
13787 </para>
13788 <para>
13789 Finally, consider a very recent example that more directly resonates
13790 with the story of this book. This is the shift in the way academic and
13791 scientific journals are produced.
13792 </para>
13793 <indexterm id="idxacademocjournals" class='startofrange'><primary>academic journals</primary></indexterm>
13794 <para>
13795 As digital technologies develop, it is becoming obvious to many that
13796 printing thousands of copies of journals every month and sending them
13797 to libraries is perhaps not the most efficient way to distribute
13798 knowledge. Instead, journals are increasingly becoming electronic, and
13799 libraries and their users are given access to these electronic
13800 journals through password-protected sites. Something similar to this
13801 has been happening in law for almost thirty years: Lexis and Westlaw
13802 have had electronic versions of case reports available to subscribers
13803 to their service. Although a Supreme Court opinion is not
13804 copyrighted, and anyone is free to go to a library and read it, Lexis
13805 and Westlaw are also free
13806 <!-- PAGE BREAK 286 -->
13807 to charge users for the privilege of gaining access to that Supreme
13808 Court opinion through their respective services.
13809 </para>
13810 <para>
13811 There's nothing wrong in general with this, and indeed, the ability to
13812 charge for access to even public domain materials is a good incentive
13813 for people to develop new and innovative ways to spread knowledge.
13814 The law has agreed, which is why Lexis and Westlaw have been allowed
13815 to flourish. And if there's nothing wrong with selling the public
13816 domain, then there could be nothing wrong, in principle, with selling
13817 access to material that is not in the public domain.
13818 </para>
13819 <para>
13820 But what if the only way to get access to social and scientific data
13821 was through proprietary services? What if no one had the ability to
13822 browse this data except by paying for a subscription?
13823 </para>
13824 <para>
13825 As many are beginning to notice, this is increasingly the reality with
13826 scientific journals. When these journals were distributed in paper
13827 form, libraries could make the journals available to anyone who had
13828 access to the library. Thus, patients with cancer could become cancer
13829 experts because the library gave them access. Or patients trying to
13830 understand the risks of a certain treatment could research those risks
13831 by reading all available articles about that treatment. This freedom
13832 was therefore a function of the institution of libraries (norms) and
13833 the technology of paper journals (architecture)&mdash;namely, that it
13834 was very hard to control access to a paper journal.
13835 </para>
13836 <para>
13837 As journals become electronic, however, the publishers are demanding
13838 that libraries not give the general public access to the
13839 journals. This means that the freedoms provided by print journals in
13840 public libraries begin to disappear. Thus, as with privacy and with
13841 software, a changing technology and market shrink a freedom taken for
13842 granted before.
13843 </para>
13844 <para>
13845 This shrinking freedom has led many to take affirmative steps to
13846 restore the freedom that has been lost. The Public Library of Science
13847 (PLoS), for example, is a nonprofit corporation dedicated to making
13848 scientific research available to anyone with a Web connection. Authors
13849 <!-- PAGE BREAK 287 -->
13850 of scientific work submit that work to the Public Library of Science.
13851 That work is then subject to peer review. If accepted, the work is
13852 then deposited in a public, electronic archive and made permanently
13853 available for free. PLoS also sells a print version of its work, but
13854 the copyright for the print journal does not inhibit the right of
13855 anyone to redistribute the work for free.
13856 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)</primary></indexterm>
13857 </para>
13858 <para>
13859 This is one of many such efforts to restore a freedom taken for
13860 granted before, but now threatened by changing technology and markets.
13861 There's no doubt that this alternative competes with the traditional
13862 publishers and their efforts to make money from the exclusive
13863 distribution of content. But competition in our tradition is
13864 presumptively a good&mdash;especially when it helps spread knowledge
13865 and science.
13866 </para>
13867 <indexterm startref="idxacademocjournals" class='endofrange'/>
13868
13869 </section>
13870 <section id="oneidea">
13871 <title>Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea</title>
13872 <indexterm id="idxcc" class='startofrange'><primary>Creative Commons</primary></indexterm>
13873 <para>
13874 The same strategy could be applied to culture, as a response to the
13875 increasing control effected through law and technology.
13876 </para>
13877 <indexterm><primary>Stanford University</primary></indexterm>
13878 <para>
13879 Enter the Creative Commons. The Creative Commons is a nonprofit
13880 corporation established in Massachusetts, but with its home at
13881 Stanford University. Its aim is to build a layer of
13882 <emphasis>reasonable</emphasis> copyright on top of the extremes that
13883 now reign. It does this by making it easy for people to build upon
13884 other people's work, by making it simple for creators to express the
13885 freedom for others to take and build upon their work. Simple tags,
13886 tied to human-readable descriptions, tied to bulletproof licenses,
13887 make this possible.
13888 </para>
13889 <para>
13890 <emphasis>Simple</emphasis>&mdash;which means without a middleman, or
13891 without a lawyer. By developing a free set of licenses that people
13892 can attach to their content, Creative Commons aims to mark a range of
13893 content that can easily, and reliably, be built upon. These tags are
13894 then linked to machine-readable versions of the license that enable
13895 computers automatically to identify content that can easily be
13896 shared. These three expressions together&mdash;a legal license, a
13897 human-readable description, and
13898 <!-- PAGE BREAK 288 -->
13899 machine-readable tags&mdash;constitute a Creative Commons license. A
13900 Creative Commons license constitutes a grant of freedom to anyone who
13901 accesses the license, and more importantly, an expression of the ideal
13902 that the person associated with the license believes in something
13903 different than the <quote>All</quote> or <quote>No</quote> extremes. Content is marked with the
13904 CC mark, which does not mean that copyright is waived, but that
13905 certain freedoms are given.
13906 </para>
13907 <para>
13908 These freedoms are beyond the freedoms promised by fair use. Their
13909 precise contours depend upon the choices the creator makes. The
13910 creator can choose a license that permits any use, so long as
13911 attribution is given. She can choose a license that permits only
13912 noncommercial use. She can choose a license that permits any use so
13913 long as the same freedoms are given to other uses (<quote>share and share
13914 alike</quote>). Or any use so long as no derivative use is made. Or any use
13915 at all within developing nations. Or any sampling use, so long as full
13916 copies are not made. Or lastly, any educational use.
13917 </para>
13918 <para>
13919 These choices thus establish a range of freedoms beyond the default of
13920 copyright law. They also enable freedoms that go beyond traditional
13921 fair use. And most importantly, they express these freedoms in a way
13922 that subsequent users can use and rely upon without the need to hire a
13923 lawyer. Creative Commons thus aims to build a layer of content,
13924 governed by a layer of reasonable copyright law, that others can build
13925 upon. Voluntary choice of individuals and creators will make this
13926 content available. And that content will in turn enable us to rebuild
13927 a public domain.
13928 </para>
13929 <indexterm><primary>Garlick, Mia</primary></indexterm>
13930 <para>
13931 This is just one project among many within the Creative Commons. And
13932 of course, Creative Commons is not the only organization pursuing such
13933 freedoms. But the point that distinguishes the Creative Commons from
13934 many is that we are not interested only in talking about a public
13935 domain or in getting legislators to help build a public domain. Our
13936 aim is to build a movement of consumers and producers
13937 <!-- PAGE BREAK 289 -->
13938 of content (<quote>content conducers,</quote> as attorney Mia Garlick calls them)
13939 who help build the public domain and, by their work, demonstrate the
13940 importance of the public domain to other creativity.
13941 </para>
13942 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas</primary></indexterm>
13943 <para>
13944 The aim is not to fight the <quote>All Rights Reserved</quote> sorts. The aim is to
13945 complement them. The problems that the law creates for us as a culture
13946 are produced by insane and unintended consequences of laws written
13947 centuries ago, applied to a technology that only Jefferson could have
13948 imagined. The rules may well have made sense against a background of
13949 technologies from centuries ago, but they do not make sense against
13950 the background of digital technologies. New rules&mdash;with different
13951 freedoms, expressed in ways so that humans without lawyers can use
13952 them&mdash;are needed. Creative Commons gives people a way effectively
13953 to begin to build those rules.
13954 </para>
13955 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='startofrange'><primary>books</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of</secondary></indexterm>
13956 <para>
13957 Why would creators participate in giving up total control? Some
13958 participate to better spread their content. Cory Doctorow, for
13959 example, is a science fiction author. His first novel, <citetitle>Down and Out in
13960 the Magic Kingdom</citetitle>, was released on-line and for free, under a Creative
13961 Commons license, on the same day that it went on sale in bookstores.
13962 </para>
13963 <para>
13964 Why would a publisher ever agree to this? I suspect his publisher
13965 reasoned like this: There are two groups of people out there: (1)
13966 those who will buy Cory's book whether or not it's on the Internet,
13967 and (2) those who may never hear of Cory's book, if it isn't made
13968 available for free on the Internet. Some part of (1) will download
13969 Cory's book instead of buying it. Call them bad-(1)s. Some part of (2)
13970 will download Cory's book, like it, and then decide to buy it. Call
13971 them (2)-goods. If there are more (2)-goods than bad-(1)s, the
13972 strategy of releasing Cory's book free on-line will probably
13973 <emphasis>increase</emphasis> sales of Cory's book.
13974 </para>
13975 <para>
13976 Indeed, the experience of his publisher clearly supports that
13977 conclusion. The book's first printing was exhausted months before the
13978 publisher had expected. This first novel of a science fiction author
13979 was a total success.
13980 </para>
13981 <indexterm><primary>Free for All (Wayner)</primary></indexterm>
13982 <indexterm><primary>Wayner, Peter</primary></indexterm>
13983 <para>
13984 The idea that free content might increase the value of nonfree content
13985 was confirmed by the experience of another author. Peter Wayner,
13986 <!-- PAGE BREAK 290 -->
13987 who wrote a book about the free software movement titled <citetitle>Free for All</citetitle>,
13988 made an electronic version of his book free on-line under a Creative
13989 Commons license after the book went out of print. He then monitored
13990 used book store prices for the book. As predicted, as the number of
13991 downloads increased, the used book price for his book increased, as
13992 well.
13993 </para>
13994 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='endofrange'/>
13995 <indexterm><primary>Public Enemy</primary></indexterm>
13996 <indexterm><primary>rap music</primary></indexterm>
13997 <indexterm><primary>Leaphart, Walter</primary></indexterm>
13998 <para>
13999 These are examples of using the Commons to better spread proprietary
14000 content. I believe that is a wonderful and common use of the
14001 Commons. There are others who use Creative Commons licenses for other
14002 reasons. Many who use the <quote>sampling license</quote> do so because anything
14003 else would be hypocritical. The sampling license says that others are
14004 free, for commercial or noncommercial purposes, to sample content from
14005 the licensed work; they are just not free to make full copies of the
14006 licensed work available to others. This is consistent with their own
14007 art&mdash;they, too, sample from others. Because the
14008 <emphasis>legal</emphasis> costs of sampling are so high (Walter
14009 Leaphart, manager of the rap group Public Enemy, which was born
14010 sampling the music of others, has stated that he does not <quote>allow</quote>
14011 Public Enemy to sample anymore, because the legal costs are so
14012 high<footnote><para>
14013 <!-- f2. -->
14014 <citetitle>Willful Infringement: A Report from the Front Lines of the Real
14015 Culture Wars</citetitle> (2003), produced by Jed Horovitz, directed by Greg
14016 Hittelman, a Fiat Lucre production, available at
14017 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #72</ulink>.
14018 </para></footnote>),
14019 these artists release into the creative environment content
14020 that others can build upon, so that their form of creativity might grow.
14021 </para>
14022 <para>
14023 Finally, there are many who mark their content with a Creative Commons
14024 license just because they want to express to others the importance of
14025 balance in this debate. If you just go along with the system as it is,
14026 you are effectively saying you believe in the <quote>All Rights Reserved</quote>
14027 model. Good for you, but many do not. Many believe that however
14028 appropriate that rule is for Hollywood and freaks, it is not an
14029 appropriate description of how most creators view the rights
14030 associated with their content. The Creative Commons license expresses
14031 this notion of <quote>Some Rights Reserved,</quote> and gives many the chance to
14032 say it to others.
14033 </para>
14034 <para>
14035 In the first six months of the Creative Commons experiment, over
14036 1 million objects were licensed with these free-culture licenses. The next
14037 step is partnerships with middleware content providers to help them
14038 build into their technologies simple ways for users to mark their content
14039
14040 <!-- PAGE BREAK 291 -->
14041 with Creative Commons freedoms. Then the next step is to watch and
14042 celebrate creators who build content based upon content set free.
14043 </para>
14044 <para>
14045 These are first steps to rebuilding a public domain. They are not
14046 mere arguments; they are action. Building a public domain is the first
14047 step to showing people how important that domain is to creativity and
14048 innovation. Creative Commons relies upon voluntary steps to achieve
14049 this rebuilding. They will lead to a world in which more than voluntary
14050 steps are possible.
14051 </para>
14052 <para>
14053 Creative Commons is just one example of voluntary efforts by
14054 individuals and creators to change the mix of rights that now govern
14055 the creative field. The project does not compete with copyright; it
14056 complements it. Its aim is not to defeat the rights of authors, but to
14057 make it easier for authors and creators to exercise their rights more
14058 flexibly and cheaply. That difference, we believe, will enable
14059 creativity to spread more easily.
14060 </para>
14061 <indexterm startref="idxcc" class='endofrange'/>
14062
14063 <!-- PAGE BREAK 292 -->
14064 </section>
14065 </section>
14066 <section id="themsoon">
14067 <title>THEM, SOON</title>
14068 <para>
14069 <emphasis role='strong'>We will</emphasis> not reclaim a free culture
14070 by individual action alone. It will also take important reforms of
14071 laws. We have a long way to go before the politicians will listen to
14072 these ideas and implement these reforms. But that also means that we
14073 have time to build awareness around the changes that we need.
14074 </para>
14075 <para>
14076 In this chapter, I outline five kinds of changes: four that are general,
14077 and one that's specific to the most heated battle of the day, music. Each
14078 is a step, not an end. But any of these steps would carry us a long way
14079 to our end.
14080 </para>
14081
14082 <section id="formalities">
14083 <title>1. More Formalities</title>
14084 <para>
14085 If you buy a house, you have to record the sale in a deed. If you buy land
14086 upon which to build a house, you have to record the purchase in a deed.
14087 If you buy a car, you get a bill of sale and register the car. If you buy an
14088 airplane ticket, it has your name on it.
14089 </para>
14090 <para>
14091 <!-- PAGE BREAK 293 -->
14092 These are all formalities associated with property. They are
14093 requirements that we all must bear if we want our property to be
14094 protected.
14095 </para>
14096 <para>
14097 In contrast, under current copyright law, you automatically get a
14098 copyright, regardless of whether you comply with any formality. You
14099 don't have to register. You don't even have to mark your content. The
14100 default is control, and <quote>formalities</quote> are banished.
14101 </para>
14102 <para>
14103 Why?
14104 </para>
14105 <para>
14106 As I suggested in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
14107 linkend="property-i"/>, the motivation to abolish formalities was a
14108 good one. In the world before digital technologies, formalities
14109 imposed a burden on copyright holders without much benefit. Thus, it
14110 was progress when the law relaxed the formal requirements that a
14111 copyright owner must bear to protect and secure his work. Those
14112 formalities were getting in the way.
14113 </para>
14114 <para>
14115 But the Internet changes all this. Formalities today need not be a
14116 burden. Rather, the world without formalities is the world that
14117 burdens creativity. Today, there is no simple way to know who owns
14118 what, or with whom one must deal in order to use or build upon the
14119 creative work of others. There are no records, there is no system to
14120 trace&mdash; there is no simple way to know how to get permission. Yet
14121 given the massive increase in the scope of copyright's rule, getting
14122 permission is a necessary step for any work that builds upon our
14123 past. And thus, the <emphasis>lack</emphasis> of formalities forces
14124 many into silence where they otherwise could speak.
14125 </para>
14126 <para>
14127 The law should therefore change this requirement<footnote><para>
14128 <!-- f1. -->
14129 The proposal I am advancing here would apply to American works only.
14130 Obviously, I believe it would be beneficial for the same idea to be
14131 adopted by other countries as well.</para></footnote>&mdash;but it
14132 should not change it by going back to the old, broken system. We
14133 should require formalities, but we should establish a system that will
14134 create the incentives to minimize the burden of these formalities.
14135 </para>
14136 <para>
14137 The important formalities are three: marking copyrighted work,
14138 registering copyrights, and renewing the claim to
14139 copyright. Traditionally, the first of these three was something the
14140 copyright owner did; the second two were something the government
14141 did. But a revised system of formalities would banish the government
14142 from the process, except for the sole purpose of approving standards
14143 developed by others.
14144 </para>
14145
14146 <!-- PAGE BREAK 294 -->
14147
14148 <section id="registration">
14149 <title>REGISTRATION AND RENEWAL</title>
14150 <para>
14151 Under the old system, a copyright owner had to file a registration
14152 with the Copyright Office to register or renew a copyright. When
14153 filing that registration, the copyright owner paid a fee. As with most
14154 government agencies, the Copyright Office had little incentive to
14155 minimize the burden of registration; it also had little incentive to
14156 minimize the fee. And as the Copyright Office is not a main target of
14157 government policymaking, the office has historically been terribly
14158 underfunded. Thus, when people who know something about the process
14159 hear this idea about formalities, their first reaction is
14160 panic&mdash;nothing could be worse than forcing people to deal with
14161 the mess that is the Copyright Office.
14162 </para>
14163 <para>
14164 Yet it is always astonishing to me that we, who come from a tradition
14165 of extraordinary innovation in governmental design, can no longer
14166 think innovatively about how governmental functions can be designed.
14167 Just because there is a public purpose to a government role, it
14168 doesn't follow that the government must actually administer the
14169 role. Instead, we should be creating incentives for private parties to
14170 serve the public, subject to standards that the government sets.
14171 </para>
14172 <para>
14173 In the context of registration, one obvious model is the Internet.
14174 There are at least 32 million Web sites registered around the world.
14175 Domain name owners for these Web sites have to pay a fee to keep their
14176 registration alive. In the main top-level domains (.com, .org, .net),
14177 there is a central registry. The actual registrations are, however,
14178 performed by many competing registrars. That competition drives the
14179 cost of registering down, and more importantly, it drives the ease
14180 with which registration occurs up.
14181 </para>
14182 <para>
14183 We should adopt a similar model for the registration and renewal of
14184 copyrights. The Copyright Office may well serve as the central
14185 registry, but it should not be in the registrar business. Instead, it
14186 should establish a database, and a set of standards for registrars. It
14187 should approve registrars that meet its standards. Those registrars
14188 would then compete with one another to deliver the cheapest and
14189 simplest systems for registering and renewing copyrights. That
14190 competition would substantially lower the burden of this
14191 formality&mdash;while producing a database
14192 <!-- PAGE BREAK 295 -->
14193 of registrations that would facilitate the licensing of content.
14194 </para>
14195
14196 </section>
14197 <section id="marking">
14198 <title>MARKING</title>
14199 <para>
14200 It used to be that the failure to include a copyright notice on a
14201 creative work meant that the copyright was forfeited. That was a harsh
14202 punishment for failing to comply with a regulatory rule&mdash;akin to
14203 imposing the death penalty for a parking ticket in the world of
14204 creative rights. Here again, there is no reason that a marking
14205 requirement needs to be enforced in this way. And more importantly,
14206 there is no reason a marking requirement needs to be enforced
14207 uniformly across all media.
14208 </para>
14209 <para>
14210 The aim of marking is to signal to the public that this work is
14211 copyrighted and that the author wants to enforce his rights. The mark
14212 also makes it easy to locate a copyright owner to secure permission to
14213 use the work.
14214 </para>
14215 <para>
14216 One of the problems the copyright system confronted early on was
14217 that different copyrighted works had to be differently marked. It wasn't
14218 clear how or where a statue was to be marked, or a record, or a film. A
14219 new marking requirement could solve these problems by recognizing
14220 the differences in media, and by allowing the system of marking to
14221 evolve as technologies enable it to. The system could enable a special
14222 signal from the failure to mark&mdash;not the loss of the copyright, but the
14223 loss of the right to punish someone for failing to get permission first.
14224 </para>
14225 <para>
14226 Let's start with the last point. If a copyright owner allows his work
14227 to be published without a copyright notice, the consequence of that
14228 failure need not be that the copyright is lost. The consequence could
14229 instead be that anyone has the right to use this work, until the
14230 copyright owner complains and demonstrates that it is his work and he
14231 doesn't give permission.<footnote><para>
14232 <!-- f2. -->
14233 There would be a complication with derivative works that I have not
14234 solved here. In my view, the law of derivatives creates a more complicated
14235 system than is justified by the marginal incentive it creates.
14236 </para></footnote>
14237 The meaning of an unmarked work would therefore be <quote>use unless someone
14238 complains.</quote> If someone does complain, then the obligation would be to
14239 stop using the work in any new
14240 <!-- PAGE BREAK 296 -->
14241 work from then on though no penalty would attach for existing uses.
14242 This would create a strong incentive for copyright owners to mark
14243 their work.
14244 </para>
14245 <para>
14246 That in turn raises the question about how work should best be
14247 marked. Here again, the system needs to adjust as the technologies
14248 evolve. The best way to ensure that the system evolves is to limit the
14249 Copyright Office's role to that of approving standards for marking
14250 content that have been crafted elsewhere.
14251 </para>
14252 <indexterm><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>copyright marking of</secondary></indexterm>
14253 <para>
14254 For example, if a recording industry association devises a method for
14255 marking CDs, it would propose that to the Copyright Office. The
14256 Copyright Office would hold a hearing, at which other proposals could
14257 be made. The Copyright Office would then select the proposal that it
14258 judged preferable, and it would base that choice
14259 <emphasis>solely</emphasis> upon the consideration of which method
14260 could best be integrated into the registration and renewal system. We
14261 would not count on the government to innovate; but we would count on
14262 the government to keep the product of innovation in line with its
14263 other important functions.
14264 </para>
14265 <para>
14266 Finally, marking content clearly would simplify registration
14267 requirements. If photographs were marked by author and year, there
14268 would be little reason not to allow a photographer to reregister, for
14269 example, all photographs taken in a particular year in one quick
14270 step. The aim of the formality is not to burden the creator; the
14271 system itself should be kept as simple as possible.
14272 </para>
14273 <para>
14274 The objective of formalities is to make things clear. The existing
14275 system does nothing to make things clear. Indeed, it seems designed to
14276 make things unclear.
14277 </para>
14278 <para>
14279 If formalities such as registration were reinstated, one of the most
14280 difficult aspects of relying upon the public domain would be removed.
14281 It would be simple to identify what content is presumptively free; it
14282 would be simple to identify who controls the rights for a particular
14283 kind of content; it would be simple to assert those rights, and to renew
14284 that assertion at the appropriate time.
14285 </para>
14286
14287 <!-- PAGE BREAK 297 -->
14288 </section>
14289 </section>
14290 <section id="shortterms">
14291 <title>2. Shorter Terms</title>
14292 <para>
14293 The term of copyright has gone from fourteen years to ninety-five
14294 years for corporate authors, and life of the author plus seventy years for
14295 natural authors.
14296 </para>
14297 <para>
14298 In <citetitle>The Future of Ideas</citetitle>, I proposed a seventy-five-year term,
14299 granted in five-year increments with a requirement of renewal every
14300 five years. That seemed radical enough at the time. But after we lost
14301 <citetitle>Eldred</citetitle> v. <citetitle>Ashcroft</citetitle>, the proposals became even more
14302 radical. <citetitle>The Economist</citetitle> endorsed a proposal for a fourteen-year
14303 copyright term.<footnote><para>
14304
14305 <!-- f3. -->
14306 <quote>A Radical Rethink,</quote> <citetitle>Economist</citetitle>, 366:8308 (25 January 2003): 15,
14307 available at
14308 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #74</ulink>.
14309 </para></footnote>
14310 Others have proposed tying the term to the term for patents.
14311 </para>
14312 <para>
14313 I agree with those who believe that we need a radical change in
14314 copyright's term. But whether fourteen years or seventy-five, there
14315 are four principles that are important to keep in mind about copyright
14316 terms.
14317 </para>
14318 <orderedlist numeration="arabic">
14319 <listitem><para>
14320 <!-- (1) -->
14321 <emphasis>Keep it short:</emphasis> The term should be as long as
14322 necessary to give incentives to create, but no longer. If it were tied
14323 to very strong protections for authors (so authors were able to
14324 reclaim rights from publishers), rights to the same work (not
14325 derivative works) might be extended further. The key is not to tie the
14326 work up with legal regulations when it no longer benefits an author.
14327 </para></listitem>
14328 <listitem><para>
14329 <!-- (2) -->
14330 <emphasis>Keep it simple:</emphasis> The line between the public
14331 domain and protected content must be kept clear. Lawyers like the
14332 fuzziness of <quote>fair use,</quote> and the distinction between <quote>ideas</quote> and
14333 <quote>expression.</quote> That kind of law gives them lots of work. But our
14334 framers had a simpler idea in mind: protected versus unprotected. The
14335 value of short terms is that there is little need to build exceptions
14336 into copyright when the term itself is kept short. A clear and active
14337 <quote>lawyer-free zone</quote> makes the complexities of <quote>fair use</quote> and
14338 <quote>idea/expression</quote> less necessary to navigate.
14339 <!-- PAGE BREAK 298 -->
14340 </para></listitem>
14341 <listitem>
14342 <indexterm><primary>veterans' pensions</primary></indexterm>
14343 <para>
14344 <!-- (3) -->
14345 <emphasis>Keep it alive:</emphasis> Copyright should have to be
14346 renewed. Especially if the maximum term is long, the copyright owner
14347 should be required to signal periodically that he wants the protection
14348 continued. This need not be an onerous burden, but there is no reason
14349 this monopoly protection has to be granted for free. On average, it
14350 takes ninety minutes for a veteran to apply for a
14351 pension.<footnote><para>
14352 <!-- f4. -->
14353 Department of Veterans Affairs, Veteran's Application for Compensation
14354 and/or Pension, VA Form 21-526 (OMB Approved No. 2900-0001),
14355 available at
14356 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #75</ulink>.
14357 </para></footnote>
14358 If we make veterans suffer that burden, I don't see why we couldn't
14359 require authors to spend ten minutes every fifty years to file a
14360 single form.
14361 </para></listitem>
14362 <listitem><para>
14363 <!-- (4) -->
14364 <emphasis>Keep it prospective:</emphasis> Whatever the term of
14365 copyright should be, the clearest lesson that economists teach is that
14366 a term once given should not be extended. It might have been a mistake
14367 in 1923 for the law to offer authors only a fifty-six-year term. I
14368 don't think so, but it's possible. If it was a mistake, then the
14369 consequence was that we got fewer authors to create in 1923 than we
14370 otherwise would have. But we can't correct that mistake today by
14371 increasing the term. No matter what we do today, we will not increase
14372 the number of authors who wrote in 1923. Of course, we can increase
14373 the reward that those who write now get (or alternatively, increase
14374 the copyright burden that smothers many works that are today
14375 invisible). But increasing their reward will not increase their
14376 creativity in 1923. What's not done is not done, and there's nothing
14377 we can do about that now. </para></listitem>
14378 </orderedlist>
14379 <para>
14380 These changes together should produce an <emphasis>average</emphasis>
14381 copyright term that is much shorter than the current term. Until 1976,
14382 the average term was just 32.2 years. We should be aiming for the
14383 same.
14384 </para>
14385 <para>
14386 No doubt the extremists will call these ideas <quote>radical.</quote> (After all, I
14387 call them <quote>extremists.</quote>) But again, the term I recommended was longer
14388 than the term under Richard Nixon. How <quote>radical</quote> can it be to ask for
14389 a more generous copyright law than Richard Nixon presided over?
14390 </para>
14391
14392 <!-- PAGE BREAK 299 -->
14393
14394 </section>
14395 <section id="freefairuse">
14396 <title>3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use</title>
14397 <indexterm><primary>land ownership, air traffic and</primary></indexterm>
14398 <indexterm><primary>property rights</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.</secondary></indexterm>
14399 <para>
14400 As I observed at the beginning of this book, property law originally
14401 granted property owners the right to control their property from the
14402 ground to the heavens. The airplane came along. The scope of property
14403 rights quickly changed. There was no fuss, no constitutional
14404 challenge. It made no sense anymore to grant that much control, given
14405 the emergence of that new technology.
14406 </para>
14407 <para>
14408 Our Constitution gives Congress the power to give authors <quote>exclusive
14409 right</quote> to <quote>their writings.</quote> Congress has given authors an exclusive
14410 right to <quote>their writings</quote> plus any derivative writings (made by
14411 others) that are sufficiently close to the author's original
14412 work. Thus, if I write a book, and you base a movie on that book, I
14413 have the power to deny you the right to release that movie, even
14414 though that movie is not <quote>my writing.</quote>
14415 </para>
14416 <indexterm><primary>Kaplan, Benjamin</primary></indexterm>
14417 <para>
14418 Congress granted the beginnings of this right in 1870, when it
14419 expanded the exclusive right of copyright to include a right to
14420 control translations and dramatizations of a work.<footnote><para>
14421 <!-- f5. -->
14422 Benjamin Kaplan, <citetitle>An Unhurried View of Copyright</citetitle> (New York: Columbia
14423 University Press, 1967), 32.
14424 </para></footnote>
14425 The courts have expanded it slowly through judicial interpretation
14426 ever since. This expansion has been commented upon by one of the law's
14427 greatest judges, Judge Benjamin Kaplan.
14428 </para>
14429 <blockquote>
14430 <para>
14431 So inured have we become to the extension of the monopoly to a
14432 large range of so-called derivative works, that we no longer sense
14433 the oddity of accepting such an enlargement of copyright while
14434 yet intoning the abracadabra of idea and expression.<footnote><para>
14435 <!-- f6. --> Ibid., 56.
14436 </para></footnote>
14437 </para>
14438 </blockquote>
14439 <para>
14440 I think it's time to recognize that there are airplanes in this field and
14441 the expansiveness of these rights of derivative use no longer make
14442 sense. More precisely, they don't make sense for the period of time that
14443 a copyright runs. And they don't make sense as an amorphous grant.
14444 Consider each limitation in turn.
14445 </para>
14446 <para>
14447 <emphasis>Term:</emphasis> If Congress wants to grant a derivative
14448 right, then that right should be for a much shorter term. It makes
14449 sense to protect John
14450
14451 <!-- PAGE BREAK 300 -->
14452 Grisham's right to sell the movie rights to his latest novel (or at least
14453 I'm willing to assume it does); but it does not make sense for that right
14454 to run for the same term as the underlying copyright. The derivative
14455 right could be important in inducing creativity; it is not important long
14456 after the creative work is done.
14457 <indexterm><primary>Grisham, John</primary></indexterm>
14458 </para>
14459 <para>
14460 <emphasis>Scope:</emphasis> Likewise should the scope of derivative
14461 rights be narrowed. Again, there are some cases in which derivative
14462 rights are important. Those should be specified. But the law should
14463 draw clear lines around regulated and unregulated uses of copyrighted
14464 material. When all <quote>reuse</quote> of creative material was within the control
14465 of businesses, perhaps it made sense to require lawyers to negotiate
14466 the lines. It no longer makes sense for lawyers to negotiate the
14467 lines. Think about all the creative possibilities that digital
14468 technologies enable; now imagine pouring molasses into the
14469 machines. That's what this general requirement of permission does to
14470 the creative process. Smothers it.
14471 </para>
14472 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex</primary></indexterm>
14473 <para>
14474 This was the point that Alben made when describing the making of the
14475 Clint Eastwood CD. While it makes sense to require negotiation for
14476 foreseeable derivative rights&mdash;turning a book into a movie, or a
14477 poem into a musical score&mdash;it doesn't make sense to require
14478 negotiation for the unforeseeable. Here, a statutory right would make
14479 much more sense.
14480 </para>
14481 <para>
14482 In each of these cases, the law should mark the uses that are
14483 protected, and the presumption should be that other uses are not
14484 protected. This is the reverse of the recommendation of my colleague
14485 Paul Goldstein.<footnote>
14486 <para>
14487 <!-- f7. -->
14488 Paul Goldstein, <citetitle>Copyright's Highway: From Gutenberg to the Celestial
14489 Jukebox</citetitle> (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2003), 187&ndash;216.
14490 <indexterm><primary>Goldstein, Paul</primary></indexterm>
14491 </para></footnote>
14492 His view is that the law should be written so that
14493 expanded protections follow expanded uses.
14494 </para>
14495 <para>
14496 Goldstein's analysis would make perfect sense if the cost of the legal
14497 system were small. But as we are currently seeing in the context of
14498 the Internet, the uncertainty about the scope of protection, and the
14499 incentives to protect existing architectures of revenue, combined with
14500 a strong copyright, weaken the process of innovation.
14501 </para>
14502 <para>
14503 The law could remedy this problem either by removing protection
14504 <!-- PAGE BREAK 301 -->
14505 beyond the part explicitly drawn or by granting reuse rights upon
14506 certain statutory conditions. Either way, the effect would be to free
14507 a great deal of culture to others to cultivate. And under a statutory
14508 rights regime, that reuse would earn artists more income.
14509 </para>
14510 </section>
14511
14512 <section id="liberatemusic">
14513 <title>4. Liberate the Music&mdash;Again</title>
14514 <para>
14515 The battle that got this whole war going was about music, so it
14516 wouldn't be fair to end this book without addressing the issue that
14517 is, to most people, most pressing&mdash;music. There is no other
14518 policy issue that better teaches the lessons of this book than the
14519 battles around the sharing of music.
14520 </para>
14521 <para>
14522 The appeal of file-sharing music was the crack cocaine of the
14523 Internet's growth. It drove demand for access to the Internet more
14524 powerfully than any other single application. It was the Internet's
14525 killer app&mdash;possibly in two senses of that word. It no doubt was
14526 the application that drove demand for bandwidth. It may well be the
14527 application that drives demand for regulations that in the end kill
14528 innovation on the network.
14529 </para>
14530 <para>
14531 The aim of copyright, with respect to content in general and music in
14532 particular, is to create the incentives for music to be composed,
14533 performed, and, most importantly, spread. The law does this by giving
14534 an exclusive right to a composer to control public performances of his
14535 work, and to a performing artist to control copies of her performance.
14536 </para>
14537 <para>
14538 File-sharing networks complicate this model by enabling the spread of
14539 content for which the performer has not been paid. But of course,
14540 that's not all the file-sharing networks do. As I described in chapter
14541 <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber" linkend="piracy"/>, they enable
14542 four different kinds of sharing:
14543 </para>
14544 <orderedlist numeration="upperalpha">
14545 <listitem><para>
14546 <!-- A. -->
14547 There are some who are using sharing networks as substitutes
14548 for purchasing CDs.
14549 </para></listitem>
14550 <listitem><para>
14551 <!-- B. -->
14552 There are also some who are using sharing networks to sample,
14553 on the way to purchasing CDs.
14554 </para></listitem>
14555 <listitem><para>
14556 <!-- PAGE BREAK 302 -->
14557 <!-- C. -->
14558 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
14559 content that is no longer sold but is still under copyright or that
14560 would have been too cumbersome to buy off the Net.
14561 </para></listitem>
14562 <listitem><para>
14563 <!-- D. -->
14564 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
14565 content that is not copyrighted or to get access that the copyright
14566 owner plainly endorses.
14567 </para></listitem>
14568 </orderedlist>
14569 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording</primary><secondary>VCRs</secondary></indexterm>
14570 <indexterm><primary>VCRs</primary></indexterm>
14571 <para>
14572 Any reform of the law needs to keep these different uses in focus. It
14573 must avoid burdening type D even if it aims to eliminate type A. The
14574 eagerness with which the law aims to eliminate type A, moreover,
14575 should depend upon the magnitude of type B. As with VCRs, if the net
14576 effect of sharing is actually not very harmful, the need for regulation is
14577 significantly weakened.
14578 </para>
14579 <para>
14580 As I said in chapter <xref xrefstyle="select: labelnumber"
14581 linkend="piracy"/>, the actual harm caused by sharing is
14582 controversial. For the purposes of this chapter, however, I assume
14583 the harm is real. I assume, in other words, that type A sharing is
14584 significantly greater than type B, and is the dominant use of sharing
14585 networks.
14586 </para>
14587 <para>
14588 Nonetheless, there is a crucial fact about the current technological
14589 context that we must keep in mind if we are to understand how the law
14590 should respond.
14591 </para>
14592 <para>
14593 Today, file sharing is addictive. In ten years, it won't be. It is
14594 addictive today because it is the easiest way to gain access to a
14595 broad range of content. It won't be the easiest way to get access to
14596 a broad range of content in ten years. Today, access to the Internet
14597 is cumbersome and slow&mdash;we in the United States are lucky to have
14598 broadband service at 1.5 MBs, and very rarely do we get service at
14599 that speed both up and down. Although wireless access is growing, most
14600 of us still get access across wires. Most only gain access through a
14601 machine with a keyboard. The idea of the always on, always connected
14602 Internet is mainly just an idea.
14603 </para>
14604 <para>
14605 But it will become a reality, and that means the way we get access to
14606 the Internet today is a technology in transition. Policy makers should
14607 not make policy on the basis of technology in transition. They should
14608 <!-- PAGE BREAK 303 -->
14609 make policy on the basis of where the technology is going. The
14610 question should not be, how should the law regulate sharing in this
14611 world? The question should be, what law will we require when the
14612 network becomes the network it is clearly becoming? That network is
14613 one in which every machine with electricity is essentially on the Net;
14614 where everywhere you are&mdash;except maybe the desert or the
14615 Rockies&mdash;you can instantaneously be connected to the
14616 Internet. Imagine the Internet as ubiquitous as the best cell-phone
14617 service, where with the flip of a device, you are connected.
14618 </para>
14619 <indexterm><primary>cell phones, music streamed over</primary></indexterm>
14620 <para>
14621 In that world, it will be extremely easy to connect to services that
14622 give you access to content on the fly&mdash;such as Internet radio,
14623 content that is streamed to the user when the user demands. Here,
14624 then, is the critical point: When it is <emphasis>extremely</emphasis>
14625 easy to connect to services that give access to content, it will be
14626 <emphasis>easier</emphasis> to connect to services that give you
14627 access to content than it will be to download and store content
14628 <emphasis>on the many devices you will have for playing
14629 content</emphasis>. It will be easier, in other words, to subscribe
14630 than it will be to be a database manager, as everyone in the
14631 download-sharing world of Napster-like technologies essentially
14632 is. Content services will compete with content sharing, even if the
14633 services charge money for the content they give access to. Already
14634 cell-phone services in Japan offer music (for a fee) streamed over
14635 cell phones (enhanced with plugs for headphones). The Japanese are
14636 paying for this content even though <quote>free</quote> content is available in the
14637 form of MP3s across the Web.<footnote><para>
14638 <!-- f8. -->
14639 See, for example, <quote>Music Media Watch,</quote> The J@pan Inc. Newsletter, 3
14640 April 2002, available at
14641 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #76</ulink>.
14642 </para></footnote>
14643
14644 </para>
14645 <para>
14646 This point about the future is meant to suggest a perspective on the
14647 present: It is emphatically temporary. The <quote>problem</quote> with file
14648 sharing&mdash;to the extent there is a real problem&mdash;is a problem
14649 that will increasingly disappear as it becomes easier to connect to
14650 the Internet. And thus it is an extraordinary mistake for policy
14651 makers today to be <quote>solving</quote> this problem in light of a technology
14652 that will be gone tomorrow. The question should not be how to
14653 regulate the Internet to eliminate file sharing (the Net will evolve
14654 that problem away). The question instead should be how to assure that
14655 artists get paid, during
14656
14657 <!-- PAGE BREAK 304 -->
14658 this transition between twentieth-century models for doing business
14659 and twenty-first-century technologies.
14660 </para>
14661 <para>
14662 The answer begins with recognizing that there are different <quote>problems</quote>
14663 here to solve. Let's start with type D content&mdash;uncopyrighted
14664 content or copyrighted content that the artist wants shared. The
14665 <quote>problem</quote> with this content is to make sure that the technology that
14666 would enable this kind of sharing is not rendered illegal. You can
14667 think of it this way: Pay phones are used to deliver ransom demands,
14668 no doubt. But there are many who need to use pay phones who have
14669 nothing to do with ransoms. It would be wrong to ban pay phones in
14670 order to eliminate kidnapping.
14671 </para>
14672 <para>
14673 Type C content raises a different <quote>problem.</quote> This is content that was,
14674 at one time, published and is no longer available. It may be
14675 unavailable because the artist is no longer valuable enough for the
14676 record label he signed with to carry his work. Or it may be
14677 unavailable because the work is forgotten. Either way, the aim of the
14678 law should be to facilitate the access to this content, ideally in a
14679 way that returns something to the artist.
14680 </para>
14681 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>out of print</secondary></indexterm>
14682 <indexterm><primary>books</primary><secondary>resales of</secondary></indexterm>
14683 <para>
14684 Again, the model here is the used book store. Once a book goes out of
14685 print, it may still be available in libraries and used book
14686 stores. But libraries and used book stores don't pay the copyright
14687 owner when someone reads or buys an out-of-print book. That makes
14688 total sense, of course, since any other system would be so burdensome
14689 as to eliminate the possibility of used book stores' existing. But
14690 from the author's perspective, this <quote>sharing</quote> of his content without
14691 his being compensated is less than ideal.
14692 </para>
14693 <para>
14694 The model of used book stores suggests that the law could simply deem
14695 out-of-print music fair game. If the publisher does not make copies of
14696 the music available for sale, then commercial and noncommercial
14697 providers would be free, under this rule, to <quote>share</quote> that content,
14698 even though the sharing involved making a copy. The copy here would be
14699 incidental to the trade; in a context where commercial publishing has
14700 ended, trading music should be as free as trading books.
14701 </para>
14702 <para>
14703
14704 <!-- PAGE BREAK 305 -->
14705 Alternatively, the law could create a statutory license that would
14706 ensure that artists get something from the trade of their work. For
14707 example, if the law set a low statutory rate for the commercial
14708 sharing of content that was not offered for sale by a commercial
14709 publisher, and if that rate were automatically transferred to a trust
14710 for the benefit of the artist, then businesses could develop around
14711 the idea of trading this content, and artists would benefit from this
14712 trade.
14713 </para>
14714 <para>
14715 This system would also create an incentive for publishers to keep
14716 works available commercially. Works that are available commercially
14717 would not be subject to this license. Thus, publishers could protect
14718 the right to charge whatever they want for content if they kept the
14719 work commercially available. But if they don't keep it available, and
14720 instead, the computer hard disks of fans around the world keep it
14721 alive, then any royalty owed for such copying should be much less than
14722 the amount owed a commercial publisher.
14723 </para>
14724 <para>
14725 The hard case is content of types A and B, and again, this case is
14726 hard only because the extent of the problem will change over time, as
14727 the technologies for gaining access to content change. The law's
14728 solution should be as flexible as the problem is, understanding that
14729 we are in the middle of a radical transformation in the technology for
14730 delivering and accessing content.
14731 </para>
14732 <para>
14733 So here's a solution that will at first seem very strange to both sides
14734 in this war, but which upon reflection, I suggest, should make some sense.
14735 </para>
14736 <para>
14737 Stripped of the rhetoric about the sanctity of property, the basic
14738 claim of the content industry is this: A new technology (the Internet)
14739 has harmed a set of rights that secure copyright. If those rights are to
14740 be protected, then the content industry should be compensated for that
14741 harm. Just as the technology of tobacco harmed the health of millions
14742 of Americans, or the technology of asbestos caused grave illness to
14743 thousands of miners, so, too, has the technology of digital networks
14744 harmed the interests of the content industry.
14745 </para>
14746 <para>
14747 <!-- PAGE BREAK 306 -->
14748 I love the Internet, and so I don't like likening it to tobacco or
14749 asbestos. But the analogy is a fair one from the perspective of the
14750 law. And it suggests a fair response: Rather than seeking to destroy
14751 the Internet, or the p2p technologies that are currently harming
14752 content providers on the Internet, we should find a relatively simple
14753 way to compensate those who are harmed.
14754 </para>
14755 <indexterm id='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='startofrange'><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)</primary></indexterm>
14756 <para>
14757 The idea would be a modification of a proposal that has been
14758 floated by Harvard law professor William Fisher.<footnote>
14759 <para>
14760 <!-- f9. -->
14761 <indexterm id='idxartistspayments3' class='startofrange'><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
14762 William Fisher, <citetitle>Digital Music: Problems and Possibilities</citetitle> (last
14763 revised: 10 October 2000), available at
14764 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #77</ulink>; William
14765 Fisher, <citetitle>Promises to Keep: Technology, Law, and the Future of
14766 Entertainment</citetitle> (forthcoming) (Stanford: Stanford University Press,
14767 2004), ch. 6, available at
14768 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #78</ulink>. Professor
14769 Netanel has proposed a related idea that would exempt noncommercial
14770 sharing from the reach of copyright and would establish compensation
14771 to artists to balance any loss. See Neil Weinstock Netanel, <quote>Impose a
14772 Noncommercial Use Levy to Allow Free P2P File Sharing,</quote> available at
14773 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #79</ulink>. For other proposals, see Lawrence Lessig, <quote>Who's Holding Back
14774 Broadband?</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post</citetitle>, 8 January 2002, A17; Philip S. Corwin on
14775 behalf of Sharman Networks, A Letter to Senator Joseph R. Biden, Jr.,
14776 Chairman of the Senate Foreign Relations Committee, 26 February 2002,
14777 available at
14778 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #80</ulink>; Serguei Osokine, <citetitle>A Quick Case for Intellectual Property
14779 Use Fee (IPUF)</citetitle>, 3 March 2002, available at
14780 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #81</ulink>; Jefferson Graham,
14781 <quote>Kazaa, Verizon Propose to Pay Artists Directly,</quote> <citetitle>USA Today</citetitle>, 13 May
14782 2002, available at
14783 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #82</ulink>; Steven M. Cherry, <quote>Getting Copyright Right,</quote>
14784 IEEE Spectrum Online, 1 July 2002, available at
14785 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #83</ulink>; Declan
14786 McCullagh, <quote>Verizon's Copyright Campaign,</quote> CNET News.com, 27 August
14787 2002, available at
14788 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #84</ulink>.
14789 Fisher's proposal is very similar to Richard Stallman's proposal for
14790 DAT. Unlike Fisher's, Stallman's proposal would not pay artists directly
14791 proportionally, though more popular artists would get more than the less
14792 popular. As is typical with Stallman, his proposal predates the current
14793 debate by about a decade. See
14794 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #85</ulink>.
14795 <indexterm><primary>Fisher, William</primary></indexterm>
14796 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock</primary></indexterm>
14797 <indexterm><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)</primary></indexterm>
14798 <indexterm startref='idxartistspayments3' class='endofrange'/>
14799 </para></footnote>
14800 Fisher suggests a very clever way around the current impasse of the
14801 Internet. Under his plan, all content capable of digital transmission
14802 would (1) be marked with a digital watermark (don't worry about how
14803 easy it is to evade these marks; as you'll see, there's no incentive
14804 to evade them). Once the content is marked, then entrepreneurs would
14805 develop (2) systems to monitor how many items of each content were
14806 distributed. On the basis of those numbers, then (3) artists would be
14807 compensated. The compensation would be paid for by (4) an appropriate
14808 tax.
14809 </para>
14810 <para>
14811 Fisher's proposal is careful and comprehensive. It raises a million
14812 questions, most of which he answers well in his upcoming book,
14813 <citetitle>Promises to Keep</citetitle>. The modification that I would make is relatively
14814 simple: Fisher imagines his proposal replacing the existing copyright
14815 system. I imagine it complementing the existing system. The aim of
14816 the proposal would be to facilitate compensation to the extent that
14817 harm could be shown. This compensation would be temporary, aimed at
14818 facilitating a transition between regimes. And it would require
14819 renewal after a period of years. If it continues to make sense to
14820 facilitate free exchange of content, supported through a taxation
14821 system, then it can be continued. If this form of protection is no
14822 longer necessary, then the system could lapse into the old system of
14823 controlling access.
14824 </para>
14825 <indexterm startref='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='endofrange'/>
14826 <indexterm><primary>artists</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to</secondary></indexterm>
14827 <para>
14828 Fisher would balk at the idea of allowing the system to lapse. His aim
14829 is not just to ensure that artists are paid, but also to ensure that
14830 the system supports the widest range of <quote>semiotic democracy</quote>
14831 possible. But the aims of semiotic democracy would be satisfied if the
14832 other changes I described were accomplished&mdash;in particular, the
14833 limits on derivative
14834
14835 <!-- PAGE BREAK 307 -->
14836 uses. A system that simply charges for access would not greatly burden
14837 semiotic democracy if there were few limitations on what one was
14838 allowed to do with the content itself.
14839 </para>
14840 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation</primary></indexterm>
14841 <indexterm><primary>MusicStore</primary></indexterm>
14842 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks</primary></indexterm>
14843 <indexterm><primary>CDs</primary><secondary>prices of</secondary></indexterm>
14844 <para>
14845 No doubt it would be difficult to calculate the proper measure of
14846 <quote>harm</quote> to an industry. But the difficulty of making that calculation
14847 would be outweighed by the benefit of facilitating innovation. This
14848 background system to compensate would also not need to interfere with
14849 innovative proposals such as Apple's MusicStore. As experts predicted
14850 when Apple launched the MusicStore, it could beat <quote>free</quote> by being
14851 easier than free is. This has proven correct: Apple has sold millions
14852 of songs at even the very high price of 99 cents a song. (At 99 cents,
14853 the cost is the equivalent of a per-song CD price, though the labels
14854 have none of the costs of a CD to pay.) Apple's move was countered by
14855 Real Networks, offering music at just 79 cents a song. And no doubt
14856 there will be a great deal of competition to offer and sell music
14857 on-line.
14858 </para>
14859 <indexterm><primary>cable television</primary></indexterm>
14860 <indexterm><primary>television</primary><secondary>cable vs. broadcast</secondary></indexterm>
14861 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in</primary></indexterm>
14862 <indexterm><primary>piracy</primary><secondary>in Asia</secondary></indexterm>
14863 <indexterm><primary>film industry</primary><secondary>luxury theatres vs. video piracy in</secondary></indexterm>
14864 <para>
14865 This competition has already occurred against the background of <quote>free</quote>
14866 music from p2p systems. As the sellers of cable television have known
14867 for thirty years, and the sellers of bottled water for much more than
14868 that, there is nothing impossible at all about <quote>competing with free.</quote>
14869 Indeed, if anything, the competition spurs the competitors to offer
14870 new and better products. This is precisely what the competitive market
14871 was to be about. Thus in Singapore, though piracy is rampant, movie
14872 theaters are often luxurious&mdash;with <quote>first class</quote> seats, and meals
14873 served while you watch a movie&mdash;as they struggle and succeed in
14874 finding ways to compete with <quote>free.</quote>
14875 </para>
14876 <para>
14877 This regime of competition, with a backstop to assure that artists
14878 don't lose, would facilitate a great deal of innovation in the
14879 delivery of content. That competition would continue to shrink type A
14880 sharing. It would inspire an extraordinary range of new
14881 innovators&mdash;ones who would have a right to the content, and would
14882 no longer fear the uncertain and barbarically severe punishments of
14883 the law.
14884 </para>
14885 <para>
14886 In summary, then, my proposal is this:
14887 </para>
14888 <para>
14889
14890 <!-- PAGE BREAK 308 -->
14891 The Internet is in transition. We should not be regulating a
14892 technology in transition. We should instead be regulating to minimize
14893 the harm to interests affected by this technological change, while
14894 enabling, and encouraging, the most efficient technology we can
14895 create.
14896 </para>
14897 <para>
14898 We can minimize that harm while maximizing the benefit to innovation
14899 by
14900 </para>
14901 <orderedlist numeration="arabic">
14902 <listitem><para>
14903 <!-- 1. -->
14904 guaranteeing the right to engage in type D sharing;
14905 </para></listitem>
14906 <listitem><para>
14907 <!-- 2. -->
14908 permitting noncommercial type C sharing without liability,
14909 and commercial type C sharing at a low and fixed rate set by
14910 statute;
14911 </para></listitem>
14912 <listitem><para>
14913 <!-- 3. -->
14914 while in this transition, taxing and compensating for type A
14915 sharing, to the extent actual harm is demonstrated.
14916 </para></listitem>
14917 </orderedlist>
14918 <para>
14919 But what if <quote>piracy</quote> doesn't disappear? What if there is a competitive
14920 market providing content at a low cost, but a significant number of
14921 consumers continue to <quote>take</quote> content for nothing? Should the law do
14922 something then?
14923 </para>
14924 <para>
14925 Yes, it should. But, again, what it should do depends upon how the
14926 facts develop. These changes may not eliminate type A sharing. But the
14927 real issue is not whether it eliminates sharing in the abstract. The
14928 real issue is its effect on the market. Is it better (a) to have a
14929 technology that is 95 percent secure and produces a market of size <citetitle>x</citetitle>,
14930 or (b) to have a technology that is 50 percent secure but produces a
14931 market of five times <citetitle>x</citetitle>? Less secure might produce more unauthorized
14932 sharing, but it is likely to also produce a much bigger market in
14933 authorized sharing. The most important thing is to assure artists'
14934 compensation without breaking the Internet. Once that's assured, then
14935 it may well be appropriate to find ways to track down the petty
14936 pirates.
14937 </para>
14938 <para>
14939 But we're a long way away from whittling the problem down to this
14940 subset of type A sharers. And our focus until we're there should not
14941 be on finding ways to break the Internet. Our focus until we're there
14942
14943 <!-- PAGE BREAK 309 -->
14944 should be on how to make sure the artists are paid, while protecting
14945 the space for innovation and creativity that the Internet is.
14946 </para>
14947 </section>
14948
14949 <section id="firelawyers">
14950 <title>5. Fire Lots of Lawyers</title>
14951 <para>
14952 I'm a lawyer. I make lawyers for a living. I believe in the law. I believe
14953 in the law of copyright. Indeed, I have devoted my life to working in
14954 law, not because there are big bucks at the end but because there are
14955 ideals at the end that I would love to live.
14956 </para>
14957 <para>
14958 Yet much of this book has been a criticism of lawyers, or the role
14959 lawyers have played in this debate. The law speaks to ideals, but it
14960 is my view that our profession has become too attuned to the
14961 client. And in a world where the rich clients have one strong view,
14962 the unwillingness of the profession to question or counter that one
14963 strong view queers the law.
14964 </para>
14965 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, Melville</primary></indexterm>
14966 <indexterm><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (1998)</primary><secondary>Supreme Court challenge of</secondary></indexterm>
14967 <para>
14968 The evidence of this bending is compelling. I'm attacked as a
14969 <quote>radical</quote> by many within the profession, yet the positions that I am
14970 advocating are precisely the positions of some of the most moderate
14971 and significant figures in the history of this branch of the
14972 law. Many, for example, thought crazy the challenge that we brought to
14973 the Copyright Term Extension Act. Yet just thirty years ago, the
14974 dominant scholar and practitioner in the field of copyright, Melville
14975 Nimmer, thought it obvious.<footnote><para>
14976 <!-- f10. -->
14977 Lawrence Lessig, <quote>Copyright's First Amendment</quote> (Melville B. Nimmer
14978 Memorial Lecture), <citetitle>UCLA Law Review</citetitle> 48 (2001): 1057, 1069&ndash;70.
14979 </para></footnote>
14980
14981 </para>
14982 <para>
14983 However, my criticism of the role that lawyers have played in this
14984 debate is not just about a professional bias. It is more importantly
14985 about our failure to actually reckon the costs of the law.
14986 </para>
14987 <para>
14988 Economists are supposed to be good at reckoning costs and benefits.
14989 But more often than not, economists, with no clue about how the legal
14990 system actually functions, simply assume that the transaction costs of
14991 the legal system are slight.<footnote><para>
14992 <!-- f11. -->
14993 A good example is the work of Professor Stan Liebowitz. Liebowitz is
14994 to be commended for his careful review of data about infringement,
14995 leading him to question his own publicly stated
14996 position&mdash;twice. He initially predicted that downloading would
14997 substantially harm the industry. He then revised his view in light of
14998 the data, and he has since revised his view again. Compare Stan
14999 J. Liebowitz, <citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy: The True Forces That
15000 Drive the Digital Marketplace</citetitle> (New York: Amacom, 2002), (reviewing his
15001 original view but expressing skepticism) with Stan J. Liebowitz,
15002 <quote>Will MP3s Annihilate the Record Industry?</quote> working paper, June 2003,
15003 available at
15004 <ulink url="http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #86</ulink>.
15005 Liebowitz's careful analysis is extremely valuable in estimating the
15006 effect of file-sharing technology. In my view, however, he
15007 underestimates the costs of the legal system. See, for example,
15008 <citetitle>Rethinking</citetitle>, 174&ndash;76.
15009 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan</primary></indexterm>
15010 </para></footnote>
15011 They see a system that has been around for hundreds of years, and they
15012 assume it works the way their elementary school civics class taught
15013 them it works.
15014 </para>
15015 <para>
15016 <!-- PAGE BREAK 310 -->
15017 But the legal system doesn't work. Or more accurately, it doesn't work
15018 for anyone except those with the most resources. Not because the
15019 system is corrupt. I don't think our legal system (at the federal
15020 level, at least) is at all corrupt. I mean simply because the costs of
15021 our legal system are so astonishingly high that justice can
15022 practically never be done.
15023 </para>
15024 <para>
15025 These costs distort free culture in many ways. A lawyer's time is
15026 billed at the largest firms at more than $400 per hour. How much time
15027 should such a lawyer spend reading cases carefully, or researching
15028 obscure strands of authority? The answer is the increasing reality:
15029 very little. The law depended upon the careful articulation and
15030 development of doctrine, but the careful articulation and development
15031 of legal doctrine depends upon careful work. Yet that careful work
15032 costs too much, except in the most high-profile and costly cases.
15033 </para>
15034 <para>
15035 The costliness and clumsiness and randomness of this system mock
15036 our tradition. And lawyers, as well as academics, should consider it
15037 their duty to change the way the law works&mdash;or better, to change the
15038 law so that it works. It is wrong that the system works well only for the
15039 top 1 percent of the clients. It could be made radically more efficient,
15040 and inexpensive, and hence radically more just.
15041 </para>
15042 <para>
15043 But until that reform is complete, we as a society should keep the law
15044 away from areas that we know it will only harm. And that is precisely
15045 what the law will too often do if too much of our culture is left to
15046 its review.
15047 </para>
15048 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid</primary></indexterm>
15049 <para>
15050 Think about the amazing things your kid could do or make with digital
15051 technology&mdash;the film, the music, the Web page, the blog. Or think
15052 about the amazing things your community could facilitate with digital
15053 technology&mdash;a wiki, a barn raising, activism to change something.
15054 Think about all those creative things, and then imagine cold molasses
15055 poured onto the machines. This is what any regime that requires
15056 permission produces. Again, this is the reality of Brezhnev's Russia.
15057 </para>
15058 <para>
15059 The law should regulate in certain areas of culture&mdash;but it should
15060 regulate culture only where that regulation does good. Yet lawyers
15061
15062 <!-- PAGE BREAK 311-->
15063 rarely test their power, or the power they promote, against this
15064 simple pragmatic question: <quote>Will it do good?</quote> When challenged about
15065 the expanding reach of the law, the lawyer answers, <quote>Why not?</quote>
15066 </para>
15067 <para>
15068 We should ask, <quote>Why?</quote> Show me why your regulation of culture is
15069 needed. Show me how it does good. And until you can show me both,
15070 keep your lawyers away.
15071 </para>
15072 <!-- PAGE BREAK 312 -->
15073 </section>
15074 </section>
15075 </chapter>
15076 <chapter label="17" id="c-notes">
15077 <title>NOTES</title>
15078 <para>
15079 Throughout this text, there are references to links on the World Wide
15080 Web. As anyone who has tried to use the Web knows, these links can be
15081 highly unstable. I have tried to remedy the instability by redirecting
15082 readers to the original source through the Web site associated with
15083 this book. For each link below, you can go to
15084 http://free-culture.cc/notes and locate the original source by
15085 clicking on the number after the # sign. If the original link remains
15086 alive, you will be redirected to that link. If the original link has
15087 disappeared, you will be redirected to an appropriate reference for
15088 the material.
15089 </para>
15090
15091 <!-- insert endnotes here -->
15092 <?latex \theendnotes ?>
15093
15094 <!--PAGE BREAK 336-->
15095
15096 </chapter>
15097 <chapter label="18" id="c-acknowledgments">
15098 <title>ACKNOWLEDGMENTS</title>
15099 <para>
15100 This book is the product of a long and as yet unsuccessful struggle that
15101 began when I read of Eric Eldred's war to keep books free. Eldred's
15102 work helped launch a movement, the free culture movement, and it is
15103 to him that this book is dedicated.
15104 </para>
15105 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark</primary></indexterm>
15106 <para>
15107 I received guidance in various places from friends and academics,
15108 including Glenn Brown, Peter DiCola, Jennifer Mnookin, Richard Posner,
15109 Mark Rose, and Kathleen Sullivan. And I received correction and
15110 guidance from many amazing students at Stanford Law School and
15111 Stanford University. They included Andrew B. Coan, John Eden, James
15112 P. Fellers, Christopher Guzelian, Erica Goldberg, Robert Hallman,
15113 Andrew Harris, Matthew Kahn, Brian Link, Ohad Mayblum, Alina Ng, and
15114 Erica Platt. I am particularly grateful to Catherine Crump and Harry
15115 Surden, who helped direct their research, and to Laura Lynch, who
15116 brilliantly managed the army that they assembled, and provided her own
15117 critical eye on much of this.
15118 </para>
15119 <para>
15120 Yuko Noguchi helped me to understand the laws of Japan as well as
15121 its culture. I am thankful to her, and to the many in Japan who helped
15122 me prepare this book: Joi Ito, Takayuki Matsutani, Naoto Misaki,
15123 Michihiro Sasaki, Hiromichi Tanaka, Hiroo Yamagata, and Yoshihiro
15124 <!--PAGE BREAK 337-->
15125 Yonezawa. I am thankful as well as to Professor Nobuhiro Nakayama,
15126 and the Tokyo University Business Law Center, for giving me the
15127 chance to spend time in Japan, and to Tadashi Shiraishi and Kiyokazu
15128 Yamagami for their generous help while I was there.
15129 </para>
15130 <para>
15131 These are the traditional sorts of help that academics regularly draw
15132 upon. But in addition to them, the Internet has made it possible to
15133 receive advice and correction from many whom I have never even
15134 met. Among those who have responded with extremely helpful advice to
15135 requests on my blog about the book are Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli, David
15136 Gerstein, and Peter DiMauro, as well as a long list of those who had
15137 specific ideas about ways to develop my argument. They included
15138 Richard Bondi, Steven Cherry, David Coe, Nik Cubrilovic, Bob Devine,
15139 Charles Eicher, Thomas Guida, Elihu M. Gerson, Jeremy Hunsinger,
15140 Vaughn Iverson, John Karabaic, Jeff Keltner, James Lindenschmidt,
15141 K. L. Mann, Mark Manning, Nora McCauley, Jeffrey McHugh, Evan
15142 McMullen, Fred Norton, John Pormann, Pedro A. D. Rezende, Shabbir
15143 Safdar, Saul Schleimer, Clay Shirky, Adam Shostack, Kragen Sitaker,
15144 Chris Smith, Bruce Steinberg, Andrzej Jan Taramina, Sean Walsh, Matt
15145 Wasserman, Miljenko Williams, <quote>Wink,</quote> Roger Wood, <quote>Ximmbo da Jazz,</quote>
15146 and Richard Yanco. (I apologize if I have missed anyone; with
15147 computers come glitches, and a crash of my e-mail system meant I lost
15148 a bunch of great replies.)
15149 </para>
15150 <para>
15151 Richard Stallman and Michael Carroll each read the whole book in
15152 draft, and each provided extremely helpful correction and advice.
15153 Michael helped me to see more clearly the significance of the
15154 regulation of derivitive works. And Richard corrected an
15155 embarrassingly large number of errors. While my work is in part
15156 inspired by Stallman's, he does not agree with me in important places
15157 throughout this book.
15158 </para>
15159 <para>
15160 Finally, and forever, I am thankful to Bettina, who has always
15161 insisted that there would be unending happiness away from these
15162 battles, and who has always been right. This slow learner is, as ever,
15163 grateful for her perpetual patience and love.
15164 </para>
15165 <!--PAGE BREAK 338-->
15166
15167 </chapter>
15168 <index></index>
15169 </book>